Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n agree_v faith_n true_a 4,214 5 4.6536 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A19952 The reply of the most illustrious Cardinall of Perron, to the ansvveare of the most excellent King of Great Britaine the first tome. Translated into English.; Réplique à la response du sérénissime roy de la Grand Bretagne. Vol. 1. English Du Perron, Jacques Davy, 1556-1618.; Cary, Elizabeth, Lady, 1585 or 6-1639.; Du Perron, Jacques Davy, 1556-1618. Lettre de Mgr le Cal Du Perron, envoyée au sieur Casaubon en Angleterre. English.; Casaubon, Isaac, 1559-1614. Ad epistolam illustr. et reverendiss. Cardinalis Peronii, responsio. English. Selections. 1630 (1630) STC 6385; ESTC S107359 685,466 494

There are 83 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

communion_n of_o the_o true_a catholic_n church_n do_v concur_v to_o it_o and_o it_o be_v not_o requisite_a that_o those_o that_o be_v lawful_o separate_v from_o her_o either_o for_o schism_n or_o heresy_n as_o be_v the_o greek_n who_o err_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o his_o majesty_n himself_o hold_v to_o be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n &_o the_o natural_a egyptian_n &_o ethiopian_n who_o 〈◊〉_d err_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o hipostaticall_a union_n &_o in_o the_o quality_n of_o eutichian_o and_o monophysites_n be_v exclude_v from_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n from_o before_o the_o five_o council_n shall_v assist_v to_o it_o and_o notwithstanding_o yet_o even_o in_o these_o last_o age_n there_o have_v be_v counsel_n ecumenical_a indeed_o and_o in_o the_o sense_n whereto_o his_o majesty_n employ_v this_o term_n when_o the_o part_n separate_v froth_n body_n of_o the_o church_n whould_v have_v conspire_v to_o some_o reunion_n as_o that_o of_o lateran_n under_o pope_n innocent_a the_o three_o where_o there_o where_o with_o the_o pope_n the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o jerusalem_n and_o the_o legate_n of_o those_o of_o alexandria_n and_o antioch_n and_o more_o than_o 400._o bishop_n and_o 70._o archbishop_n from_o all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o church_n aswell_o greek_a as_o latin_a and_o that_o of_o florence_n under_o eugenius_n the_o four_o where_o assist_v the_o 〈◊〉_d greek_n with_o their_o emperor_n and_o their_o patriarch_n and_o the_o legate_n of_o three_o other_o patriarch_n and_o the_o armenian_n and_o the_o deputy_n also_o of_o the_o ethiopian_n and_o in_o both_o these_o they_o be_v agree_v of_o all_o the_o point_n of_o faith_n which_o in_o these_o day_n be_v again_o put_v to_o question_n from_o whence_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o want_n of_o general_n counsel_n can_v not_o make_v the_o church_n to_o be_v less_o acknowledgeable_a in_o the_o last_o day_n than_o she_o be_v in_o the_o first_o of_o the_o effect_n of_o counsel_n for_o the_o visibilitie_n of_o the_o church_n chapt_n ii_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n and_o in_o the_o ancient_a time_n it_o be_v a_o firm_a bond_n by_o which_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v bind_v in_o the_o frame_n of_o oneself_o body_n which_o body_n for_o this_o cause_n be_v meruailous_o noble_a and_o eminent_a be_v so_o constitute_v in_o the_o view_n and_o knowledge_n of_o all_o that_o none_o think_v they_o will_v can_v have_v be_v ignorant_a of_o she_o one_o faith_n one_o policy_n one_o body_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n a_o frequent_a visitation_n of_o the_o part_n among_o themselves_o a_o marvellous_a consent_n of_o all_o the_o member_n a_o admirable_a sim_fw-la pathie_n the_o reply_n rather_o some_o time_n these_o be_v the_o mean_n which_o heretic_n or_o those_o emperor_n that_o favour_v they_o make_v use_n of_o to_o shake_v and_o dissolve_v the_o mass_n and_o frame_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n from_o whence_o proceed_v the_o complaint_n of_o the_o father_n that_o after_o thing_n have_v be_v once_o resolve_v of_o in_o the_o church_n they_o shall_v no_o more_o hold_v other_o new_a counsel_n that_o after_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n every_o other_o council_n be_v superfluous_a and_o that_o they_o never_o see_v any_o good_a effect_n of_o all_o those_o counsel_n as_o be_v by_o s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n above_o say_v and_o therefore_o these_o rich_a and_o magnificent_a amplification_n of_o eloquence_n be_v no_o impediment_n but_o that_o the_o church_n when_o luther_n begin_v may_v have_v be_v not_o only_o as_o much_o but_o more_o visible_a illustrious_a and_o eminent_a than_o she_o be_v many_o time_n in_o those_o age_n witness_v the_o objection_n that_o the_o donatist_n 48._o make_v to_o saint_n austin_n of_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o church_n principal_o in_o the_o east_n in_o saint_n hillarys_n time_n such_o be_v say_v saint_n aus_n the_o time_n whereof_o hillary_n have_v write_v from_o whence_o thou_o think_v to_o set_v ambush_n for_o so_o many_o divine_a witness_n as_o if_o the_o church_n be_v they_o perish_v from_o the_o globe_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o 57_o saint_n jerom_n because_o the_o east_n strike_v against_o herself_o by_o the_o ancient_a fury_n of_o her_o people_n tear_v in_o little_a piece_n the_o unseam_v coat_n of_o our_o lord_n weave_v from_o above_o and_o that_o the_o fox_n destroy_v the_o vine_n of_o christ_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o it_o be_v difficult_a among_o the_o dry_a pond_n and_o which_o have_v no_o water_n to_o discern_v the_o seal_a fountain_n and_o the_o enclose_a garden_n therefore_o i_o think_v i_o ought_v to_o consult_v with_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n and_o the_o faith_n praise_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o whereas_o his_o majesty_n add_v that_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n be_v then_o set_v in_o such_o a_o eminence_n of_o view_n and_o knowledge_n that_o she_o can_v not_o be_v unknown_a no_o not_o by_o those_o that_o will_v have_v be_v ignorant_a of_o she_o this_o be_v very_o true_a if_o you_o take_v all_o catholic_a province_n together_o and_o compare_v they_o with_o every_o particular_a sect_n and_o it_o have_v place_n in_o regard_n of_o those_o that_o be_v within_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n which_o neither_o then_o nor_o since_o can_v have_v be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o body_n and_o society_n of_o the_o true_a church_n for_o as_o much_o as_o they_o all_o agree_v in_o the_o hypothesis_n that_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v discern_v by_o inimitable_a and_o indisputable_a mark_n and_o that_o those_o that_o have_v they_o not_o can_v not_o fain_o to_o have_v they_o as_o the_o communion_n 〈◊〉_d with_o the_o sea_n of_o saint_n peter_n the_o continue_a and_o not_o interrupt_v succession_n of_o ministry_n and_o doctrine_n the_o eminency_n and_o universality_n above_o all_o other_o christian_a sect_n take_v every_o one_o a_o part_n and_o other_o such_o like_a but_o in_o regard_n of_o those_o that_o be_v separate_v from_o it_o as_o heretic_n and_o schismatickes_n who_o will_v discern_v the_o church_n by_o mark_n more_o obscure_a than_o the_o thing_n itself_o and_o such_o as_o all_o sect_n persuade_v themselves_o to_o have_v to_o wit_n by_o the_o conformity_n of_o doctrine_n with_o the_o scripture_n interpret_v according_a to_o the_o sentence_n of_o every_o particular_a man_n there_o be_v nothing_o less_o evident_a for_o to_o those_o the_o church_n how_o eminent_a soever_o she_o have_v be_v have_v always_o be_v obscure_a &_o hide_v not_o for_o the_o want_n of_o her_o light_n &_o eminency_n but_o because_o of_o their_o darkness_n and_o blindness_n this_o say_v saint_n aus_n be_v common_a to_o all_o heretic_n to_o be_v unable_a to_o see_v the_o thing_n that_o in_o the_o world_n be_v 〈◊〉_d most_o manifest_a and_o constitute_v in_o the_o light_n of_o all_o nation_n out_o of_o who_o unity_n whatsoever_o they_o work_v although_o they_o seem_v to_o do_v it_o with_o great_a care_n and_o diligence_n can_v no_o more_o profitt_a they_o against_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n than_o the_o spider_n web_n against_o the_o extremity_n of_o cold_a and_o again_o the_o church_n be_v not_o hide_v for_o she_o be_v not_o under_o a_o 〈◊〉_d bushel_n but_o upon_o a_o candlestick_n to_o give_v light_n to_o all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o house_n and_o of_o she_o it_o be_v say_v the_o city_n build_v upon_o a_o mountain_n can_v be_v hide_v but_o she_o be_v as_o hide_a to_o the_o donatist_n who_o hear_v so_o clear_a and_o manifest_a testimony_n which_o demonstrate_v she_o to_o be_v spread_v over_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o yet_o have_v rather_o blindfold_o strike_v against_o the_o mountain_n then_o ascend_v it_o and_o other_o where_o how_o can_v i_o call_v those_o but_o blind_a 2._o that_o see_v not_o so_o great_a a_o mountain_n and_o shut_v their_o eye_n against_o the_o lamp_n set_v upon_o the_o candlestick_n of_o the_o comparison_n of_o the_o pope_n with_o the_o other_o patriarch_n chap._n iii_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n if_o anio_fw-la one_o be_v fall_v for_o heresy_n or_o schism_n from_o the_o communion_n of_o one_o of_o the_o church_n i_o say_v not_o one_o of_o the_o first_o which_o be_v the_o seat_n of_o the_o fower_n patriarch_n but_o of_o any_o other_o of_o those_o which_o be_v much_o less_o as_o soon_o as_o it_o be_v know_v he_o be_v repute_v exclude_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o all_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o reply_n in_o the_o time_n of_o saint_n austin_n there_o be_v yet_o but_o three_o true_a 〈◊〉_d seat_n in_o the_o church_n i_o mean_v invest_v with_o patriarchall_a jurisdiction_n to_o wit_n rome_n alexandria_n and_o antioch_n jerusalem_n have_v obtain_v no_o patriarchall_a division_n till_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n for_o before_o it_o be_v
cause_v the_o division_n of_o the_o church_n especial_o in_o the_o west_n for_o whatsoever_o multitude_n of_o government_n have_v have_v place_n there_o under_o the_o title_n of_o empire_n kingdom_n principality_n and_o common_a wealth_n and_o whatsoever_o difference_n of_o manner_n language_n law_n and_o institution_n that_o have_v reign_v there_o the_o church_n have_v be_v no_o more_o visible_a in_o the_o time_n when_o the_o empire_n be_v one_o and_o rule_v over_o all_o the_o east_n and_o west_n than_o it_o have_v be_v under_o this_o diversity_n of_o prince_n and_o government_n also_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o foretell_v by_o the_o prophet_n only_o for_o the_o time_n wherein_o there_o shall_v be_v but_o one_o temporal_a monarch_n in_o the_o world_n if_o ever_o that_o title_n can_v have_v belong_v to_o any_o prince_n but_o also_o for_o that_o time_n wherein_o there_o shall_v be_v several_a king_n and_o administrator_n of_o estate_n according_a to_o this_o prophecy_n 101._o of_o the_o psalmist_n the_o king_n and_o kingdom_n shall_v agree_v in_o one_o to_o serve_v our_o 〈◊〉_d lord_n which_o cause_v s._n augustine_n to_o say_v under_o colour_n that_o in_o the_o whole_a world_n kingdom_n be_v often_o divide_v yet_o for_o all_o that_o christian_a unity_n be_v not_o 〈◊〉_d for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o catholic_a church_n remain_v on_o either_o part_n and_o indeed_o that_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n depend_v not_o from_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o empire_n but_o from_o the_o relation_n to_o a_o visible_a centre_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n it_o appear_v sufficient_o even_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o great_a unity_n and_o extent_n of_o the_o empire_n when_o the_o christian_n which_o be_v under_o firmus_n king_n of_o the_o barbarian_n in_o africa_n under_o mania_n queen_n of_o the_o saracen_n under_o cosroes_n king_n of_o persia_n state_n all_o distinct_a yea_o the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o time_n enemy_n to_o the_o roman_a empire_n and_o after_o in_o damascus_n and_o other_o neighbour_a province_n under_o the_o king_n of_o the_o agarenians_n do_v all_o agree_n in_o the_o union_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n for_o as_o for_o the_o devision_n which_o be_v at_o this_o day_n in_o the_o east_n every_o one_o know_v that_o that_o of_o egypt_n and_o ethiopia_n have_v begin_v from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o that_o of_o the_o armenian_n likewise_o as_o appear_v by_o the_o decision_n make_v against_o they_o in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n hold_v under_o justinian_n 〈◊〉_d and_o that_o of_o the_o nestorian_n and_o jacobite_n which_o have_v yet_o to_o this_o day_n their_o sect_n in_o mesopotamia_n &_o other_o part_n of_o asia_n likewise_o and_o as_o for_o the_o greek_a church_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o although_o it_o begin_v to_o be_v divide_v since_o the_o separation_n of_o the_o empire_n nevertheless_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o division_n be_v not_o the_o division_n of_o the_o empire_n under_o which_o it_o persevere_v yet_o many_o year_n in_o unity_n with_o the_o latin_a but_o the_o schism_n between_o the_o two_o competitor_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o constantinople_n ignatius_n and_o photius_n to_o which_o to_o make_v it_o the_o more_o last_a heresy_n be_v add_v and_o which_o the_o emperor_n according_a as_o they_o have_v be_v good_a or_o evil_n have_v endeavour_v themselves_o to_o foment_n or_o stop_n and_o there_o have_v not_o want_v general_a counsel_n even_o of_o the_o two_o several_a church_n to_o extinguish_v this_o division_n when_o they_o have_v desire_v it_o for_o history_n be_v full_a of_o these_o example_n witness_n that_o which_o be_v hold_v at_o constantinople_n under_o the_o emperor_n basilius_n for_o the_o restitution_n of_o ignatius_n that_o which_o be_v hold_v under_o pope_n innocent_a the_o three_o which_o we_o call_v the_o great_a council_n of_o lateran_n to_o reunite_v the_o greek_a church_n with_o the_o latin_a and_o that_o which_o be_v hold_v for_o the_o same_o effect_n at_o florence_n under_o eugenius_n the_o four_o at_o which_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o patriarch_n of_o greece_n assist_v in_o person_n as_o also_o the_o division_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o greek_a emperor_n &_o after_o of_o the_o mahometan_a prince_n do_v not_o hinder_v the_o church_n that_o acknowledge_v the_o patriarch_n of_o the_o syrian_a tongue_n who_o we_o call_v maronites_n from_o persevere_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o this_o variety_n and_o division_n of_o sect_n in_o the_o east_n can_v not_o be_v attribute_v to_o the_o defect_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o empire_n since_o in_o the_o time_n that_o the_o empire_n be_v most_o unite_v these_o trouble_n and_o innovation_n have_v such_o place_n therein_o as_o socrates_n and_o sozomene_n do_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n set_v the_o mount_n tuscis_fw-la in_o illiria_n for_o a_o bind_v between_o the_o quiet_a peace_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o tempest_n and_o turbulencie_n of_o heretic_n but_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v attribute_v to_o the_o want_n of_o constancy_n of_o the_o eastern_a people_n or_o rather_o to_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o will_v show_v that_o this_o prophecy_n thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v 16_o build_v my_o church_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o have_v have_v some_o more_o special_a effect_n for_o the_o sea_n of_o s._n peter_n then_o for_o those_o of_o the_o other_o patriarch_n according_a to_o that_o oracle_n of_o the_o great_a leo_n beside_o the_o stone_n 52._o that_o our_o lord_n hat_n set_v for_o a_o foundation_n no_o other_o building_n shall_v be_v steadfast_a of_o the_o interpretation_n of_o these_o word_n thou_o be_v peter_n peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n chapt_n iii_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n since_o that_o time_n the_o catholic_a church_n in_o truth_n have_v not_o cease_v to_o be_v for_o it_o shall_v always_o be_v and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o she_o who_o be_v found_v on_o christ_n the_o true_a stone_n and_o in_o the_o faith_n of_o peter_n and_o of_o the_o other_o apostle_n the_o reply_n that_o some_o time_n the_o father_n expound_v these_o word_n upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o confession_n of_o peter_n and_o that_o some_o time_n they_o expound_v it_o of_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n and_o say_v that_o the_o church_n have_v be_v found_v upon_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n they_o be_v not_o contrary_a exposition_n the_o one_o exclude_v the_o other_o but_o conjoint_n the_o one_o include_v the_o other_o for_o they_o intend_v the_o church_n to_o speak_v the_o school_n language_n be_v build_v causallie_o upon_o the_o confession_n of_o peter_n and_o formal_o upon_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o confession_n of_o peter_n be_v the_o cause_n werefore_o christ_n choose_v he_o to_o constitute_v he_o for_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o church_n by_o that_o say_v saint_n hilary_n the_o bless_a confession_n have_v obtain_v his_o reward_n and_o 16._o that_o the_o person_n of_o saint_n peter_n have_v be_v that_o upon_o which_o our_o lord_n have_v proper_o build_v his_o church_n so_o as_o to_o say_v that_o his_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o confessio_fw-la of_o peter_n be_v not_o to_o deny_v that_o it_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n 61._o but_o it_o be_v to_o express_v the_o cause_n wherefore_o it_o be_v build_v upon_o he_o no_o more_o than_o to_o sale_n with_o saint_n hierome_n that_o peter_n walk_v not_o upon_o the_o water_n but_o faith_n be_v not_o to_o deny_v that_o saint_n peter_n walk_v true_o proper_o and_o formal_o upon_o the_o water_n but_o it_o be_v to_o express_v that_o the_o cause_n that_o make_v he_o walk_v there_o be_v not_o the_o activity_n or_o natural_a virtue_n of_o his_o person_n but_o the_o faith_n that_o he_o have_v give_v to_o the_o word_n of_o christ._n and_o therefore_o as_o these_o two_o proposition_n the_o faith_n of_o peter_n walk_v upon_o the_o water_n and_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n walk_v upon_o the_o water_n be_v both_o true_a but_o in_o a_o different_a sense_n for_o the_o faith_n of_o peter_n walk_v upon_o the_o water_n causallie_o as_o the_o schooleme_a sare_z that_o be_v to_o say_v it_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o the_o person_n of_o saint_n peter_n walk_v there_o and_o the_o person_n of_o saint_n peter_n walk_v there_o true_o proper_o and_o formal_o so_o these_o two_o proposition_n the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o
speak_v of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o heretic_n '_o it_o be_v unlawful_a that_o they_o shall_v make_v minister_n who_o be_v none_o themselves_o whereby_o they_o do_v not_o intend_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o heretic_n who_o have_v draw_v their_o character_n from_o the_o church_n be_v not_o bishop_n as_o for_o the_o impression_n of_o the_o character_n but_o that_o they_o be_v none_o as_o for_o the_o imposition_n of_o the_o authority_n by_o mean_n whereof_o the_o english_a bishop_n can_v pretend_v no_o episcopal_a succession_n from_o the_o church_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n as_o for_o the_o succession_n of_o authority_n for_o as_o much_o as_o if_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o be_v in_o england_n and_o in_o other_o place_n when_o king_n henry_n the_o eigth_n come_v to_o the_o crown_n be_v not_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n the_o bishop_n of_o the_o catholic_a communion_n be_v not_o true_a and_o lawful_a bishop_n as_o concern_v authority_n but_o only_o as_o concern_v the_o character_n and_o by_o consequence_n neither_o have_v themselves_o the_o succession_n of_o episcopal_a authority_n nor_o can_v transmitt_v it_o to_o those_o that_o have_v take_v it_o from_o they_o by_o what_o right_o say_v saint_n athanasius_n speak_v of_o the_o arrian_n can_v they_o be_v bishop_n if_o they_o have_v be_v ordain_v by_o those_o man_n which_o themselves_o do_v slander_n with_o heresy_n and_o contrariwise_o if_o the_o church_n that_o be_v at_o the_o begin_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o eigth_n throughout_o europe_n and_o in_o many_o other_o part_n of_o the_o world_n be_v the_o true_a church_n this_o self-same_a church_n have_v disannul_v the_o episcopal_a authority_n in_o those_o from_o who_o the_o english_a at_o this_o day_n pretend_v to_o have_v have_v their_o mission_n and_o have_v depose_v and_o anathematise_v they_o they_o have_v no_o more_o lawful_a episcopal_a authority_n &_o by_o consequence_n can_v not_o confer_v it_o to_o other_o and_o beside_o if_o that_o church_n be_v the_o true_a church_n the_o english_a church_n at_o this_o day_n which_o be_v go_v out_o from_o her_o communion_n can_v not_o be_v so_o nor_o preserve_v in_o she_o the_o succession_n of_o episcopal_a authority_n which_o can_v be_v transfer_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o for_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o character_n the_o english_a according_a to_o their_o doctrine_n can_v in_o no_o sect_n pretend_v to_o it_o for_o they_o hold_v not_o &_o if_o they_o will_v hold_v they_o can_v do_v it_o for_o as_o much_o as_o they_o make_v profession_n to_o agree_v in_o the_o faith_n &_o in_o the_o sacrament_n with_o the_o protestant_n of_o france_n that_o order_n conferr_v any_o other_o thing_n than_o authority_n nor_o that_o it_o imprint_n any_o sacramental_a character_n which_o be_v that_o only_a which_o in_o mission_n can_v be_v transfer_v &_o give_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o so_o if_o by_o their_o doctrine_n they_o can_v have_v the_o succession_n of_o the_o character_n they_o be_v fall_v from_o the_o right_n of_o make_v use_n thereof_o for_o they_o communicate_v with_o the_o puritan_n of_o france_n &_o hold_v their_o sheep_n for_o true_a sheep_n and_o so_o their_o pastor_n for_o true_a pastor_n and_o for_o their_o colleague_n and_o fellow_n brother_n now_o the_o minister_n of_o france_n be_v not_o ordain_v by_o any_o bishop_n and_o so_o be_v no_o bishop_n for_o he_o say_v saint_n 76_o cyprian_n can_v be_v a_o bishop_n who_o succeed_v no_o body_n have_v be_v ordain_v of_o himself_o and_o not_o be_v bishop_n have_v no_o church_n since_o as_o say_v the_o same_o saint_n cyprian_n the_o church_n be_v in_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o 69._o church_n and_o who_o be_v not_o with_o the_o bishop_n be_v not_o in_o the_o church_n by_o mean_n whereof_o the_o english_a which_o communicate_v with_o they_o and_o hold_v they_o for_o their_o colleague_n and_o fellow_n brother_n involve_v themselves_o into_o the_o crime_n and_o contagion_n of_o all_o their_o ecclesiastical_a defect_n and_o consequent_o fall_v from_o all_o the_o right_n whereof_o those_o with_o who_o they_o communicate_v be_v deprive_v i_o add_v to_o that_o that_o to_o show_v a_o church_n to_o be_v successivelie_o and_o representative_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n it_o suffice_v not_o to_o show_v that_o a_o part_n of_o that_o church_n derive_v the_o personal_a succession_n of_o her_o bishop_n from_o the_o mission_n of_o the_o antien_n catholic_a church_n but_o all_o the_o church_n that_o will_v pretend_v the_o inheritance_n &_o succession_n of_o the_o tittle_n of_o catholic_a must_v have_v the_o successio_fw-la of_o her_o bishop_n derive_v from_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n for_o the_o bishop_n sea_n be_v one_o as_o say_v saint_n cyprian_a whereof_o every_o one_o hold_v his_o portion_n undivide_o and_o elsewhere_o the_o church_n be_v one_o bind_v together_o by_o eccl._n the_o cement_n of_o bishop_n adhere_v the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o now_o the_o english_a do_v not_o 69_o pretend_v alone_o to_o constitute_v all_o the_o communion_n of_o their_o church_n nor_o to_o be_v all_o the_o true_a and_o pure_a visible_a catholic_a church_n but_o do_v comprehend_v into_o their_o communion_n the_o protestant_n of_o france_n as_o part_n of_o the_o body_n of_o their_o church_n and_o therefore_o they_o can_v say_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o which_o they_o adhere_v and_o wherewith_o they_o communicate_v to_o be_v by_o succession_n and_o personal_a representation_n the_o same_o visible_a catholic_a church_n which_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o four_o first_o counsel_n contrariwise_o from_o this_o that_o the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o communion_n to_o which_o the_o english_a church_n adhere_v communicate_v not_o by_o succession_n of_o person_n with_o the_o mission_n of_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n and_o consequent_o be_v at_o the_o least_o schismatics_n it_o issue_v that_o the_o english_a which_o communicate_v with_o they_o can_v communicate_v with_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n for_o none_o except_o in_o error_n of_o fact_n can_v communicate_v with_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o with_o schismatickes_n together_o and_o final_o i_o say_v that_o since_o in_o all_o question_n of_o schism_n we_o must_v mount_v up_o to_o the_o original_n follow_v these_o word_n of_o saint_n augustine_n to_o the_o donatist_n the_o question_n between_o you_o and_o we_o be_v where_o the_o church_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v we_o must_v then_o begin_v at_o the_o original_n why_o have_v you_o make_v a_o schism_n the_o account_n that_o the_o english_a church_n will_v yield_v of_o the_o succession_n of_o her_o bishop_n aught_o to_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o original_n of_o the_o schism_n now_o thereupon_o i_o will_v ask_v his_o majesty_n where_o the_o first_o after_o the_o rise_n up_o of_o luther_n and_o calvin_n begin_v in_o england_n to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o embrace_v other_o form_n of_o religion_n which_o they_o now_o hold_v where_o be_v this_o society_n wherein_o there_o be_v together_o to_o be_v find_v both_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n uninterrupt_a from_o the_o first_o and_o the_o succession_n of_o doctrine_n for_o to_o go_v out_o from_o the_o church_n then_o entitle_v catholic_a they_o must_v range_v themselves_o to_o a_o other_o church_n which_o must_v have_v true_a doctrine_n and_o true_a ministry_n by_o adherence_n ad_fw-la communion_n to_o the_o which_o they_o may_v preserve_v the_o title_n of_o catholic_a and_o transmitt_v it_o to_o those_o that_o shall_v come_v after_o they_o now_o where_o be_v then_o this_o society_n endue_v with_o the_o true_a doctrine_n and_o the_o true_a succession_n of_o bishop_n when_o the_o english_a first_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o church_n entitle_v catholic_a for_o i_o will_v not_o inquire_v who_o be_v the_o first_o from_o who_o she_o say_v that_o the_o english_a bishop_n can_v show_v their_o uninterrupt_a succession_n if_o it_o be_v not_o saint_n augustin_n bishop_n of_o canterbury_n who_o s._n gregory_n send_v thither_o nor_o will_v i_o demand_v for_o the_o preach_n of_o what_o doctrine_n s._n gregory_n send_v he_o thither_o if_o it_o be_v not_o for_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o same_o doctrine_n that_o be_v there_o before_o the_o last_o separation_n of_o the_o succession_n of_o doctrine_n chap._n xxiii_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n if_o the_o succession_n of_o doctrine_n be_v demand_v let_v we_o mako_n trial_n of_o it_o the_o reply_n there_o be_v great_a difference_n between_o similitude_n of_o doctrine_n and_o succession_n of_o doctrine_n similitude_n of_o doctrine_n be_v a_o simple_a report_n of_o agreement_n between_o one_o doctrine_n &_o a_o other_o but_o the_o succession_n of_o doctrine_n proper_o take_v be_v a_o derivation_n of_o doctrine_n continue_v by_o a_o perpetual_a unintermit_v chine_n of_o teacher_n and_o person_n teach_v and_o
begin_n of_o these_o last_o division_n either_o persuade_v in_o some_o point_n by_o the_o innovator_n or_o join_v to_o the_o party_n of_o the_o innovator_n themselves_o have_v attempt_v to_o seek_v out_o some_o accommodation_n in_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n and_o of_o the_o universal_a religion_n of_o the_o church_n to_o come_v to_o a_o reunion_n persuade_v themselves_o that_o as_o the_o poet_n say_v all_o man_n do_v sinn_n without_o the_o wall_n of_o troy_n and_o 〈◊〉_d within_o it_o will_v be_v always_o easy_a for_o we_o to_o show_v that_o the_o desire_n of_o reconciliation_n rather_o than_o the_o knowledge_n of_o antiquity_n and_o truth_n have_v cause_v they_o to_o speak_v this_o language_n of_o the_o agreement_n or_o disagreement_n of_o the_o english_a reformer_n with_o the_o donatist_n chap._n xxxi_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n and_o therefore_o the_o english_a church_n fear_v not_o that_o she_o can_v seem_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o sincere_a arbitrator_n to_o have_v do_v any_o thing_n like_a to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d in_o this_o separation_n they_o out_o of_o a_o jollity_n of_o heart_n and_o without_o any_o cause_n abandon_v the_o catholic_a 〈◊〉_d approve_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o nation_n whereof_o they_o can_v neither_o blame_v the_o faith_n nor_o the_o discipline_n the_o reply_n neither_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n then_o actuallie_o approve_v by_o all_o nation_n for_o these_o prophecy_n in_o thy_o seed_n shall_v all_o nation_n be_v 〈◊〉_d and_o this_o gospel_n must_v be_v preach_v over_o all_o the_o world_n shall_v not_o 24._o be_v full_o accomplish_v as_o s._n augustine_n note_v till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 2._o world_n but_o it_o may_v well_o be_v say_v by_o 〈◊〉_d &_o in_o regard_n of_o other_o christian_a sect_n to_o be_v spread_v over_o all_o nation_n because_o the_o extent_n thereof_o be_v more_o eminont_a as_o it_o be_v now_o then_o that_o of_o any_o other_o christian_a society_n neither_o be_v she_o approve_v by_o 〈◊〉_d man_n of_o all_o the_o christian_a nation_n for_o who_o know_v not_o how_o great_a the_o multitude_n of_o other_o heresy_n be_v when_o the_o sect_n of_o the_o donatist_n spring_v up_o and_o how_o much_o great_a then_o when_o the_o passage_n of_o the_o father_n cite_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o observation_n be_v pronounce_v against_o they_o of_o one_o side_n the_o arrian_n possess_v almost_o all_o the_o east_n of_o the_o other_o side_n the_o number_n of_o the_o donatist_n be_v such_o in_o africa_n as_o they_o hold_v all_o at_o a_o time_n counsel_n of_o three_o hundred_o bishop_n yea_o even_o in_o the_o time_n of_o s._n augustine_n there_o where_o whole_a nation_n that_o profess_a christianity_n which_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v 〈◊〉_d catholic_n church_n as_o that_o of_o the_o goth_n &_o vandal_n and_o in_o brief_a elghtie_a or_o a_o hundred_o other_o sect_n of_o christian_n which_o be_v then_o in_o the_o world_n divide_v like_o sampsons_n fox_n by_o the_o head_n but_o tie_v together_o by_o the_o tail_n do_v all_o agree_v to_o reprove_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o whereas_o the_o excellent_a king_n add_v that_o the_o donatist_n can_v blame_v neither_o the_o faith_n nor_o discipline_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n if_o by_o blame_v his_o majesty_n intend_v to_o blame_v with_o reason_n that_o be_v not_o particular_a to_o the_o donatist_n for_o never_o any_o sect_n either_o schismatical_a or_o heretical_a can_v blame_v with_o reason_n the_o faith_n or_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n but_o if_o by_o blame_v he_o intend_v accuse_v and_o slander_v she_o and_o believe_v that_o they_o have_v just_a occasion_n to_o do_v so_o who_o ever_o blame_v the_o faith_n and_o discipline_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n more_o than_o the_o donatist_n who_o call_v themselves_o the_o bishop_n of_o they_o catholic_a truth_n and_o object_v to_o the_o catholic_n that_o they_o err_v in_o faith_n in_o believe_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n reside_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o hold_v that_o baptism_n which_o can_v be_v administer_v but_o by_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n may_v be_v confer_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o the_o society_n of_o heretic_n who_o reproach_v it_o to_o they_o thant_n they_o violate_v these_o oracle_n one_o 4._o faith_n one_o baptism_n it_o be_v lawful_a to_o be_v baptize_v if_o thou_o do_v believe_v be_v you_o every_o 8._o one_o of_o you_o baptise_a in_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n christ_n purge_v his_o church_n by_o the_o 2._o 5._o wash_n of_o water_n in_o the_o word_n who_o hear_v not_o the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v as_o a_o publican_n 18._o and_o as_o a_o heathen_a baptism_n be_v the_o wash_n of_o the_o regeneration_n of_o the_o ghost_n the_o 3._o church_n be_v the_o close_a garden_n and_o the_o seal_a fountain_n who_o gather_v not_o with_o christ_n 4._o 11._o scatter_v and_o other_o such_o like_v allege_v by_o they_o in_o so_o great_a number_n as_o vincent_n vincentius_n lyrinensis_n cry_v out_o but_o perchance_o this_o new_a invention_n that_o commonit_a be_v to_o say_v the_o heresy_n of_o the_o donatist_n will_v want_v defence_n nay_o she_o be_v assist_v with_o so_o great_a strength_n of_o spirit_n with_o so_o many_o flood_n of_o eloquence_n with_o so_o great_a a_o number_n of_o protector_n with_o so_o much_o likelihood_n with_o so_o many_o oracle_n of_o divine_a law_n but_o expound_v in_o a_o new_a and_o naughty_a manner_n that_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o that_o such_o a_o conspir_a aice_n can_v never_o have_v benen_fw-la destroy_v if_o this_o same_o embrace_v this_o same_o defend_v this_o same_o extol_v profession_n of_o novelty_n have_v not_o in_o the_o end_n leave_v the_o cause_n of_o so_o great_a a_o motion_n alone_o and_o abandon_v and_o as_o for_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n do_v not_o they_o blame_v it_o who_o tax_v the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n to_o have_v receive_v without_o expiation_n of_o precede_a penance_n those_o that_o in_o the_o persecution_n time_n have_v deny_v christ_n and_o communicate_v in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o pagan_n and_o consequent_o to_o have_v be_v pollute_v with_o the_o contagion_n of_o the_o pagan_n who_o accuse_v she_o for_o have_v receive_v convert_v heretic_n into_o her_o communion_n without_o give_v they_o true_a baptism_n which_o can_v not_o be_v give_v according_a to_o they_o but_o in_o the_o church_n and_o consequent_o to_o have_v pollute_v her_o communion_n with_o the_o contagion_n of_o unbaptised_a or_o uncircumcised_a spiritual_o and_o so_o to_o have_v lose_v the_o be_v of_o the_o true_a church_n which_o can_v not_o subsist_v without_o the_o true_a use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n who_o make_v profession_n in_o manner_n of_o a_o conversation_n of_o life_n much_o better_o rule_v &_o more_o reform_v then_o that_o of_o the_o catholic_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o s._n augustine_n forbid_v the_o catholic_n to_o reproach_n the_o donatist_n with_o any_o other_o 99_o thing_n but_o that_o they_o be_v not_o catholic_n who_o call_v themselves_o the_o little_a flock_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o two_o tribe_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o juda_n who_o say_v we_o have_v nothing_o and_o possess_v all_o thing_n we_o account_v our_o soul_n to_o he_o our_o riches_n and_o by_o our_o pain_n and_o our_o blood_n we_o purchase_v the_o treasure_n of_o heaven_n and_o in_o breeze_n who_o suppose_v themselves_o to_o have_v such_o reason_n for_o their_o separation_n as_o they_o repute_v the_o catholic_n not_o to_o be_v worthy_a of_o so_o much_o as_o the_o name_n of_o christian_n as_o have_v lose_v the_o true_a use_n of_o baptism_n whereby_o man_n be_v make_v christian_n &_o when_o they_o speak_v to_o they_o they_o say_v caius_n seius_n caia_n seia_n o_o man_n 〈◊〉_d thou_o be_v a_o christian_n o_o woman_n will_v thou_o be_v a_o christian_n and_o cry_v to_o they_o idem_fw-la come_v o_o you_o ignorant_a and_o wretched_a people_n who_o be_v common_o call_v catholic_n vincent_n 26_o and_o call_v the_o chair_n of_o rome_n the_o chair_n of_o pestilence_n and_o call_v the_o catholic_a church_n a_o harlott_n and_o a_o adulteress_n and_o choose_v rather_o to_o suffer_v all_o kind_n of_o persecution_n and_o false_a martirdome_n then_o to_o communicate_v with_o she_o if_o i_o persecute_v say_v saint_n augustine_n justly_o he_o that_o ibid._n detract_v from_o his_o neighbour_n why_o shall_v i_o not_o persecute_v he_o that_o detract_v from_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o say_v this_o be_v not_o she_o but_o this_o be_v a_o hatlott_n and_o again_o if_o the_o punishment_n and_o not_o the_o cause_n make_v martyrdom_n heaven_n shall_v be_v full_a of_o your_o martyr_n and_o against_o who_o contrariwise_o the_o catholic_n in_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n have_v not_o one_o passage_n of_o scripture_n for_o they_o but_o only_o the_o apostolical_a unwritten_a tradition_n as_o s._n augustine_n
baptize_v can_v come_v to_o the_o remission_n of_o original_a sin_n and_o of_o this_o kind_n of_o necessity_n the_o example_n be_v in_o small_a number_n i_o call_v that_o conditional_a necessity_n which_o oblige_v not_o but_o in_o case_n of_o possibility_n and_o receive_v exception_n of_o place_n time_n and_o person_n and_o that_o again_o have_v diverse_a branch_n for_o first_o in_o regard_n of_o faith_n there_o be_v many_o point_n that_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v if_o a_o man_n be_v in_o place_n where_o he_o may_v be_v instruct_v in_o they_o or_o who_o have_v time_n to_o be_v inform_v of_o they_o which_o be_v not_o necessary_a for_o a_o man_n that_o live_v in_o a_o wilderness_n or_o so_o press_v with_o the_o instant_n of_o death_n as_o he_o have_v no_o leisure_n to_o receive_v instruction_n as_o that_o christ_n be_v bear_v of_o a_o virgin_n that_o he_o be_v crucify_a under_o pontius_n pilate_n that_o he_o rise_v again_o the_o three_o day_n and_o many_o thing_n be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v and_o hold_v for_o point_n of_o faith_n either_o by_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n in_o general_a or_o by_o the_o order_n of_o the_o minister_n and_o pastor_n which_o be_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v not_o necessary_a for_o every_o particular_a person_n to_o know_v and_o hold_v to_o be_v point_n of_o faith_n as_o that_o the_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n be_v the_o same_o in_o essence_n and_o distinct_a in_o subsistence_n that_o the_o father_n have_v beget_v the_o sonn_n necessary_o and_o not_o free_o that_o they_o be_v the_o divine_a person_n which_o produce_v and_o be_v produce_v and_o not_o the_o essence_n which_o do_v neither_o produce_v nor_o be_v produce_v that_o the_o work_n of_o the_o trinity_n without_o be_v undivided_a that_o the_o only_a person_n of_o the_o sonn_n have_v be_v incarnate_a and_o not_o any_o of_o the_o other_o that_o in_o christ_n there_o be_v two_o substance_n and_o one_o subsistence_n that_o the_o divinity_n be_v not_o to_o he_o in_o the_o steed_n of_o a_o soul_n but_o that_o beside_o his_o body_n and_o his_o divinity_n he_o have_v a_o soul_n sensible_a and_o reasonable_a that_o what_o he_o once_o take_v in_o hypostatical_a union_n he_o have_v not_o abandon_v that_o the_o devil_n be_v create_v good_a and_o make_v hinself_n evil_a by_o the_o freedom_n of_o his_o will_n and_o other_o such_o like_a and_o in_o regard_n of_o action_n there_o be_v many_o thing_n necessary_a in_o case_n of_o possibility_n and_o according_a to_o the_o opportunity_n of_o place_n time_n and_o person_n which_o be_v not_o absolute_o necessary_a when_o the_o commodity_n to_o accomplish_v they_o be_v want_v as_o the_o assistance_n at_o church_n service_n the_o actual_a participation_n of_o the_o eucharist_n and_o many_o be_v necessary_a to_o some_o as_o mission_n and_o imposition_n of_o hand_n to_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o marriage_n to_o those_o that_o will_v have_v issue_n which_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o other_o and_o in_o brief_a some_o thing_n be_v necessary_a to_o obtain_v salvation_n other_o some_o to_o obtain_v it_o more_o easy_o for_o oneself_n and_o other_o to_o procure_v and_o mediate_v it_o for_o other_o man_n some_o for_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o church_n and_o other_o for_o the_o edification_n and_o more_o ample_a propagation_n of_o the_o church_n some_o for_o the_o simple_a be_v of_o christian_a religion_n other_o for_o the_o better_a be_v that_o be_v to_o say_v for_o the_o comeliness_n dignity_n and_o splendour_n of_o christian_a religion_n i_o call_v necessity_n of_o mean_n that_o that_o be_v in_o behalf_n of_o the_o thing_n themselves_o as_o that_o of_o sacrament_n to_o which_o god_n have_v grant_v power_n to_o confer_v some_o grace_n and_o real_a operation_n to_o salvation_n that_o of_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o moral_a law_n who_o necessity_n be_v impose_v upon_o we_o by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n that_o of_o repent_v sin_n which_o be_v a_o mean_n necessary_a to_o obtain_v their_o remission_n i_o call_v necessity_n of_o precept_n that_o which_o be_v only_a obligatorie_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o commandment_n as_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n in_o memory_n of_o that_o wherein_o our_o lord_n do_v rise_v again_o which_o we_o for_o that_o cause_n call_v our_o lord_n day_n and_o other_o such_o like_a observation_n the_o omission_n whereof_o can_v be_v no_o hindrance_n to_o salvation_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o disobedience_n and_o breach_n of_o the_o commandment_n i_o call_v necessity_n of_o special_a belief_n that_o of_o thoses_fw-fr point_n which_o all_o faithful_a if_o they_o be_v not_o prevent_v by_o death_n be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v with_o faith_n express_v distinct_a and_o determinate_a which_o the_o schoolman_n call_v explicit_a faith_n as_o the_o twelve_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n i_o call_v necessity_n of_o general_a belief_n that_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o every_o particular_a man_n be_v not_o oblige_v to_o believe_v with_o a_o distinct_a ad_fw-la explicit_a faith_n as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o original_a sin_n the_o article_n or_o the_o two_o will_n in_o christ_n the_o article_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o the_o father_n and_o from_o the_o son_n the_o belief_n that_o baptism_n give_v forth_o of_o the_o church_n provide_v it_o be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o the_o church_n be_v true_a baptism_n and_o that_o heretic_n which_o have_v receive_v baptism_n must_v not_o be_v rebaptise_v when_o they_o return_v to_o the_o church_n and_o other_o such_o like_a when_o the_o simple_a sort_n of_o faithful_a people_n be_v not_o oblige_v to_o believe_v with_o a_o distinct_a and_o explicit_a faith_n but_o it_o suffice_v that_o they_o believe_v they_o general_o in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o they_o adhere_v to_o the_o church_n that_o believe_v they_o by_o who_o faith_n they_o live_v while_o they_o remain_v in_o her_o communion_n as_o child_n live_v by_o their_o mother_n nourishment_n whilst_o they_o be_v in_o her_o bowel_n i_o call_v necessity_n of_o act_n that_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o every_o particular_a person_n be_v oblige_v to_o execute_v actuallie_o as_o to_o confess_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n to_o forgive_v offence_n do_v to_o they_o to_o restore_v the_o good_n of_o a_o other_o man_n i_o call_v necessity_n of_o approbation_n that_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o every_o particular_a man_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o execute_v actuallie_o but_o only_o not_o to_o contradict_v they_o and_o not_o to_o condemn_v those_o that_o do_v they_o nor_o the_o church_n that_o approve_v they_o add_v not_o to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o she_o upon_o this_o occasion_n upon_o pain_n of_o separate_v themselves_o from_o their_o own_o salvation_n as_o the_o choice_n to_o live_v in_o virginity_n and_o single_a life_n and_o other_o the_o like_a of_o all_o which_o kind_n of_o necessity_n the_o father_n have_v hold_v 〈◊〉_d many_o thing_n every_o one_o according_a to_o it_o be_v degree_n diverslie_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n as_o we_o shall_v make_v manifest_a in_o those_o occasion_n that_o will_v offer_v themselves_o wherein_o to_o examine_v they_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v conformable_a to_o the_o ancient_a belief_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o hold_v the_o point_n of_o doctrine_n or_o action_n that_o the_o father_n have_v hold_v to_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n according_a to_o some_o of_o these_o kind_n of_o necessity_n and_o to_o reject_v the_o other_o but_o to_o conform_v ourselves_o to_o the_o ancient_a belief_n and_o catholic_a practice_n we_o must_v hold_v for_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n all_o those_o thing_n that_o the_o father_n have_v hold_v to_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n in_o that_o degree_n and_o according_a to_o those_o kind_n of_o necessity_n as_o they_o have_v hold_v they_o the_o fowrth_a observation_n be_v upon_o the_o word_n father_n which_o some_o when_o it_o come_v to_o the_o effect_n of_o their_o promise_n to_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o antiquity_n will_v restrain_v to_o the_o first_o or_o second_o age_n after_o the_o apostle_n not_o that_o they_o hope_v to_o find_v in_o that_o space_n of_o time_n any_o thing_n in_o their_o behalf_n but_o because_o the_o church_n be_v then_o oppress_v with_o persecution_n there_o remain_v to_o we_o so_o few_o write_n of_o that_o date_n and_o those_o against_o person_n and_o about_o point_n for_o the_o most_o part_n so_o differ_v from_o the_o disputation_n of_o this_o present_a age_n as_o the_o face_n of_o the_o ancient_a doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n can_v evidentlie_o appear_v to_o be_v therein_o represent_v now_o equity_n will_v that_o be_v to_o compare_v the_o state_n of_o the_o society_n of_o this_o age_n which_o pretend_v to_o the_o title_n of_o
the_o catholic_n church_n with_o the_o state_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n we_o shall_v look_v to_o take_v such_o a_o time_n wherein_o not_o only_o our_o competitor_n may_v agree_v with_o we_o that_o the_o church_n of_o the_o father_n be_v still_o the_o true_a church_n the_o true_a spouse_n of_o christ_n she_o in_o who_o reside_v the_o lawful_a authority_n to_o judge_v question_n in_o religion_n but_o also_o those_o monument_n do_v sufficient_o remain_v to_o we_o to_o manifest_v thorough_o all_o her_o doctrine_n and_o all_o her_o observation_n which_o can_v never_o be_v better_o choose_v for_o both_o part_n then_o in_o the_o time_n wherein_o the_o four_o first_o counsel_n be_v hold_v that_o be_v to_o say_v from_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n who_o be_v the_o first_o emperor_n that_o be_v publicklie_o a_o christian_n to_o the_o emperor_n marcian_n and_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o that_o his_o majesty_n have_v yield_v to_o this_o and_o also_o more_o liberal_o in_o some_o of_o his_o write_n have_v extend_v this_o space_n to_o the_o first_o five_o age_n for_o beside_o that_o the_o delivery_n from_o the_o yoke_n and_o subjection_n of_o the_o pagan_n than_o give_v the_o church_n mean_v to_o speak_v loud_o and_o to_o have_v more_o communication_n with_o all_o her_o part_n situate_v in_o so_o many_o different_a region_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o to_o flourish_v in_o a_o great_a multitude_n of_o learned_a and_o excellent_a writer_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o there_o remain_v to_o we_o without_o comparison_n more_o monument_n of_o those_o age_n wherein_o to_o view_v the_o entire_a form_n of_o the_o ancient_a christian_a religion_n then_o of_o the_o former_a age_n beside_o this_o i_o say_v our_o adversary_n can_v deny_v but_o that_o church_n which_o nurse_v up_o the_o first_o christian_a emperor_n which_o root_v out_o the_o temple_n and_o service_n of_o the_o false_a god_n which_o exercise_v the_o sove_o reign_v tribunal_n of_o spiritual_a authority_n upon_o earth_n by_o the_o condemnation_n which_o she_o denounce_v upon_o the_o four_o most_o famous_a heresy_n in_o the_o four_o first_o general_n counsel_n which_o be_v the_o four_o first_o parliament_n and_o estate_n general_a of_o christ_n kingdom_n must_v be_v she_o of_o who_o it_o have_v 54._o be_v foretell_v that_o king_n shall_v be_v she_o nurse_v father_n that_o the_o nation_n shall_v walk_v in_o her_o light_n and_o king_n in_o the_o brightness_n of_o her_o rise_n that_o every_o engine_n set_v up_o against_o she_o shall_v be_v destroy_v that_o she_o shall_v judge_v every_o tongue_n that_o shall_v resist_v she_o in_o judgement_n that_o god_n have_v set_v watchman_n upon_o her_o wall_n which_o never_o shall_v be_v silent_a by_o day_n or_o night_n 18._o that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o she_o that_o whosoever_o shall_v not_o obey_v she_o shall_v be_v hold_v for_o a_o heathen_a and_o a_o publican_n 3._o and_o in_o brief_a that_o she_o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o foundation_n of_o truth_n shall_v we_o loubt_v say_v s._n augustin_n who_o live_v in_o the_o betweene-time_n of_o these_o first_o 〈◊〉_d four_o counsel_n to_o set_v our-selnes_a in_o the_o lap_n of_o that_o church_n which_o by_o succession_n of_o bishop_n from_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o apostle_n even_o to_o the_o confession_n of_o all_o mankind_n the_o heretic_n in_o vain_a bark_n about_o she_o and_o be_v condemn_v partly_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o people_n themselves_o part_n lie_v by_o the_o gravity_n of_o counsel_n and_o partly_o by_o the_o majesty_n of_o miracle_n have_v obtain_v full_a authority_n to_o who_o not_o to_o give_v the_o pre-eminence_n must_v be_v a_o act_n of_o extreme_a impiety_n or_o of_o a_o heady_a arrogancy_n and_o again_o 5._o the_o catholic_n church_n fight_v against_o all_o heresy_n may_v be_v oppose_v but_o she_o can_v be_v overthrow_v all_o heresy_n be_v come_v forth_o from_o she_o as_o unprofitable_a branch_n cut_v from_o their_o vine_n but_o she_o remain_v in_o her_o root_n in_o her_o vine_n in_o her_o charity_n let_v that_o then_o be_v hold_v for_o true_o ancient_a and_o mark_v with_o the_o character_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n which_o shall_v be_v find_v to_o have_v be_v believe_v and_o practise_v universallie_o by_o the_o father_n which_o live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o first_o four_o counsel_n and_o principal_o when_o it_o shall_v appear_v to_o we_o that_o the_o thing_n testify_v to_o we_o by_o the_o author_n of_o those_o age_n be_v not_o hold_v by_o they_o for_o doctrine_n or_o observation_n spring_v up_o in_o their_o time_n but_o for_o doctrine_n or_o observation_n which_o have_v be_v perpetuallie_o practise_v in_o the_o church_n from_o the_o age_n of_o the_o apostle_n although_o perchance_o there_o can_v not_o be_v find_v for_o every_o of_o they_o in_o particular_a so_o express_v testimony_n in_o the_o former_a age_n as_o in_o those_o of_o the_o first_o four_o counsel_n because_o of_o the_o few_o write_n which_o the_o persecution_n of_o those_o time_n have_v suffer_v to_o come_v to_o our_o hand_n for_o it_o suffice_v to_o assure_v we_o of_o the_o perpetual_a use_n of_o such_o thing_n that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o four_o counsel_n who_o have_v more_o knowledge_n of_o the_o age_n before_o they_o than_o we_o can_v have_v do_v testify_v to_o we_o to_o have_v believe_v and_o practise_v they_o not_o as_o thing_n institute_v in_o their_o age_n but_o as_o thing_n that_o have_v always_o have_v place_n in_o the_o church_n and_o have_v come_v to_o they_o by_o a_o succession_n of_o observation_n from_o the_o apostle_n down_o to_o their_o time_n and_o that_o there_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o former_a author_n any_o testimony_n against_o they_o but_o contrariwise_o in_o all_o place_n where_o there_o be_v occasion_n to_o mention_v they_o agreeable_a and_o favourable_a testimony_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o brief_a that_o be_v to_o be_v hold_v ancient_a by_o we_o which_o those_o who_o we_o account_v ancient_a have_v themselves_o hold_v to_o be_v ancient_a the_o five_o observation_n be_v upon_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o father_n which_o some_o contentious_a spirit_n will_v have_v to_o be_v when_o one_o selfesame_a thing_n be_v actuallie_o find_v in_o the_o write_n of_o all_o the_o father_n which_o be_v a_o unjust_a and_o impertinent_a pretence_n for_o to_o have_v a_o doctrine_n or_o observation_n to_o be_v true_o hold_v by_o the_o father_n for_o universal_a and_o catholic_a it_o be_v not_o necessary_a it_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o write_n of_o all_o the_o father_n who_o have_v not_o all_o write_v of_o the_o same_o matter_n and_o of_o who_o write_n all_o have_v not_o come_v to_o our_o hand_n but_o there_o be_v two_o other_o lawful_a way_n to_o secure_v ourselves_o of_o they_o the_o one_o be_v when_o the_o most_o eminent_a father_n of_o every_o country_n agree_v in_o the_o affirmation_n of_o the_o same_o doctrine_n or_o practice_n and_o that_o none_o of_o the_o other_o that_o have_v be_v without_o note_n of_o dissension_n from_o the_o church_n have_v oppose_v it_o as_o when_o s._n augustin_n have_v cite_v against_o the_o pelagian_n the_o 2._o testimony_n of_o eleven_o eminent_a father_n all_o consent_n in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o doctrine_n he_o suppose_v he_o have_v sufficient_o produce_v against_o they_o the_o common_a belief_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o when_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n have_v produce_v ten_o father_n of_o former_a age_n they_o conceive_v they_o have_v sufficient_o express_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o former_a church_n against_o nestorius_n vincent_n his_o doctrine_n because_o none_o say_v vincentius_n lerinensis_n doubtetb_v but_o 42_o that_o those_o ten_o do_v true_o hold_v the_o same_o with_o all_o their_o other_o brother_n the_o other_o be_v when_o the_o father_n speak_v not_o as_o doctor_n but_o as_o witness_n of_o the_o custom_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o curch_n of_o their_o time_n and_o do_v not_o say_v i_o believe_v this_o shall_v be_v so_o hold_v or_o so_o understand_v or_o so_o observe_v but_o that_o the_o church_n from_o one_o end_n of_o the_o earth_n to_o the_o other_o believe_v it_o so_o or_o observe_v it_o so_o for_o than_o we_o no_o long_o hold_v what_o they_o say_v for_o a_o thing_n say_v by_o they_o but_o as_o a_o thing_n say_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o principal_o when_o it_o be_v in_o point_n whereof_o they_o can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a either_o because_o of_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o thing_n as_o in_o matter_n of_o fact_n or_o because_o of_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o person_n and_o in_o this_o case_n we_o argue_v no_o more_o upon_o their_o word_n probable_o as_o we_o do_v when_o they_o speak_v in_o the_o quality_n of_o particular_a doctor_n but_o we_o argue_v thereupon_o demonstrativelie_a that_o then_o
he_o father_n who_o will_v not_o have_v the_o church_n for_o his_o mother_n 〈◊〉_d that_o christ_n be_v not_o with_o those_o that_o assemble_v out_o of_o the_o church_n 〈◊〉_d that_o although_o they_o shall_v be_v slay_v for_o the_o confession_n of_o christ_n this_o spot_n be_v not_o wash_v away_o even_o with_o blood_n 〈◊〉_d that_o he_o can_v be_v à_fw-fr martyr_n that_o be_v not_o in_o the_o church_n 〈◊〉_d that_o out_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n one_o may_v have_v faith_n sacrament_n order_n and_o in_o sum_n every_o thing_n except_o salvation_n 〈◊〉_d that_o he_o that_o communicate_v not_o with_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v a_o heretic_n and_o antichrist_n 19_o that_o no_o heretic_n nor_o schismatic_n that_o be_v not_o restore_v to_o the_o catholic_a church_n before_o the_o end_n of_o this_o life_n can_v be_v save_v if_o they_o have_v believe_v that_o all_o the_o sect_n that_o profess_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n both_o heretic_n and_o schismatickes_n have_v be_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n three_o by_o the_o word_n catholic_a church_n they_o do_v not_o intend_v a_o church_n interrupt_v and_o intermit_a as_o that_o of_o the_o protestants_n which_o be_v bear_v 5_o and_o die_v by_o fit_n like_o the_o tyndaride_n but_o such_o a_o church_n as_o these_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n describe_v 54._o as_o in_o in_o the_o day_n of_o no_n i_o swear_v that_o i_o will_v no_o more_o bring_v the_o water_n of_o the_o flood_n upon_o the_o earth_n so_o have_v i_o swear_v i_o will_v no_o more_o be_v angry_a against_o thou_o 92_o thou_o shall_v no_o more_o be_v call_v the_o forsake_a 37_o i_o will_v place_v my_o sanctification_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o for_o ever_o 8._o i_o will_v no_o more_o do_v to_o the_o rest_n of_o this_o people_n as_o in_o time_n past_a and_o these_o of_o our_o lord_n 16._o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o she_o 〈◊〉_d i_o be_o with_o you_o until_o the_o consummation_n of_o all_o age_n 〈◊〉_d the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n shall_v dwell_v with_o you_o eternal_o 〈◊〉_d let_v the_o one_o grow_v with_o the_o other_o until_o the_o harvest_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o church_n permanent_a eternal_a and_o not_o capable_a of_o ruin_n 〈◊〉_d we_o acknowledge_v say_v that_o great_a alexander_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n one_o only_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n which_o eulex_n as_o she_o can_v never_o be_v root_v out_o though_o all_o the_o world_n shall_v undertake_v to_o oppose_v she_o so_o she_o outhrowe_v disperse_v all_o the_o wicked_a assaulth_n of_o heretic_n and_o saint_n athanasius_n orat_fw-la the_o church_n be_v invincible_a though_o hell_n itself_o shall_v arise_v with_o all_o the_o power_n thereof_o against_o she_o and_o theophilus_n hierom._n god_n in_o all_o time_n grant_v oneself_o grace_n to_o his_o church_n to_o wit_n that_o that_o body_n shall_v be_v keep_v entire_a and_o that_o the_o venom_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o heretic_n shall_v have_v no_o power_n over_o she_o and_o saint_n augustine_n in_o the_o commentary_n upon_o the_o 47._o psalm_n 67._o god_n say_v he_o have_v found_v she_o eternal_o let_v not_o heretic_n divide_v into_o faction_n boast_n let_v they_o not_o lift_v themselves_o up_o that_o say_v here_o be_v christ_n and_o there_o be_v christ._n and_o again_o but_o perchance_o this_o city_n that_o have_v possess_v the_o whole_a world_n shall_v be_v one_o day_n ruin_v never_o may_v it_o happen_v god_n have_v found_v she_o eternal_o if_o then_o god_n have_v found_v she_o eternal_o wherefore_o fear_v thou_o that_o 101._o her_o foundation_n shall_v fall_v and_o in_o the_o commentary_n upon_o the_o 101._o psalm_n but_o his_o church_n which_o have_v be_v of_o all_o nation_n be_v no_o more_o she_o be_v perish_v so_o say_v they_o that_o be_v not_o in_o she_o o_o impudent_a voice_n and_o a_o little_a after_o this_o voice_n so_o abominable_a so_o detestable_a so_o full_a of_o presumption_n and_o falsehood_n which_o be_v sustain_v with_o no_o truth_n illuminate_v with_o no_o wisdom_n season_v with_o no_o salt_n vain_a rash_a heady_a pernicious_a the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v foresee_v it_o and_o in_o the_o treaty_n of_o the_o christian_a combat_n they_o say_v the_o whole_a church_n be_v perish_v and_o 29._o the_o relic_n remain_v only_o on_o donatus_n his_o side_n o_o proud_a and_o impious_a tongue_n and_o in_o the_o work_n of_o baptism_n against_o the_o donatist_n if_o the_o church_n veer_v perish_v in_o cyprian_n time_n from_o whence_o do_v donatus_n appear_v from_o what_o earth_n be_v he_o spring_v up_o from_o what_o sea_n be_v he_o come_v forth_o from_o what_o heaven_n be_v he_o fall_v and_o in_o the_o three_o book_n against_o parmenian_n how_o can_v they_o vaunt_v to_o have_v any_o church_n if_o she_o have_v cease_v from_o those_o time_n and_o in_o the_o explication_n 2._o of_o the_o creed_n to_o the_o cathecumeniste_n the_o catholic_a church_n be_v she_o that_o sight_v with_o all_o heresy_n may_v be_v oppose_v but_o can_v be_v overthrow_v 3._o all_o heresy_n be_v come_v out_o from_o she_o as_o unprofitable_a branch_n cut_v from_o the_o vine_n but_o she_o stay_v in_o her_o vine_n in_o her_o root_n in_o her_o charity_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n 5._o shall_v never_o overthrow_v she_o behold_v without_o colour_n or_o fraud_n what_o the_o father_n be_v understand_v by_o the_o word_n catholic_a church_n to_o wit_n a_o church_n visible_a and_o eminent_a above_o all_o other_o christian_a society_n a_o church_n pure_a from_o all_o contagion_n of_o schism_n and_o heresy_n a_o church_n perpetual_a and_o which_o have_v never_o suffer_v nor_o never_o can_v suffer_v any_o interruption_n neither_o in_o her_o faith_n in_o her_o communion_n nor_o in_o her_o visibilitie_n this_o church_n if_o the_o most_o excellent_a king_n have_v let_v hin_n give_v she_o to_o we_o if_o not_o let_v he_o receive_v 6._o she_o from_o we_o aut_fw-la det_fw-la as_o saint_n austin_n say_v to_o the_o donatist_n aut_fw-la accipiat_fw-la of_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o father_n for_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n chap._n iii_o the_o pursuit_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n the_o king_n commend_v also_o the_o prudence_n of_o the_o religious_a bishop_n who_o in_o the_o 4_o council_n of_o carthage_n as_o it_o be_v here_o true_o observe_v add_v to_o the_o form_n of_o the_o examination_n of_o bishop_n a_o particular_a interrogatory_n upon_o this_o point_n and_o his_o majesty_n be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n have_v oftentimes_o do_v many_o thing_n by_o form_n of_o accommodation_n for_o the_o good_a of_o peace_n and_o to_o the_o end_n to_o prevent_v the_o breach_n of_o unity_n and_o mutual_a communion_n who_o example_n he_o protest_v he_o be_v 〈◊〉_d to_o imitate_v and_o to_o follow_v the_o step_n of_o those_o that_o procure_v peace_n even_o to_o the_o altar_n that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o much_o as_o in_o the_o present_a estate_n of_o the_o church_n the_o integrity_n of_o his_o conscience_n will_v permit_v he_o for_o he_o will_v give_v place_n to_o none_o either_o in_o extreme_a grief_n he_o suffer_v for_o the_o separation_n of_o the_o member_n of_o the_o churdh_n which_o the_o good_a father_n have_v so_o much_o detest_v or_o in_o his_o dosire_n to_o communicate_v if_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o he_o with_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o mystical_a body_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus-christ_n the_o reply_n it_o be_v not_o by_o way_n of_o prudence_n as_o prudence_n signify_v a_o human_a virtue_n that_o the_o father_n pronounce_v this_o decree_n that_o out_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n salvation_n can_v not_o be_v obtain_v but_o by_o way_n of_o decision_n and_o as_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n for_o this_o cause_n say_v saint_n augustine_n upon_o the_o creed_n 10._o the_o conclusion_n of_o this_o sacrament_n be_v determine_v by_o the_o holy_a church_n for_o as_o much_o as_o if_o any_o one_o be_v find_v on_o it_o of_o it_o he_o shall_v be_v exclude_v from_o the_o number_n of_o the_o child_n and_o he_o shall_v not_o have_v god_n for_o his_o father_n that_o will_v not_o have_v the_o church_n for_o his_o mother_n and_o it_o shall_v serve_v he_o for_o nothing_o to_o have_v believe_v or_o do_v so_o many_o and_o so_o many_o good_a work_n without_o the_o true_a end_n or_o butt_n of_o the_o sooner_o aigne_v good_a and_o saint_n fulgentius_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d faith_n hold_v this_o firm_o and_o doubt_v it_o not_o that_o every_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n haptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n if_o before_o the_o end_n 39_o of_o this_o life_n he_o be_v not_o reunite_v to_o the_o church_n catholic_a whatsoever_o alm_n he_o distribute_v yea_o though_o he_o shall_v shed_v his_o blood_n for_o the_o name_n
of_o christ_n can_v be_v save_v and_o that_o which_o the_o father_n have_v do_v to_o hinder_v the_o breach_n of_o peace_n and_o of_o mutual_a communion_n have_v pass_v no_o further_o then_o either_o to_o tolerate_v some_o local_a and_o particular_a custom_n which_o bring_v more_o burden_n than_o profit_n as_o the_o custom_n some_o african_n have_v not_o to_o touch_v the_o ground_n with_o their_o naked_a foot_n in_o the_o octave_n of_o their_o baptism_n or_o to_o endure_v the_o manner_n and_o conversation_n of_o some_o vicious_a man_n without_o applyinge_v the_o iron_n &_o corrosive_n of_o excommunication_n for_o fear_n of_o dividinge_v the_o church_n instead_o of_o purginge_v it_o from_o wicked_a person_n from_o whence_o proceed_v that_o famous_a sentence_n of_o saint_n augustine_n they_o tolerate_v for_o the_o good_a of_o 〈◊〉_d unity_n that_o which_o they_o hate_v for_o the_o good_a of_o equity_n as_o for_o that_o which_o they_o have_v do_v for_o the_o reestablishment_n of_o peace_n it_o have_v beme_fw-mi extend_v to_o the_o yeeldinge_n something_o in_o the_o severity_n of_o discipline_n for_o when_o arrian_n or_o donatist_n bishop_n come_v back_o to_o the_o church_n the_o church_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o people_n which_o follow_v they_o receive_v they_o by_o a_o form_n of_o general_a rehabilitation_n with_o faculty_n to_o exercise_v their_o episcopal_a power_n now_o this_o be_v against_o the_o ordinary_a rigour_n of_o the_o canon_n and_o therefore_o saint_n augustine_n 50._o have_v from_o thence_o take_v occasion_n to_o say_v have_v as_o the_o tree_n that_o be_v inoculate_v receive_v a_o wound_n in_o their_o bark_n to_o give_v way_n to_o those_o branch_n that_o shall_v be_v graff_v in_o so_o the_o church_n receive_v a_o wound_n in_o her_o discipline_n to_o the_o end_n to_o take_v in_o and_o reincorporate_v heretical_a people_n which_o be_v convert_v and_o return_v together_o with_o their_o bishop_n but_o not_o that_o the_o love_n of_o peace_n have_v ever_o transport_v the_o father_n so_o far_o as_o to_o yield_v never_o so_o little_a in_o matter_n of_o faith_n contrariwise_o saint_n basile_n witness_v a_o that_o they_o 〈◊〉_d have_v always_o rather_o choose_v to_o suffer_v a_o thousand_o death_n then_o to_o b_o betray_v one_o syllable_n thereof_o and_o saint_n epiphanius_n recite_v by_o saint_n jerom_n say_v c_o that_o for_o one_o word_n or_o two_o contrary_a to_o faith_n many_o heresy_n have_v be_v cast_v forth_o of_o the_o church_n and_o s._n augustine_n 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o thing_n contrary_a unto_o faith_n and_o good_a manner_n the_o church_n do_v neither_o approve_v they_o conceal_v they_o nor_o do_v 〈◊〉_d they_o therefore_o his_o majesty_n ought_v not_o to_o have_v fear_v to_o imitate_v whole_o the_o zeal_n of_o the_o father_n for_o the_o good_a of_o peace_n and_o to_o do_v for_o the_o restore_n the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n all_o thing_n that_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n have_v approve_v practise_v &_o teach_v neither_o ought_v he_o to_o have_v add_v to_o his_o offer_n the_o exception_n of_o that_o proverb_n even_o to_o the_o altar_n since_o our_o of_o the_o true_a church_n such_o as_o be_v that_o of_o the_o father_n to_o who_o only_a condition_n we_o exact_v his_o majesty_n communion_n with_o we_o there_o be_v no_o true_a altar_n but_o only_a altar_n agaiust_a altar_n that_o be_v to_o say_v profane_a and_o schismatical_a altar_n as_o those_o of_o jeroboam_fw-la be_v and_o the_o high_a place_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n nor_o final_o shall_v he_o limit_v the_o desire_n he_o have_v to_o communicate_v with_o all_o the_o true_a member_n of_o the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n within_o this_o condition_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o it_o be_v so_o possible_a to_o communicate_v with_o all_o the_o actual_a member_n of_o the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n that_o con_v trariwise_o it_o be_v impossible_a except_o in_o case_n of_o error_n of_o fact_n to_o communicate_v with_o any_o one_o of_o they_o but_o you_o must_v communicate_v either_o immediate_o or_o mediate_o with_o all_o the_o rest_n for_o the_o church_n be_v that_o society_n 122._o whereof_o david_n say_v jerusalem_n which_o be_v build_v as_o a_o city_n who_o participation_n be_v in_o unity_n and_o saint_n cyprian_n the_o catholic_a church_n pupp_n which_o be_v one_o be_v not_o dismember_v nor_o divide_v but_o keep_v herself_o unite_v and_o be_v glue_v together_o by_o the_o cement_n of_o the_o prelate_n adheringe_v the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o and_o saint_n augustine_n those_o who_o communion_n be_v not_o with_o all_o or_o that_o 4._o do_v spread_v themselves_o but_o yet_o find_v themselves_o in_o some_o part_n divide_v it_o be_v manifest_a they_o be_v not_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o again_o whosoever_o defend_v one_o 101._o part_n separate_v from_o the_o rest_n let_v he_o not_o usurp_v the_o title_n of_o catholic_a and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n it_o may_v be_v will_v some_o one_o say_v that_o there_o be_v other_o 〈◊〉_d of_o 13._o god_n i_o know_v not_o where_o whereof_o god_n have_v care_n but_o i_o know_v they_o not_o but_o he_o be_v too_o absurd_a even_o in_o common_a sense_n that_o imagine_v such_o thing_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o communicatinge_v with_o the_o catholic_a church_n chap._n iu._n the_o pursuit_n of_o the_o king_n answer_v these_o thing_n be_v so_o the_o king_n nevertheless_o esteem_v that_o he_o have_v very_o just_a cause_n to_o dissent_v from_o they_o who_o without_o any_o distinction_n and_o exception_n 〈◊〉_d press_n this_o communion_n the_o reply_n 11_o there_o be_v say_v saint_n augustine_n no_o just_a necessity_n to_o divide_v unity_n 4._o and_o there_o be_v say_v again_o the_o same_o doctor_n no_o assurance_n of_o unity_n but_o in_o the_o church_n which_o build_v according_a to_o god_n promise_n upon_o the_o mountain_n can_v be_v hide_v for_o beside_o that_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o church_n be_v so_o easy_a and_o so_o certain_a as_o saint_n austin_n say_v 〈◊〉_d i_o have_v the_o most_o manifest_a voice_n of_o my_o pastor_n who_o express_v to_o i_o and_o point_n i_o out_o the_o church_n without_o any_o ambiguity_n and_o again_o 20_o this_o be_v no_o obscure_a question_n wherein_o they_o may_v deceive_v you_o of_o who_o the_o lord_n have_v foretell_v that_o they_o shall_v come_v and_o say_v here_o be_v christ_n and_o that_o the_o particular_a examination_n of_o faith_n contrariwise_o be_v so_o dangerous_a and_o difficult_a as_o yet_o most_o learned_a have_v deceive_v themselves_o in_o it_o and_o as_o saint_n jerom_n cry_v out_o there_o be_v great_a danger_n in_o 1._o speak_v in_o the_o church_n for_o fear_v least_o by_o a_o wrong_n interpretation_n the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v make_v the_o gospel_n of_o a_o man_n or_o which_o be_v worse_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o devil_n there_o be_v further_o this_o difference_n which_o be_v that_o he_o who_o have_v the_o church_n be_v sure_o to_o adhere_v to_o the_o true_a faith_n though_o he_o know_v not_o distinct_o all_o the_o article_n thereof_o and_o that_o he_o be_v in_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n where_o he_o that_o have_v faith_n and_o be_v not_o in_o the_o church_n have_v no_o hope_n of_o salvation_n if_o i_o have_v all_o faith_n say_v saint_n paul_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 13._o not_o charity_n i_o be_o nothing_o and_o saint_n augustin_n he_o that_o have_v charity_n be_v secure_a 21._o and_o none_o can_v transport_v charity_n out_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o elsewhere_o 5._o if_o schismatickes_n have_v charity_n they_o will_v not_o rend_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o church_n by_o mean_n whereof_o as_o much_o as_o charity_n be_v more_o excellent_a than_o faith_n follow_v that_o oracle_n of_o the_o apostle_n 13._o but_o the_o great_a of_o the_o three_o be_v charity_n so_o much_o the_o instance_n of_o the_o church_n be_v more_o necessary_a then_o that_o of_o faith_n 10._o above_o all_o these_o thing_n say_v saint_n paul_n hold_v charity_n which_o be_v the_o bond_n of_o perfection_n and_o let_v the_o peace_n of_o christ_n whereby_o you_o have_v be_v call_v into_o one_o body_n hold_v the_o principal_a place_n in_o your_o heart_n and_o again_o let_v we_o not_o for_o sake_n our_o congregation_n as_o some_o have_v accustom_v to_o do_v and_o saint_n jude_n woe_n be_v to_o those_o that_o perish_v in_o the_o contradiction_n of_o core_n and_o a_o while_n after_o people_z that_z separate_z themselves_o sensual_a man_n not_o have_v the_o spirit_n and_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n so_o acknowledge_v by_o the_o father_n that_o they_o affirm_v that_o faith_n itself_o turn_v to_o increase_v of_o damnation_n to_o those_o that_o possess_v it_o out_o of_o the_o church_n yea_o they_o hold_v the_o crime_n of_o schism_n to_o be_v worse_o than_o that_o of_o infidelity_n and_o idolatry_n 8._o those_o say_v saint_n austin_n who_o
the_o scripture_n shall_v be_v infallible_a and_o necessary_o agreeable_a to_o its_o principle_n to_o wit_n either_o human_a discourse_n or_o private_a inspiration_n or_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o external_a mean_v interpose_v from_o god_n between_o the_o scripture_n and_o we_o as_o the_o magistrate_n between_o the_o law_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o the_o people_n to_o interpret_v to_o we_o the_o word_n to_o gather_v the_o sense_n and_o to_o sorme_v and_o propound_v the_o conclusion_n for_o to_o say_v that_o one_o passage_n of_o scripture_n shall_v be_v interpret_v by_o a_o other_o beside_o that_o there_o be_v diverse_a singular_a text_n wherein_o this_o pretention_n can_v have_v no_o place_n this_o be_v still_o to_o return_v to_o the_o same_o difficulty_n because_o one_o will_v have_v the_o controverted_a place_n interpret_v by_o one_o passage_n and_o the_o other_o will_v have_v it_o interpret_v by_o a_o other_o and_o the_o very_a sense_n of_o the_o passage_n which_o shall_v be_v bring_v to_o clear_v the_o controverted_a place_n will_v again_o be_v bring_v into_o dispute_n and_o can_v be_v infallible_o decide_v but_o by_o a_o infallible_a means_n which_o must_v necessary_o be_v one_o of_o these_o three_o to_o wit_n either_o humane_a discourse_n or_o private_a inspiration_n or_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o external_a judge_n and_o from_o this_o the_o verse_n of_o nehemias_n derogate_v not_o which_o be_v accord_v to_o the_o impression_n of_o geneva_n and_o they_o interpret_v the_o law_n by_o the_o scripture_n for_o it_o must_v be_v read_v with_o saint_n jerome_n they_o whilst_o it_o be_v read_v understand_v it_o the_o word_n mikra_fw-mi never_o have_v bone_n employ_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o signify_v scripture_n but_o only_o in_o the_o rabine_n 〈◊〉_d as_o rabbi_n elias_n and_o 〈◊〉_d munster_n 〈◊〉_d and_o we_o after_o they_o have_v other_o where_o demonstrate_v now_o as_o for_o humane_a discourse_n if_o in_o the_o conclusion_n draw_v from_o principle_n which_o be_v know_v and_o understand_v natural_o as_o be_v the_o principle_n of_o natural_a philosophy_n and_o metaphysic_n it_o be_v subject_a to_o commit_v so_o many_o error_n what_o shall_v it_o do_v in_o that_o who_o principle_n be_v not_o know_v and_o understand_v but_o by_o a_o supernatural_a light_n david_n say_v to_o god_n 118._o enlighten_v my_o eye_n and_o i_o will_v consider_v the_o marvel_n of_o thy_o law_n and_o thereupon_o saint_n jerome_n cry_v out_o 〈◊〉_d if_o so_o great_a a_o prophet_n confess_v the_o darkness_n of_o his_o ignorance_n what_o shall_v become_v of_o we_o little_a babe_n and_o the_o scripture_n teach_v we_o that_o the_o principle_n of_o faith_n ought_v to_o be_v understand_v by_o the_o very_a same_o authority_n either_o mediate_a or_o immediate_a of_o he_o that_o reveal_v they_o 〈◊〉_d jesus_n say_v saint_n luke_n open_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o the_o disciple_n and_o saint_n john_n 〈◊〉_d the_o lamb_n be_v find_v worthy_a to_o open_v the_o book_n seal_v with_o seven_o seal_n and_o the_o eunuch_n of_o the_o queen_n of_o ethiopia_n be_v demand_v by_o s._n philip_n whether_o he_o understand_v what_o he_o read_v 8_o how_o shall_v i_o understand_v say_v he_o here_o be_v none_o to_o 〈◊〉_d it_o to_o i_o and_o saint_n peter_n 1_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o of_o private_a interpretation_n and_o again_o 3_o there_o be_v in_o the_o epistle_n of_o our_o brother_n paul_n thing_n hard_a to_o be_v understand_v that_o ignorant_a and_o light-minded_n man_n 〈◊〉_d as_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o scripture_n mark_n as_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o their_o own_o perdition_n and_o not_o only_o ignorant_a and_o light-minded_n man_n too_o glorious_a peter_n but_o even_o the_o learned_a and_o most_o learned_a for_o who_o where_o ever_o more_o learned_a than_o those_o who_o fall_v s._n vincentius_n lyrinensis_n do_v propound_v for_o example_n of_o the_o temptation_n of_o the_o faithful_a what_o tertullian_n of_o who_o he_o say_v 24_o as_o many_o word_n so_o many_o sentence_n as_o many_o sentence_n so_o many_o victory_n what_o origen_n of_o who_o he_o write_v 23._o what_o christian_n do_v not_o honour_v he_o as_o a_o prophet_n philosopher_n do_v not_o reverence_v he_o as_o a_o master_n what_o apollinarius_n of_o who_o he_o cry_v out_o 16._o what_o spirit_n do_v ever_o surmount_v he_o in_o subtility_n excercise_n and_o doctrine_n if_o so_o many_o great_a and_o admirable_a personage_n eminent_a in_o piety_n and_o incomparable_a in_o all_o kind_n of_o science_n tertulians_n origen_n appollinares_n assoon_o as_o they_o have_v withdraw_v the_o reins_n of_o their_o spirit_n from_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n to_o put_v they_o to_o the_o guidance_n of_o their_o particular_a discourse_n be_v fall_v into_o so_o deep_a and_o fearful_a precipice_n and_o pit_n of_o heresy_n who_o shall_v dare_v to_o assure_v himself_o upon_o his_o own_o particular_a sense_n concern_v the_o true_a and_o infallible_a under_o stand_v of_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o in_o all_o the_o controversy_n of_o faith_n in_o any_o one_o of_o which_o to_o 〈◊〉_d and_o make_v a_o sect_n be_v to_o fall_v from_o the_o title_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o loose_a salvation_n in_o all_o but_o why_o shall_v we_o have_v recourse_n to_o argument_n where_o experience_n speak_v for_o as_o natural_o all_o man_n agree_v in_o confess_v the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o mathematics_n because_o in_o that_o kind_n of_o science_n humane_a discourse_n be_v infallible_a so_o if_o in_o the_o consequence_n which_o be_v draw_v by_o interpretation_n from_o scripture_n humane_a discourse_n be_v a_o infallible_a mean_n all_o man_n will_v natural_o agree_v in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o scripture_n now_o how_o far_o they_o be_v from_o that_o the_o only_a state_n of_o the_o controversy_n of_o this_o age_n do_v manifest_a wherein_o the_o lutheran_n the_o caluiniste_n the_o simple_a ana_n baptist_n the_o seruetian_o or_o new_a arrian_n which_o all_o profess_v to_o tie_v themselves_o to_o the_o scripture_n can_v by_o the_o scripture_n agree_v in_o any_o one_o of_o their_o question_n and_o do_v no_o more_o accord_n one_o with_o a_o other_o then_o if_o they_o have_v bear_v away_o the_o laurel_n from_o the_o tomb_n of_o bibrias_fw-la and_o as_o for_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o particular_a spirit_n beside_o the_o danger_n of_o those_o strong_a imagination_n that_o saint_n august_n call_v prol_n proud_a and_o perilous_a temptation_n which_o may_v be_v mistake_v for_o inspiration_n and_o beside_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o mean_n whereby_o the_o contention_n about_o the_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v decide_v shall_v be_v common_a either_o in_o deed_n or_o in_o right_a to_o both_o party_n contest_v where_o as_o the_o private_a inspiration_n that_o one_o of_o the_o party_n pretende_v be_v no_o common_a mean_n neither_o in_o deed_n nor_o in_o right_a to_o the_o other_o the_o scripture_n advertise_v we_o that_o 11._o the_o angel_n of_o satan_n transform_v himself_o into_o the_o angel_n of_o light_n and_o command_v we_o 4._o to_o examine_v the_o spirit_n and_o discern_v whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n now_o by_o what_o shall_v the_o spirit_n be_v examine_v to_o try_v whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n if_o by_o the_o church_n then_o we_o must_v first_o know_v the_o church_n if_o by_o the_o scripture_n we_o must_v first_o be_v assure_v of_o the_o true_a interpretation_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o to_o examine_v they_o by_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o examine_v they_o by_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o by_o the_o true_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o from_o the_o particular_a inspiration_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n that_o we_o must_v learn_v what_o the_o true_a interpretation_n of_o te_fw-fr scripture_n be_v since_o contrariwise_o it_o be_v from_o the_o scripture_n true_o interpret_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o learn_v whether_o the_o spirit_n that_o inspire_v we_o be_v the_o true_a spirit_n of_o god_n and_o then_o these_o advertisement_n of_o saint_n peter_n 1._o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o of_o private_a interpretation_n 25._o and_o of_o saint_n augusrine_n hold_v not_o private_n truth_n lest_o you_o be_v deprive_v of_o the_o truth_n exclude_v as_o well_o the_o refuge_n of_o particular_a inspiration_n as_o the_o certainty_n of_o humane_a discourse_n now_o if_o neither_o humane_a discourse_n nor_o private_a inspiration_n be_v infallible_a mean_n to_o assure_v a_o particular_a man_n of_o the_o true_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n in_o every_o point_n of_o faith_n but_o that_o he_o must_v have_v recourse_n to_o a_o external_a mean_n interpose_v from_o god_n between_o the_o scripture_n and_o we_o as_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o magistrate_n between_o the_o law_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o the_o people_n to_o draw_v out_o to_o form_n and_o to_o propound_v the_o decision_n for_o we_o what_o can_v this_o mean_n be_v but_o
scripture_n have_v bound_v she_o to_o a_o little_a number_n of_o moor_n of_o the_o cesarian_a province_n than_o we_o must_v go_v to_o the_o rogatist_n if_o to_o a_o little_a company_n of_o tripolitans_n byzacenians_n and_o provincials_n the_o maximianist_n have_v get_v she_o if_o only_o to_o those_o of_o the_o east_n we_o must_v seek_v she_o among_o the_o arrian_n macedonian_n eunomian_o and_o other_o if_o there_o be_v other_o to_o be_v find_v for_o who_o can_v number_v the_o particular_a heresy_n of_o every_o nation_n but_o if_o by_o the_o divine_a and_o most_o certain_a testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n she_o be_v design_v to_o be_v in_o all_o nation_n whatsoever_o be_v allege_v to_o we_o or_o from_o whence_o soever_o it_o be_v allege_v by_o those_o that_o say_v here_o be_v christ_n there_o be_v christ_n if_o we_o be_v sheep_n let_v we_o rather_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o our_o shepherd_n who_o say_v believe_v they_o not_o for_o these_o be_v not_o tobe_v find_v in_o many_o place_n where_o she_o be_v and_o she_o who_o be_v every_o where_o be_v also_o wheresoever_o they_o be_v and_o again_o 20_o my_o sheep_n hear_v my_o voice_n and_o follow_v i_o you_o have_v hear_v his_o most_o manifest_a voice_n recommendinge_v his_o future_a church_n not_o only_o in_o the_o psalm_n and_o in_o the_o prophet_n but_o by_o his_o own_o mouth_n alsoe_o and_o a_o little_a after_o ibidem_fw-la this_o be_v no_o obscure_a question_n and_o wherein_o they_o may_v deceive_v you_o of_o who_o our_o lord_n have_v foretell_v that_o they_o shall_v come_v and_o say_v lo_o here_o be_v christ_n behold_v he_o be_v tbere_fw-la lo_o he_o be_v in_o the_o desert_n that_o be_v to_o say_v out_o of_o the_o frequeneie_n of_o the_o multitud_n behold_v he_o here_o in_o the_o secret_a place_n that_o be_v in_o hide_a tradition_n and_o dark_a doctrine_n you_o hear_v that_o the_o church_n must_v be_v spread_v over_o all_o and_o grow_v to_o the_o harvest_n you_o have_v the_o city_n of_o which_o himself_o that_o build_v it_o say_v the_o city_n build_v upon_o a_o hill_n can_v be_v hide_v it_o be_v then_o she_o that_o be_v not_o in_o any_o single_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n but_o be_v well_o know_v every_o where_o behold_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n that_o saint_n augustine_n affirm_v to_o be_v design_v by_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o pastor_n and_o so_o clear_o design_v as_o they_o need_v no_o interpreter_n to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o church_n be_v know_v by_o they_o we_o may_v after_o by_o the_o church_n be_v inform_v of_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o other_o voice_n of_o the_o pastor_n which_o need_v interpretarion_n 16._o produce_v to_o we_o say_v he_o something_a for_o your_o cause_n which_o can_v be_v interpret_v more_o true_o against_o you_o nay_o which_o at_o all_o need_v no_o interpreter_n as_o these_o word_n in_o thy_o seed_n all_o nation_n shall_v be_v blessed_v need_v no_o interpreter_n 26._o 22._o as_o these_o word_n it_o behove_v that_o christ_n shall_v suffer_v and_o rise_v again_o the_o three_o day_n and_o that_o in_o his_o name_n there_o shall_v be_v preach_v penance_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n through_o all_o nation_n begin_v from_o jerusalem_n have_v no_o need_n of_o a_o interpreter_n etc._n etc._n 24._o as_o these_o word_n and_o this_o gospel_n of_o the_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v preach_v through_o the_o whole_a world_n in_o testimony_n to_o all_o people_n and_o then_o the_o end_n shall_v come_v have_v no_o 13._o need_n of_o a_o interpreter_n as_o these_o word_n let_v both_o grow_v together_o till_o harvest_n have_v no_o need_n of_o a_o interpreter_n for_o when_o they_o have_v need_n of_o a_o interpreter_n our_o lord_n himself_o ineerprete_v they_o for_o even_o as_o when_o a_o testator_n ordain_v some_o one_o to_o interpret_v the_o difficulty_n of_o his_o testament_n and_o that_o the_o name_n o_o this_o interpreter_n be_v common_a and_o equivocal_a to_o many_o the_o testator_n assign_v mark_n in_o his_o 〈◊〉_d to_o make_v he_o know_v the_o clause_n whereby_o he_o design_v the_o mark_n to_o know_v he_o must_v be_v so_o clear_a as_o they_o shall_v need_v no_o interpreter_n since_o it_o be_v by_o they_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v know_v to_o who_o it_o be_v necessary_a they_o shall_v address_v themselves_o to_o make_v they_o understand_v those_o thing_n that_o shall_v need_v interpretation_n so_o god_n have_v promise_v in_o his_o testament_n to_o give_v the_o interpretation_n of_o his_o testament_n to_o the_o church_n the_o word_n whereby_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n be_v there_o design_v must_v be_v so_o clear_a that_o they_o shall_v need_v no_o interpreter_n so_o that_o by_o they_o the_o church_n be_v know_v we_o may_v after_o by_o the_o church_n learn_v the_o understanding_n of_o those_o thing_n that_o need_v a_o interpreter_n and_o therefore_o the_o order_n and_o course_n of_o s._n augustine_n be_v to_o verify_v by_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o have_v not_o need_v of_o a_o interpreter_n the_o external_a and_o sensible_a mark_n '_o of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o external_a and_o sensible_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n the_o church_n itself_o and_o by_o the_o church_n the_o understanding_n of_o those_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o have_v need_n of_o interpretation_n n_o this_o point_n say_v he_o we_o read_v it_o not_o plain_o 16._o and_o evident_o neither_o i_o nor_o thou_o but_o if_o there_o be_v beer_n some_o man_n endue_v with_o wisdom_n to_o who_o our_o lord_n himself_o have_v give_v testimony_n and_o that_o he_o be_v consult_v with_o by_o we_o about_o this_o question_n i_o believe_v we_o will_v nothing_o doubt_n to_o do_v as_o he_o will_v 〈◊〉_d we_o for_o fear_v of_o be_v judge_v repugnant_a not_o so_o much_o to_o he_o as_o to_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n by_o who_o he_o be_v recommend_v now_o he_o give_v testimony_n to_o his_o church_n and_o elsewhere_o 〈◊〉_d whosoever_o then_o fear_v to_o be_v deceive_v through_o the_o obscurity_n of_o this_o question_n let_v he_o consult_v with_o that_o church_n which_o the_o holy_a scripture_n bathe_v design_v without_o 〈◊〉_d ambiguity_n but_o this_o be_v when_o he_o dispute_v with_o the_o donatist_n who_o agree_v with_o the_o catholic_n concern_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o when_o he_o dispute_v with_o the_o manichee_n or_o with_o the_o infidel_n which_o deny_v or_o question_v it_o then_o he_o change_v his_o method_n and_o do_v not_o prove_v to_o they_o the_o church_n by_o the_o scripture_n but_o the_o scripture_n by_o the_o church_n and_o to_o that_o end_n he_o use_v two_o kind_n of_o proceedinge_v 〈◊〉_d the_o one_o be_v to_o put_v it_o for_o a_o ground_n that_o if_o god_n have_v care_n of_o the_o salvation_n of_o man_n as_o without_o this_o principle_n all_o discourse_n of_o religion_n be_v in_o vain_a there_o can_v be_v no_o doubt_n but_o he_o have_v appoint_v a_o mean_n how_o they_o may_v attain_v it_o and_o that_o this_o mean_v not_o consist_v in_o thing_n know_v by_o natural_a reason_n for_o as_o much_o as_o they_o natural_o all_o man_n will_v agree_v in_o it_o it_o be_v they_o of_o necessity_n that_o it_o shall_v consist_v in_o authority_n and_o then_o this_o ground_n benig_v lay_v to_o verify_v that_o among_o all_o the_o society_n of_o religion_n that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n the_o only_a catholic_a church_n have_v the_o true_a mark_n of_o authority_n alib_a the_o other_o proceedinge_v be_v to_o propose_v to_o they_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o profecy_n touch_v the_o extirpation_n of_o idol_n and_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o false_a god_n of_o the_o pagans_n and_o touchinge_v the_o abolishment_n of_o the_o jewish_a ceremony_n and_o the_o dispersinge_v of_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o touchinge_v the_o comeinge_n of_o a_o new_a law_n maker_n and_o of_o a_o new_a religion_n and_o to_o represent_v to_o they_o that_o these_o prophecy_n be_v write_v before_o the_o birth_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o keep_v by_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n and_o be_v couch_v in_o term_n so_o clear_a that_o it_o be_v a_o wonder_n that_o the_o jew_n which_o keep_v they_o be_v not_o persuade_v by_o they_o but_o that_o within_o the_o same_o book_n it_o be_v foretell_v that_o theyshould_n be_v strike_v with_o blindness_n and_o that_o in_o seeinge_v they_o shall_v not_o see_v and_o by_o this_o mean_n to_o prove_v to_o they_o that_o these_o be_v sacred_a and_o inspire_v from_o god_n and_o then_o this_o obtain_v to_o show_v they_o in_o the_o same_o prophecy_n the_o mark_n whereby_o among_o so_o many_o society_n which_o shall_v usurp_v the_o title_n of_o christian_a society_n she_o be_v to_o be_v discern_v to_o who_o appertain_v the_o right_n of_o be_v the_o true_a common_a wealth_n of_o christ._n and_o she_o be_v final_o acknowledge_v to_o address_v they_o to_o
the_o definition_n be_v a_o spring_n of_o error_n and_o deceit_n now_o if_o this_o be_v grant_v in_o other_o controversy_n experience_n teach_v we_o it_o must_v principal_o be_v grant_v in_o that_o of_o the_o church_n from_o the_o false_a definition_n of_o which_o be_v breed_v all_o the_o sophism_n and_o paralogisme_n which_o fall_v out_o in_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o disputation_n for_o from_o the_o too_o strict_a definition_n that_o the_o protestant_n give_v to_o the_o church_n when_o they_o restrain_v she_o to_o the_o only_a number_n of_o the_o predestinate_a proceed_v the_o illusion_n of_o the_o obscurity_n and_o invisibilitie_n of_o this_o society_n by_o which_o all_o the_o mark_n promise_n and_o prerogative_n that_o god_n have_v appropriate_v to_o his_o church_n 54._o to_o have_v power_n to_o judge_v all_o tongue_n that_o shall_v resist_v she_o in_o judgement_n 16._o not_o to_o be_v overthrow_v by_o the_o power_n of_o hell_n 18._o to_o be_v hear_v under_o pain_n of_o anathema_n 3_o to_o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o 〈◊〉_d of_o truth_n be_v turn_v into_o smoke_n for_o to_o have_v they_o in_o this_o manner_n that_o be_v invisiblie_o be_v to_o have_v they_o without_o use_n or_o rather_o not_o to_o have_v they_o at_o all_o and_o from_o the_o definition_n too_o vast_a and_o indeterminate_a which_o they_o give_v she_o when_o they_o say_v she_o be_v the_o multitude_n of_o those_o that_o live_v under_o the_o profession_n of_o serve_v god_n in_o christ_n without_o add_v by_o lawful_a and_o sufficient_a mean_n there_o arise_v in_o steed_n of_o the_o church_n a_o medley_n and_o chaos_n of_o all_o kind_n of_o heresy_n now_o this_o they_o do_v as_o have_v be_v say_v to_o delude_v the_o question_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n and_o succession_n of_o their_o church_n for_o when_o you_o demand_v of_o they_o where_o that_o church_n have_v be_v these_o 1000_o or_o 1200._o year_n whereof_o god_n have_v say_v 47._o that_o he_o will_v build_v she_o for_o perpetuity_n 1_o that_o he_o will_v espouse_v she_o for_o ever_o 9_o that_o he_o will_v never_o root_v she_o out_o of_o the_o earth_n 60._o that_o she_o shall_v no_o more_o be_v call_v the_o for_o saken_a 54._o that_o 〈◊〉_d engine_n address_v against_o she_o shall_v be_v without_o effect_n 33._o that_o she_o shall_v be_v a_o plentiful_a 〈◊〉_d ation_n a_o tabernacle_n that_o can_v never_o be_v carry_v away_o and_o who_o nail_n 〈◊〉_d never_o be_v unsastn_v nor_o her_o cord_n break_v in_o any_o time_n to_o come_v 16._o that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v never_o prevail_v against_o she_o 〈◊〉_d that_o he_o will_v be_v with_o she_o to_o the_o and_o of_o the_o world_n they_o fly_v to_o the_o obscurity_n and_o darkness_n of_o the_o first_o definition_n and_o say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o compagnie_fw-fr of_o the_o predestinate_a and_o consequent_o that_o they_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o prove_v her_o succession_n because_o she_o have_v be_v invisible_a then_o when_o they_o 〈◊〉_d themselves_o exclude_v from_o this_o refuge_n and_o that_o it_o be_v demonstrate_v to_o they_o that_o the_o same_o contract_n of_o god_n which_o promise_v perpetuity_n to_o the_o christian_a church_n have_v also_o promise_v her_o brightness_n and_o eminency_n that_o it_o be_v declare_v that_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o new_a alliance_n 〈◊〉_d the_o mountain_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v upon_o the_o top_n of_o all_o the_o mountainos_fw-mi and_o all_o the_o hill_n shall_v flow_v to_o she_o and_o shall_v say_v let_v we_o go_v up_o into_o the_o mountain_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o into_o the_o house_n of_o the_o the_o god_n of_o jacob_n and_o he_o will_v teach_v we_o his_o way_n that_o it_o be_v write_v 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d shall_v walk_v in_o her_o light_n and_o the_o people_n in_o the_o splendour_n of_o her_o orient_a 〈◊〉_d that_o her_o seed_n shall_v be_v know_v among_o the_o people_n and_o her_o posterity_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o generation_n that_o all_o that_o shall_v see_v she_o shall_v know_v she_o be_v the_o seed_n bless_v by_o the_o lord_n and_o 37._o that_o the_o nation_n shall_v know_v that_o god_n be_v the_o sanctifier_n of_o israel_n when_o his_o sanctification_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o she_o for_o perpetuity_n then_o they_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o medley_n and_o confusion_n of_o the_o second_o and_o answer_v that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o multitude_n of_o those_o that_o make_v profession_n to_o serve_v god_n in_o jesus_n chr._n and_o by_o consequence_n that_o to_o maintain_v the_o perpetuity_n thereof_o it_o suffice_v that_o there_o have_v always_o be_v a_o multitude_n of_o man_n make_v profession_n to_o serve_v god_n in_o christ_n be_v it_o pure_a or_o impure_a now_o this_o shift_n be_v one_o of_o the_o shift_n that_o saint_n august_n witness_v 80._o to_o be_v common_a to_o fox_n and_o heretic_n for_o as_o fox_n say_v s._n aug._n have_v two_o hole_n in_o their_o terrier_n to_o save_v themselves_o by_o one_o when_o they_o be_v drive_v from_o the_o other_o so_o heretic_n who_o the_o scripture_n figure_v out_o by_o fox_n when_o the_o spouse_n do_v sing_v let_v we_o take_v the_o young_a fox_n that_o destroy_v 2._o the_o vine_n have_v a_o double_a issue_n in_o their_o solution_n to_o escape_v by_o one_o when_o they_o be_v press_v and_o assault_v in_o the_o other_o so_o as_o who_o will_v catch_v they_o must_v set_v their_o net_n before_o both_o issue_n and_o must_v besiege_v both_o their_o passage_n to_o the_o end_n than_o we_o may_v take_v they_o and_o hinder_v the_o excellent_a king_n from_o be_v take_v by_o they_o we_o will_v set_v the_o net_n before_o both_o the_o breach_n of_o this_o definition_n and_o will_v examine_v first_o the_o 4._o invisible_a union_n wherein_o his_o majesty_n conceive_v the_o essential_a form_n of_o the_o church_n may_v consist_v and_o we_o will_v show_v that_o that_o unity_n which_o constitute_v the_o formal_a be_v of_o the_o church_n be_v that_o of_o external_a vocation_n and_o not_o that_o either_o of_o predestination_n or_o of_o internal_a faith_n or_o of_o the_o conjunction_n of_o spirit_n by_o the_o office_n of_o charity_n and_o mutual_a prayer_n or_o of_o the_o participation_n of_o one_o same_o hope_n &_o secondlie_o we_o will_v make_v it_o appear_v that_o this_o vocation_n in_o the_o unity_n of_o which_o the_o essential_a form_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v be_v not_o the_o simple_a profession_n of_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n but_o it_o be_v the_o vocation_n to_o salvation_n by_o just_a and_o sufficient_a mean_n which_o be_v the_o profession_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n the_o sincere_a administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o adherence_n to_o lawful_a pastor_n so_o as_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v the_o society_n of_o those_o that_o god_n have_v call_v to_o salvation_n by_o the_o procession_n of_o the_o true_a say_v the_o sincere_a administration_n of_o sacrament_n and_o the_o 〈◊〉_d to_o lawful_a pastor_n now_o of_o this_o definition_n the_o first_o part_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o church_n consist_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o external_a vocation_n and_o not_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o any_o invisible_a condition_n we_o will_v treat_v of_o in_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o three_o article_n follow_v where_o his_o majesty_n propounde_v the_o internal_a union_n in_o the_o which_o he_o pretende_v that_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v conserve_v and_o the_o 2._o to_o wit_n that_o the_o vocation_n wherein_o the_o essential_a form_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v be_v not_o the_o simple_a profession_n of_o the_o name_n of_o chr._n but_o it_o be_v the_o vocation_n by_o just_a and_o sufficient_a mean_n we_o will_v reserve_v to_o the_o article_n of_o false_a external_a union_n 〈◊〉_d where_o his_o majesty_n esteem_v that_o the_o heretical_a society_n as_o the_o egyptian_n &_o ethiopian_n which_o deny_v the_o distinction_n of_o two_o nature_n in_o christ_n and_o by_o this_o mean_n destroy_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o faith_n be_v nevertheless_o member_n and_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o the_o union_n of_o the_o predestinate_a and_o byway_o of_o adiunction_n of_o the_o visibility_n or_o invisibilitie_n of_o the_o church_n chap._n ix_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n they_o be_v unite_v in_o christ_n their_o head_n who_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o life_n in_o the_o which_o all_o those_o live_v that_o the_o father_n have_v elect_v to_o redeem_v they_o by_o the_o precious_a blood_n of_o his_o son_n and_o free_o to_o give_v they_o life_n eternal_a the_o reply_n the_o union_n that_o the_o predestinate_a have_v in_o god_n as_o they_o be_v only_o predestinate_a do_v not_o constitute_v any_o actual_a church_n among_o they_o but_o only_o the_o union_n they_o have_v one_o with_o a_o other_o as_o they_o be_v call_v
and_o when_o he_o say_v tell_v it_o to_o the_o church_n and_o if_o he_o hear_v not_o the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v to_o thou_o as_o a_o heathen_a or_o a_o publican_n and_o again_o the_o 18._o city_n set_v upon_o a_o mountain_n can_v be_v hide_v and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n i_o will_v pray_v 5._o not_o only_o for_o these_o here_o present_a but_o for_o all_o those_o that_o by_o their_o word_n shall_v believe_v in_o 17._o i_o that_o they_o may_v be_v all_o one_o because_o the_o world_n may_v know_v that_o thou_o have_v send_v i_o even_o a_o blind_a man_n may_v see_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o a_o external_a and_o visible_a church_n and_o when_o he_o express_v the_o church_n by_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o barn_n where_o the_o corn_n be_v mingle_v with_o the_o straw_n and_o by_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o 3._o field_n where_o the_o corn_n and_o the_o tare_n shall_v grow_v together_o till_o harvest_n 13._o ibidem_fw-la and_o by_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o net_n cast_v into_o the_o sea_n where_o the_o evil_a fish_n be_v enclose_v with_o the_o good_a and_o by_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o wedding_n where_o 22._o the_o hall_n be_v full_a of_o guest_n aswell_o good_a as_o bad_a and_o by_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o wise_a and_o foolish_a virgin_n which_o stay_v for_o the_o spouse_n in_o one_o house_n 25._o there_o need_v no_o oedipus_n to_o understand_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o a_o visible_a church_n constitute_v by_o external_a and_o temporal_a vocation_n and_o when_o s._n paul_n say_v to_o timothee_n i_o write_v these_o thing_n to_o thou_o that_o thou_o may_v know_v how_o thou_o ought_v to_o converse_v in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o church_n of_o the_o live_a god_n 3._o the_o pillar_n and_o foundation_n of_o truth_n and_o again_o in_o a_o great_a house_n there_o be_v not_o only_a vessel_n of_o gold_n and_o silver_n but_o also_o of_o wood_n and_o earth_n this_o word_n to_o converse_v which_o can_v have_v relation_n to_o a_o invisible_a society_n and_o this_o word_n foundation_n which_o be_v not_o relative_a to_o truth_n which_o have_v no_o need_n of_o foundation_n but_o to_o man_n to_o who_o the_o church_n serve_v for_o a_o foundation_n of_o truth_n and_o these_o word_n of_o wood_n and_o earth_n do_v visible_o show_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o a_o external_a and_o visible_a church_n and_o when_o he_o say_v in_o the_o 6._o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o to_o she_o corinthian_n what_o have_v i_o to_o do_v to_o judge_v 11_o those_o that_o be_v without_o and_o in_o the_o 11._o we_o have_v not_o this_o custom_n neither_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o 12._o god_n have_v place_v in_o the_o church_n first_o apostle_n second_o prophet_n three_o doctor_n and_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n the_o truth_n 3_o of_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n be_v manifest_v to_o the_o principality_n and_o power_n in_o the_o heavenly_a place_n by_o the_o church_n and_o again_o christ_n cleanse_v his_o church_n by_o the_o wach_n of_o 2._o water_n in_o the_o word_n and_o in_o the_o exhortation_n of_o the_o priest_n of_o ephesus_n take_v heed_n to_o yourselves_o and_o to_o all_o the_o flock_n over_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v make_v you_o bishop_n to_o rule_v the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o when_o saint_n james_n say_v be_v his_o catholic_a 5._o epistle_n if_o any_o one_o of_o you_o be_v sick_a let_v he_o call_v the_o priest_n of_o the_o church_n and_o let_v they_o anointe_v he_o with_o oil_n it_o be_v more_o clear_a than_o the_o sun_n that_o they_o speak_v of_o a_o external_a and_o visible_a 〈◊〉_d and_o in_o truth_n how_o can_v it_o be_v that_o these_o prophecy_n already_o so_o often_o repeat_v 2._o in_o the_o last_o day_n the_o mountain_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v above_o all_o the_o mountain_n the_o nation_n shall_v come_v to_o she_o and_o say_v let_v we_o go_v up_o to_o the_o mountain_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o into_o the_o house_n of_o the_o god_n of_o jacob_n and_o he_o will_v teach_v we_o his_o way_n 60._o the_o people_n shall_v walk_v in_o her_o light_n and_o king_n in_o the_o brightness_n of_o her_o orient_a 33._o thy_o eye_n shall_v see_v jerusalem_n a_o plentiful_a habitation_n and_o a_o tabernacle_n that_o can_v be_v remove_v 61._o their_o seed_n shall_v be_v know_v among_o the_o people_n and_o thire_n posterity_n among_o the_o generation_n all_o those_o that_o shall_v see_v they_o shall_v know_v that_o they_o be_v the_o seed_n bless_v by_o the_o lord_n 37._o the_o nation_n shall_v know_v that_o i_o be_o the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n when_o my_o sanctification_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o middle_n of_o they_o for_o ever_o have_v not_o be_v iliusion_n and_o oracle_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o lie_n if_o the_o church_n shall_v have_v consist_v only_o in_o the_o hide_a and_o invisible_a number_n of_o the_o predestinate_a into_o who_o knowledge_n neither_o man_n nor_o angel_n can_v penetrate_v and_o our_o lord_n himself_o who_o be_v the_o eternal_a wisdom_n of_o the_o father_n have_v not_o he_o be_v the_o most_o imprudent_a of_o all_o lawemaker_n to_o have_v leave_v his_o law_n expose_v to_o so_o many_o supposition_n depravation_n and_o false_a exposition_n whereto_o the_o malice_n of_o the_o heretic_n of_o all_o age_n have_v subject_v it_o without_o leave_v a_o depositary_a to_o keep_v it_o and_o a_o judge_n to_o interpret_v it_o or_o to_o have_v leave_v it_o a_o invisible_a depositary_a and_o a_o invisible_a interpreter_n but_o against_o this_o invincible_a truth_n there_o do_v arise_v five_o principal_a objection_n the_o first_o be_v that_o our_o lord_n say_v the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o my_o 16._o church_n from_o whence_o it_o seem_v to_o follow_v that_o the_o reprobate_n be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o church_n because_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n do_v prevail_v against_o they_o the_o second_o that_o saint_n paul_n writhe_v you_o be_v arrive_v to_o the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o church_n of_o the_o primitives_n or_o first_o bear_v which_o be_v enrol_v in_o heaven_n from_o whence_o it_o seem_v to_o follow_v that_o the_o church_n be_v only_o of_o the_o predestinate_a the_o three_o that_o we_o protest_v in_o the_o creed_n i_o believe_v the_o church_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v infer_v that_o the_o church_n be_v invisible_a because_o faith_n be_v of_o invisible_a thing_n the_o four_o that_o saint_n augustine_n say_v in_o some_o place_n that_o 〈◊〉_d only_o predestinat_a catholic_n be_v true_a part_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o true_a member_n of_o 〈◊〉_d the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o put_v a_o distinction_n between_o those_o which_o be_v in_o the_o house_n and_o those_o that_o be_v of_o the_o house_n and_o between_o the_o people_n know_v in_o the_o eye_n of_o god_n and_o the_o people_n know_v in_o the_o eye_n of_o man_n and_o the_o five_o that_o saint_n jerome_n write_v he_o that_o be_v a_o sinner_n and_o soil_v with_o any_o spott_n 〈◊〉_d can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n to_o the_o first_o then_o of_o these_o objection_n which_o be_v that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o be_v victorious_a over_o the_o church_n we_o say_v that_o the_o victory_n which_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n obtain_v against_o particular_a person_n by_o the_o vice_n of_o their_o manner_n prevail_v but_o against_o those_o particular_a person_n that_o be_v spot_v there_o with_o and_o not_o against_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o vice_n of_o manner_n be_v but_o in_o the_o person_n that_o commit_v or_o approve_v they_o and_o not_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n those_o say_v saint_n august_a who_o the_o wicked_a please_v in_o their_o unity_n communicate_v with_o the_o wicked_a but_o those_o that_o be_v therewith_o 162._o displease_v communicate_v not_o with_o the_o wicked_a in_o their_o action_n but_o with_o the_o altar_n of_o christ._n for_o the_o church_n exact_v from_o none_o of_o her_o membre_n the_o condition_n of_o be_v vicious_a to_o receive_v he_o into_o her_o communion_n as_o she_o exact_v from_o they_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o of_o the_o universal_a ceremony_n that_o she_o prescribe_v to_o they_o the_o participation_n of_o her_o sacrament_n and_o the_o adherence_n to_o her_o pastor_n by_o mean_n whereof_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o heresy_n and_o profession_n of_o error_n or_o infidelity_n that_o can_v be_v pretend_v to_o make_v the_o gate_n of_o hell_n victorious_a over_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n because_o those_o only_o cortupt_v the_o condition_n under_o which_o the_o congregation_n be_v contract_v or_o gather_v and_o infect_v the_o body_n and_o mass_n of_o the_o society_n for_o none_o can_v enter_v into_o any_o heretical_a society_n
without_o oblige_v himself_o to_o the_o doctrine_n whereof_o it_o make_v profession_n and_o therefore_o saint_n epiphan_n interpretes_n judicial_o these_o gate_n of_o hell_n that_o shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o 〈◊〉_d the_o church_n to_o be_v heresy_n the_o gate_n of_o hell_n say_v he_o be_v heresy_n and_o heresiemaster_n to_o the_o second_o which_o be_v that_o saint_n paul_n write_v you_o be_v arrive_v to_o heavenly_a 12._o jerusalem_n to_o the_o church_n of_o the_o firstborn_a which_o be_v enrol_v in_o heaven_n we_o answer_v he_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n triumphant_a to_o which_o he_o write_v that_o we_o be_v arrive_v in_o the_o same_o sort_n as_o he_o write_v our_o converfation_n be_v in_o heaven_n that_o be_v 〈◊〉_d to_o say_v in_o hope_n as_o when_o a_o ship_n have_v cast_v his_o anchor_n on_o land_n which_o be_v say_v saint_n augustine_n the_o symbol_n of_o hope_n it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v arrive_v to_o 〈◊〉_d land_n though_o it_o be_v yet_o in_o the_o sea_n and_o let_v we_o add_v that_o the_o word_n firstborn_a signify_v there_o even_o by_o caluin_n own_o confession_n the_o holy_a father_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 2_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n or_o if_o saint_n paul_n speak_v there_o of_o the_o church_n militant_a and_o that_o by_o the_o firstborn_a he_o intend_v the_o predestinate_a we_o 〈◊〉_d he_o call_v it_o the_o church_n of_o the_o firstborn_a not_o because_o it_o contain_v only_o the_o elect_a but_o because_o the_o elect_n be_v no_o where_o else_o i_o mean_v the_o elect_v invest_v in_o the_o temporal_a grace_n of_o their_o election_n as_o we_o call_v the_o parliament_n of_o paris_n the_o court_n of_o the_o peer_n not_o because_o it_o contain_v none_o but_o peer_n but_o because_o there_o be_v no_o place_n else_o wherein_o the_o peer_n be_v invest_v in_o their_o quality_n of_o peer_n to_o the_o three_o which_o be_v take_v from_o this_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n i_o believe_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n we_o say_v it_o suffice_v that_o faith_n be_v either_o of_o invisible_a thing_n or_o of_o thing_n apprehend_v under_o invisible_a condition_n as_o those_o be_v under_o which_o we_o consider_v the_o church_n when_o we_o believe_v she_o to_o be_v the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n the_o temple_n of_o god_n the_o mansion_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o gate_n of_o heaven_n the_o treasuresse_n of_o spiritual_a grace_n otherwise_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n have_v not_o be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n while_o our_o lord_n be_v in_o this_o world_n and_o nevertheless_o he_o say_v who_o believe_v not_o in_o the_o son_n be_v already_o 3._o judge_v and_o when_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n put_v this_o confession_n of_o faith_n among_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n of_o the_o church_n i_o believe_v one_o baptism_n in_o remission_n of_o sin_n they_o must_v conclude_v baptism_n to_o be_v invisible_a against_o the_o universal_a condition_n of_o sacrament_n which_o be_v to_o be_v visible_a sign_n of_o invisible_a grace_n to_o the_o four_o objection_n to_o wit_n that_o saint_n augustinf_n write_v that_o only_o predestinate_a catholic_n be_v true_a part_n of_o the_o church_n and_o true_a member_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o distinguish_v between_o they_o which_o be_v in_o the_o house_n and_o they_o which_o be_v of_o the_o house_n and_o between_o the_o people_n know_v in_o the_o eye_n of_o god_n and_o know_v in_o the_o eye_n of_o man_n we_o have_v three_o solution_n the_o first_o solution_n be_v that_o saint_n augustine_n intend_v not_o that_o only_a catholic_n predestinate_a be_v true_a part_n of_o the_o church_n according_a to_o the_o formal_a be_v of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v common_a to_o all_o that_o be_v call_v but_o according_a to_o the_o final_a be_v of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o the_o end_n and_o in_o the_o fruit_n for_o which_o the_o church_n be_v institute_v i_o mean_v saint_n augustine_n do_v not_o intend_v in_o those_o place_n to_o define_v the_o church_n formal_o and_o by_o what_o she_o be_v in_o this_o world_n but_o final_o and_o by_o what_o she_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o other_o even_o as_o he_o that_o say_v only_o good_a citizen_n be_v true_a part_n of_o a_o common_a wealth_n do_v not_o define_v a_o common_a wealth_n formal_o and_o by_o what_o it_o be_v in_o itself_o but_o final_o and_o by_o what_o it_o be_v in_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o lawmaker_n and_o he_o that_o say_v a_o true_a harvest_n be_v only_o the_o corn_n that_o be_v gather_v from_o the_o straw_n and_o not_o the_o straw_n wherewth_n it_o be_v mingle_v define_v not_o a_o harvest_n formal_o and_o by_o what_o it_o be_v in_o the_o field_n or_o in_o the_o barn_n but_o final_o and_o by_o what_o it_o will_v be_v in_o the_o garner_n we_o confess_v 6._o say_v saint_n august_a that_o whicked_a man_n be_v together_o with_o the_o good_a in_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o as_o corn_n and_o straw_n and_o again_o wicked_a man_n may_v be_v 119._o with_o we_o in_o the_o barn_n but_o they_o can_v be_v with_o we_o in_o the_o garner_n for_o that_o saint_n august_n do_v not_o esteem_v that_o the_o formal_a and_o precise_a condition_n that_o constitute_v man_n in_o the_o church_n be_v that_o of_o predestination_n internal_a to_o god_n and_o eternal_a but_o that_o of_o external_a and_o temporal_a vocation_n he_o show_v it_o 45._o when_o he_o say_v upon_o saint_n john_n none_o can_v enter_v by_o the_o gate_n that_o be_v by_o christ_n to_o life_n eternal_a which_o be_v in_o vision_n if_o by_o the_o same_o gate_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o the_o same_o christ_n he_o be_v not_o first_o enter_v into_o his_o church_n which_o be_v his_o sheepefolde_a to_o the_o temporal_a life_n which_o be_v in_o faith_n and_o in_o the_o place_n already_o allege_v upon_o the_o 150._o psalm_n our_o predestination_n be_v make_v not_o in_o we_o but_o in_o god_n the_o other_o three_o thing_n be_v wrought_v in_o we_o vocation_n justification_n and_o glorification_n and_o in_o his_o write_n 12._o against_o faustus_n man_n can_v be_v insert_v into_o no_o name_n of_o religion_n whether_o true_a or_o false_a but_o they_o must_v be_v tie_v by_o the_o common_a participation_n of_o some_o sign_n or_o visible_a sacrament_n contrariwise_o the_o very_a same_o saint_n august_n which_o distinguish_v between_o those_o in_o the_o house_n and_o those_o of_o the_o house_n teach_v we_o that_o all_o catholic_n both_o predestinate_a and_o reprobate_a be_v in_o the_o house_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o the_o church_n those_o say_v he_o we_o can_v deny_v but_o 51._o that_o they_o be_v likewise_o in_o the_o house_n and_o than_o that_o the_o formal_a condition_n which_o 〈◊〉_d the_o church_n be_v vocation_n and_o not_o predestination_n but_o that_o there_o be_v none_o but_o the_o predestinate_a catholic_n which_o be_v of_o the_o house_n that_o be_v to_o 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v final_a piece_n inalienable_a and_o inseparable_a from_o the_o house_n or_o to_o speak_v in_o term_n of_o law_n that_o be_v good_n that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o family_n vouchsafe_v to_o put_v into_o the_o inventory_n of_o his_o house_n the_o other_o be_v there_o but_o for_o a_o time_n and_o as_o by_o way_n of_o loan_n and_o not_o to_o dwell_v there_o 〈◊〉_d ever_o for_o when_o the_o church_n shall_v pass_v from_o earth_n to_o heaven_n and_o from_o the_o state_n of_o mortality_n to_o immortality_n only_o predestinate_a catholic_n shall_v remain_v there_o and_o not_o the_o other_o the_o church_n say_v he_o be_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o servant_n be_v the_o sinner_n now_o many_o sinner_n enter_v into_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o 〈◊〉_d our_o lord_n do_v not_o say_v the_o servant_n enter_v not_o into_o the_o house_n but_o he_o dwell_v not_o for_o ever_o in_o the_o house_n and_o again_o none_o can_v blot_n from_o heaven_n the_o constitution_n 162._o of_o god_n nor_o can_v any_o blot_n from_o the_o earth_n the_o church_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n she_o contain_v good_a and_o evil_a but_o she_o lose_v none_o on_o earth_n but_o the_o evil_a and_o admit_v none_o into_o heaven_n but_o the_o good_a the_o second_o solution_n be_v that_o this_o distinction_n of_o part_n of_o the_o church_n true_a and_o not_o true_a and_o of_o vessel_n which_o be_v in_o the_o house_n and_o not_o of_o the_o house_n and_o of_o people_n know_v in_o the_o eye_n of_o god_n and_o know_v in_o the_o eye_n of_o man_n be_v not_o a_o distinction_n of_o religion_n but_o a_o simple_a distinction_n of_o manner_n which_o put_v difference_n between_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o formal_a be_v of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o the_o external_a mean_n of_o vocation_n which_o be_v the_o profession_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n the_o sincere_a administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o adherence_n to_o lawful_a
pastor_n but_o only_o in_o regard_n of_o internal_a and_o final_a correspondency_n to_o these_o external_a condition_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o conformity_n of_o manner_n with_o the_o 52._o vocation_n and_o of_o the_o perseverance_n in_o his_o conformity_n of_o manner_n they_o be_v sai_z saint_z au_o so_o in_o the_o house_n by_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o they_o be_v out_o of_o it_o by_o the_o diversity_n of_o manner_n and_o fulgent_n after_o he_o the_o good_a ought_v not_o 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o wicked_a in_o the_o catholic_a church_n but_o by_o the_o dissimilitude_n of_o manner_n from_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o when_o there_o be_v question_n of_o represent_v the_o perpetuity_n of_o the_o church_n for_o matter_n of_o religion_n that_o be_v for_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n and_o sacrament_n and_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o pastor_n it_o be_v a_o unprofitable_a refuge_n to_o have_v recourse_n to_o this_o distinction_n of_o 〈◊〉_d and_o of_o people_n know_v in_o the_o eye_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o eye_n of_o man_n and_o of_o 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v in_o the_o house_n and_o be_v not_o of_o the_o house_n since_o this_o distinction_n put_v no_o bar_n between_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o people_n for_o what_o concern_v religion_n but_o only_o for_o what_o concern_v manner_n for_o although_o the_o list_n of_o the_o choose_a be_v unknown_a to_o we_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o secret_a 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o certainty_n of_o election_n nevertheless_o for_o what_o concern_v protestation_n of_o faith_n participation_n of_o sacrament_n and_o adherence_n to_o lawful_a pastor_n it_o be_v always_o visible_a if_o not_o distinct_o yet_o at_o least_o joint_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o call_v with_o which_o in_o these_o three_o case_n it_o constitute_v always_o one_o and_o the_o same_o church_n it_o not_o be_v possible_a for_o the_o elect_a to_o be_v install_v in_o the_o temporal_a effect_n of_o thiere_a election_n and_o in_o the_o estate_n of_o salvation_n unless_o they_o make_v profession_n to_o communicate_v and_o to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d unite_v in_o all_o these_o thing_n with_o the_o visible_a body_n of_o the_o chnrch._n 〈◊〉_d for_o our_o lord_n cry_v out_o he_o that_o shall_v confess_v i_o before_o man_n i_o will_v confess_v he_o before_o god_n my_o father_n and_o saint_n paul_n be_v believe_v in_o our_o heart_n to_o justice_n but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d with_o our_o mouth_n to_o salvation_n and_o saint_n august_n we_o can_v be_v save_v unless_o labour_v also_o for_o the_o salvation_n of_o other_o we_o protest_v with_o our_o mouth_n the_o same_o faith_n we_o bear_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o which_o mean_v so_o far_o be_v it_o of_o that_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v less_o visible_a in_o regard_n of_o religion_n in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o predestinate_a then_o in_o the_o person_n of_o other_o as_o contrary_a wise_a 〈◊〉_d it_o can_v be_v either_o by_o error_n or_o by_o infirmity_n and_o fear_v of_o persecution_n that_o the_o external_a and_o visible_a profession_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n the_o sincere_a administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o adherence_n to_o lawful_a pastor_n shall_v fail_v in_o the_o person_n of_o all_o other_o it_o will_v be_v conserve_v in_o those_o of_o the_o predestinat_a follow_v saint_n paul_n maxim_n there_o must_v be_v heresy_n that_o the_o approve_a 11._o may_v be_v make_v manifest_a and_o this_o testimony_n of_o saint_n augtstin_n the_o 46._o church_n be_v sometime_o obscure_v and_o as_o it_o be_v dim_v by_o the_o multitude_n of_o scandal_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o persecution_n but_o yet_o even_o then_o she_o be_v eminent_a in_o her_o steadfast_a champion_n only_o there_o be_v this_o difference_n that_o as_o the_o vocation_n which_o be_v the_o condition_n that_o set_v man_n in_o the_o church_n may_v be_v possess_v in_o two_o sort_n the_o one_o worthy_o when_o it_o be_v answer_v by_o conformity_n of_o manner_n and_o inward_a devotion_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o saint_n paul_n pray_v for_o the_o 1._o thessalonian_n that_o god_n will_v make_v they_o worthy_a of_o his_o holy_a wocation_n that_o be_v to_o say_v make_v they_o answer_v and_o persevere_v to_o answer_v by_o their_o inward_a disposition_n the_o external_a vocation_n wherewith_o he_o have_v honour_v they_o the_o other_o unworthy_o which_o be_v when_o it_o be_v not_o answer_v by_o conformity_n of_o manner_n and_o life_n so_o there_o be_v two_o way_n of_o be_v in_o the_o church_n the_o one_o worthy_a and_o meritorious_a when_o their_o manner_n answer_v their_o vocation_n and_o the_o other_o unworthy_a and_o without_o merit_n when_o they_o correspond_v not_o which_o have_v give_v ground_n to_o the_o school_n distintion_n of_o be_v in_o the_o church_n in_o number_n and_o not_o in_o merit_n and_o therefore_o in_o the_o place_n where_o saint_n augustin_n introduce_v more_o express_o the_o distinction_n of_o those_o that_o be_v in_o the_o house_n but_o be_v not_o of_o the_o house_n nor_o be_v the_o house_n which_o be_v in_o the_o 7._o book_n of_o baptism_n against_o the_o donatist_n even_o there_o to_o take_v away_o all_o occasion_n of_o suspicion_n that_o this_o house_n can_v be_v invisible_a he_o add_v the_o key_n and_o the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v be_v give_v to_o she_o that_o be_v the_o propriety_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o ministry_n and_o that_o all_o be_v command_v to_o hear_v she_o and_o consequent_o to_o hold_v her_o visible_a upon_o pain_n of_o be_v repute_v heathen_n and_o publican_n this_o house_n say_v he_o have_v receive_v cont_n the_o key_n and_o the_o power_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_v and_o from_o thence_o when_o she_o censure_v or_o 51._o correct_v if_o any_o one_o despise_v she_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v to_o thou_o as_o a_o heathen_a or_o a_o publican_n and_o in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n where_o he_o repeat_v 14._o in_o every_o period_n the_o same_o distinction_n the_o church_n say_v he_o be_v not_o hide_v because_o she_o be_v not_o under_o the_o bushel_n but_o upon_o the_o candlestick_n that_o she_o may_v give_v light_n to_o all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o house_n and_o of_o she_o it_o be_v say_v the_o city_n set_v on_o the_o mountain_n 7._o can_v be_v hide_v and_o in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o way_n to_o cathecise_a we_o must_v say_v he_o intru_v and_o encourage_v the_o infirmity_n of_o man_n against_o temptation_n and_o scandal_n whether_o without_o or_o within_o the_o church_n itself_o without_o against_o gentile_n or_o jew_n 26._o or_o heretic_n and_o within_o against_o the_o chaff_n of_o the_o barn_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o again_o let_v not_o the_o enemy_n seduce_v thou_o not_o only_o by_o those_o that_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n be_v they_o pagan_n jew_n or_o heretic_n but_o also_o by_o those_o that_o thou_o shall_v see_v in_o the_o church_n evil_a liver_n and_o in_o the_o comentarie_a upon_o the_o epistle_n of_o saint_n john_n how_o can_v i_o 2._o call_v those_o other_o then_o blind_a that_o see_v not_o so_o great_a a_o mountain_n and_o shut_v their_o eye_n against_o the_o lamp_n set_v upon_o the_o candlestick_n and_o not_o only_o in_o those_o place_n but_o in_o all_o his_o other_o work_n he_o declare_v that_o the_o church_n be_v perpetual_o visible_a yea_o he_o pronounce_v that_o it_o be_v a_o heretical_a position_n or_o rather_o the_o common_a foundation_n of_o all_o heretic_n to_o suppose_v that_o she_o be_v invisible_a the_o 147_o church_n of_o the_o saint_n say_v he_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n the_o church_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o heretic_n the_o church_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v that_o which_o god_n have_v predesign_v 3._o before_o she_o be_v see_v and_o exhibit_v that_o she_o may_v be_v see_v and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n it_o be_v a_o common_a condition_n of_o all_o heretic_n not_o to_o see_v the_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n that_o be_v most_o clear_a contitute_v in_o the_o light_n of_o all_o nation_n out_o of_o the_o unity_n whereof_o all_o that_o they_o do_v can_v no_o more_o warrant_v they_o from_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n than_o the_o spider_n 104._o web_n from_o the_o extremity_n of_o cold_a and_o again_o she_o have_v this_o most_o certain_a mark_n that_o she_o can_v be_v hide_v she_o be_v then_o know_v to_o all_o nation_n the_o sect_n of_o donatus_n be_v unknown_a to_o many_o nation_n then_o that_o can_v be_v she_o the_o three_o solution_n be_v that_o beside_o even_o the_o use_n of_o the_o final_a definition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v a_o force_a use_n and_o where_o with_o saint_n aug._n be_v constrain_v in_o the_o beginning_n to_o serve_v his_o turn_n to_o withstand_v the_o fraud_n of_o the_o donatist_n but_o afterward_o he_o so_o
correct_v or_o explain_v it_o both_o in_o the_o conference_n that_o he_o have_v with_o they_o in_o carthage_n and_o in_o his_o retractation_n as_o there_o remain_v no_o more_o colour_n to_o abuse_v it_o for_o saint_n augustine_n in_o his_o first_o disputation_n against_o the_o donatist_n find_v himself_o press_v with_o the_o argument_n that_o they_o bring_v to_o prove_v that_o baptism_n can_v not_o be_v give_v by_o heretic_n because_o heretic_n be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n advise_v himself_o and_o particular_o in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o seven_o book_n of_o baptism_n from_o whence_o this_o distinction_n of_o people_n know_v in_o the_o eye_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o eye_n of_o man_n be_v principal_o take_v to_o help_v himself_o against_o they_o not_o with_o the_o formal_a definition_n of_o the_o church_n by_o which_o only_a infidel_n and_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a christian_n be_v exclude_v but_o by_o the_o final_a definition_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n consider_v according_a to_o the_o final_a and_o future_a number_n of_o those_o of_o who_o she_o shall_v be_v constitute_v in_o the_o other_o world_n from_o which_o wicked_a catholic_n be_v also_o exclude_v to_o the_o end_n to_o infer_v from_o thence_o against_o the_o donatist_n that_o as_o evil_a catholic_n though_o they_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n define_v according_a to_o her_o future_a permanent_a and_o principal_a be_v do_v true_o baptise_v so_o heretic_n and_o schismatickes_n though_o they_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n define_v according_a to_o her_o present_a and_o passant_a be_v yet_o may_v administer_v true_a baptism_n and_o for_o a_o foundation_n of_o his_o definition_n he_o make_v use_v of_o epithet_n of_o solomon_n and_o s._n paul_n have_v no_o spott_n nor_o wrinkle_n and_o 4._o 〈◊〉_d she_o such_o like_a eulogy_n of_o the_o church_n which_o appertain_v either_o to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d state_n of_o the_o other_o world_n or_o to_o the_o purity_n of_o doctrine_n but_o after_o that_o the_o donati_v abuse_v both_o this_o definition_n and_o the_o testimony_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v take_v to_o infer_v from_o thence_o that_o the_o catholic_a communion_n which_o be_v mingle_v with_o wicked_a man_n be_v not_o the_o church_n he_o change_v his_o procede_v in_o the_o conference_n that_o he_o have_v with_o they_o at_o carthage_n and_o declare_v that_o this_o definition_n belong_v not_o to_o the_o church_n consider_v according_a to_o the_o present_a and_o formal_a be_v which_o she_o have_v in_o this_o world_n but_o accord_v to_o the_o future_a and_o final_a be_v which_o she_o shall_v have_v in_o the_o 3._o next_o the_o catholic_n say_v he_o make_v it_o appear_v by_o many_o testimony_n and_o example_n of_o holy_a scripture_n that_o wicked_a man_n be_v now_o so_o mingle_v in_o the_o church_n that_o although_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n ought_v to_o be_v watchful_a to_o correct_v they_o both_o in_o word_n and_o by_o excommunication_n and_o degradation_n nevertheless_o not_o only_o be_v hide_v they_o be_v unknown_a but_o even_o be_v know_v they_o be_v often_o tolerate_v for_o the_o unity_n of_o peace_n and_o show_v that_o the_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n do_v in_o that_o manner_n well_o agree_v together_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o place_n whereby_o the_o church_n be_v represent_v with_o the_o medley_n of_o the_o wicked_a signisie_n the_o present_a time_n of_o the_o church_n as_o she_o be_v in_o this_o world_n and_o the_o place_n whereby_o she_o be_v design_v to_o have_v no_o wicked_a person_n mix_v with_o she_o signify_v the_o future_a state_n of_o the_o church_n such_o as_o she_o shall_v eternal_o have_v in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v and_o a_o little_a after_o so_o the_o catholic_n refute_v the_o calumny_n of_o the_o two_o church_n declare_v express_o and_o instant_o what_o they_o intend_v to_o say_v to_o wit_n that_o they_o have_v not_o pretend_v that_o that_o church_n which_o be_v now_o mingle_v with_o wicked_a man_n shall_v be_v a_o other_o church_n than_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n that_o shall_v have_v no_o wicked_a peson_n in_o it_o but_o that_o the_o same_o one_o and_o holy_a church_n be_v now_o in_o one_o sort_n and_o shall_v be_v then_o in_o a_o other_o now_o she_o be_v compound_v of_o good_a and_o wicked_a man_n and_o they_o she_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o and_o in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o city_n 9_o of_o god_n make_v by_o he_o after_o the_o conference_n of_o carthage_n there_o where_o the_o one_o and_o other_o kind_a be_v find_v that_o be_v good_a &_o evil_a there_o the_o church_n be_v as_o 〈◊〉_d be_v at_o this_o present_a but_o where_o the_o one_o only_o shall_v be_v there_o be_v the_o church_n such_o as_o she_o be_v to_o 〈◊〉_d when_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o wicked_a man_n in_o she_o and_o in_o the_o answer_n to_o the_o second_o 〈◊〉_d epistle_n of_o gaudentias_n write_v also_o after_o the_o say_a conference_n you_o see_v that_o the_o church_n according_a to_o cyprian_n be_v call_v catholic_a by_o the_o name_n of_o all_o and_o it_o be_v not_o without_o manifestly-wicked_n man_n and_o in_o the_o second_o book_n of_o his_o retractation_n 18._o i_o write_v say_v he_o 7._o book_n of_o baptism_n against_o the_o donatist_n attempt_v to_o defend_v themselves_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o most_o happy_a bishop_n and_o martyr_n 〈◊〉_d in_o all_o those_o book_n where_o i_o have_v describe_v the_o church_n without_o wrinkle_n or_o spott_n it_o must_v not_o be_v take_v of_o the_o church_n as_o she_o in_o her_o present_a be_v but_o as_o be_v 〈◊〉_d to_o 〈◊〉_d such_o when_o she_o shall_v appear_v in_o glory_n and_o again_o in_o my_o write_n to_o a_o unknowen_a donatist_n 〈◊〉_d speak_v of_o the_o multitude_n of_o cockle_n i_o say_v by_o which_o be_v understand_v all_o heretic_n there_o want_v a_o conjunction_n which_o be_v necessary_a for_o i_o shall_v have_v say_v by_o which_o be_v also_o understand_v all_o bereticke_n etc._n etc._n whereas_o i_o speak_v as_o if_o there_o be_v only_a cockle_n out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o none_o in_o the_o church_n and_o nevertheless_o the_o church_n be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n from_o whence_o the_o angel_n in_o the_o harvest_n time_n will_v pluck_v up_o all_o scandal_n which_o cause_v the_o martyr_n cyprian_n to_o say_v although_o we_o see_v tare_n in_o the_o church_n yet_o ought_v neither_o our_o faith_n nor_o our_o charity_n to_o be_v so_o divert_v as_o because_o we_o see_v tare_n in_o the_o church_n we_o shall_v therefore_o separate_v ourself_n from_o the_o church_n which_o sense_n we_o have_v also_o follow_v else_o where_o and_o principal_o against_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d present_a in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o conference_n from_o whence_o it_o appear_v how_o much_o it_o be_v to_o abuse_v saint_n augustine_n word_n against_o the_o sense_n whereto_o himself_o intend_v they_o shall_v be_v either_o correct_v or_o explain_v to_o transferr_v as_o the_o protestants_n do_v that_o that_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n consider_v according_a to_o her_o future_a and_o final_a be_v in_o the_o other_o world_n and_o apply_v it_o to_o the_o church_n consider_v accord_v to_o her_o actual_a be_v here_o and_o to_o infer_v from_o thence_o that_o she_o may_v consist_v in_o this_o world_n formal_o in_o the_o only_a number_n of_o the_o predestinate_a and_o remain_v hide_a and_o visible_a to_o the_o five_o objection_n which_o be_v that_o saint_n jerom_n write_v upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n the_o church_n be_v glorion_n without_o spott_n or_o wrinkle_n or_o any_o such_o 5._o like_a thing_n he_o then_o which_o be_v a_o sinner_n and_o soil_v with_o any_o spott_n can_v be_v call_v of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n neither_o subject_n to_o christ_n we_o answer_v that_o he_o mean_v not_o to_o say_v that_o wicked_a man_n be_v not_o of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o fight_v here_o below_o but_o that_o they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o shall_v reign_v in_o heaven_n for_o so_o far_o of_o be_v it_o from_o saint_n jerom_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o promise_n to_o be_v without_o wrinkle_n or_o spott_n of_o manner_n appertain_v to_o the_o church_n consider_v as_o she_o be_v in_o this_o world_n that_o he_o cry_v out_o quite_o contrarilie_o against_o the_o pelagian_n that_o what_o the_o apostle_n write_v that_o our_o lord_n will_v make_v his_o church_n 3._o holy_a and_o without_o spott_n or_o wrinkle_n shall_v be_v accomplish_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o in_o the_o consummation_n of_o virtue_n and_o again_o true_a perfection_n and_o without_o soil_n be_v reserve_v for_o heaven_n when_o the_o bridegroom_n shall_v say_v to_o the_o bride_n thou_o be_v whole_o saire_fw-fr 31_o my_o
if_o any_o of_o her_o member_n depart_v from_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n will_v prefer_v the_o love_n of_o truth_n before_o the_o love_n of_o unity_n she_o know_v that_o the_o supreme_a 3._o law_n in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n be_v the_o sincerity_n of_o heauélie_a doctrine_n which_o if_o any_o one_o forsake_v 6._o he_o forsake_v christ_n who_o be_v truth_n itself_o he_o forsake_v the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o 〈◊〉_d &_o foundation_n of_o truth_n with_o such_o separatiste_n a_o man_n true_o catholic_n neither_o will_n nor_o maic_a communicate_v far_o what_o agreement_n be_v there_o between_o christ_n and_o 〈◊〉_d the_o reply_n here_o his_o majesty_n must_v give_v i_o leave_v to_o say_v that_o he_o change_v the_o way_n of_o his_o disputation_n and_o go_v out_o of_o the_o list_n quite_o from_o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n for_o the_o question_n be_v not_o whither_o to_o obtain_v the_o name_n of_o catholic_a &_o to_o attain_v to_o salvation_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v unite_v with_o any_o one_o of_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n when_o it_o come_v to_o be_v separate_v from_o truth_n but_o whether_o to_o obtain_v the_o name_n of_o catholic_a &_o attain_v to_o salvation_n it_o be_v necessatie_a to_o be_v unite_v with_o the_o whole_a mass_n &_o universal_a body_n of_o this_o church_n which_o the_o father_n have_v call_v catholic_n neither_o be_v it_o the_o question_n whether_o there_o may_v be_v any_o external_a and_o visible_a society_n wherewith_o it_o be_v unlawful_a to_o commwicate_v but_o whether_o such_o a_o time_n can_v be_v wherein_o there_o be_v no_o external_a and_o visible_a society_n wherewith_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o communicate_v for_o to_o saic_a that_o all_o communion_n be_v not_o to_o be_v desire_v and_o that_o there_o be_v congregation_n wherewith_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o communicate_v whieh_o of_o we_o ever_o doubt_v it_o nay_o contrary_o do_v we_o not_o daily_o pronounce_v anathema_n against_o those_o that_o communicate_v with_o heretic_n or_o schismatickes_n and_o in_o that_o we_o 〈◊〉_d his_o majesty_n to_o return_v to_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n from_o that_o of_o the_o caluinist_n do_v it_o not_o prove_v sufficient_o that_o we_o hold_v not_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v comm_n union_n hold_v with_o all_o kind_n of_o sect_n the_o state_n they_o of_o the_o question_n to_o overthrow_v our_o thesis_n and_o conclude_v some_o thing_n against_o we_o require_v not_o to_o prove_v that_o there_o may_v be_v society_n wherewith_o we_o ought_v to_o have_v no_o communion_n for_o who_o deny_v that_o but_o to_o prove_v that_o there_o may_v come_v a_o time_n wherein_o there_o can_v be_v find_v no_o external_a and_o visible_a society_n wherewith_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o communicate_v and_o that_o this_o time_n be_v come_v as_o luther_n suppose_v it_o to_o be_v when_o he_o begin_v to_o pitch_v his_o ensign_n in_o the_o field_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o go_v forth_o from_o all_o the_o religion_n that_o be_v then_o to_o be_v find_v visible_a in_o the_o world_n and_o to_o make_v a_o new_a communion_n and_o a_o congregation_n a_o part_n see_v here_o what_o be_v needful_a to_o be_v prove_v and_o in_o steed_n of_o this_o the_o excellent_a king_n aleage_v that_o if_o any_o member_n of_o the_o church_n depart_v from_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n the_o church_n must_v preserr_v the_o love_n of_o verity_n before_o the_o love_n of_o unity_n to_o this_o answer_n of_o his_o 〈◊〉_d we_o will_v answer_v two_o thing_n the_o first_o that_o there_o be_v no_o incompatibilitie_n beweene_v this_o thesis_fw-la we_o must_v be_v unite_v with_o the_o universal_a body_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o this_o antithesis_fw-la if_o any_o member_n depart_v from_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n we_o must_v not_o be_v unite_v with_o it_o for_o the_o one_o speak_v of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o other_o speak_v of_o some_o one_o of_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o special_a mention_n os_fw-la some_o one_o of_o the_o church_n depart_v from_o the_o true_a faith_n suppose_v the_o stay_n and_o perseverance_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o faith_n now_o it_o be_v with_o that_o body_n from_o whence_o that_o part_n that_o forsake_v the_o faith_n divide_v itself_o that_o we_o say_v we_o must_v have_v communion_n and_o unity_n and_o not_o with_o the_o part_n that_o separate_v itself_o from_o the_o body_n for_o it_o be_v not_o a_o mean_n to_o maintain_v unity_n to_o have_v unity_n with_o those_o that_o divide_v themselves_o from_o unity_n the_o second_o that_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n between_o the_o right_n and_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o catholic_a church_n &_o the_o previledge_n of_o particular_a church_n for_o the_o infallible_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v never_o promise_v to_o every_o particular_a church_n but_o to_o the_o body_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o therefore_o as_o the_o element_n be_v corruptible_a in_o their_o part_n but_o incorruptible_a in_o their_o all_o so_o the_o church_n be_v corruptible_a in_o her_o part_n but_o incorruptible_a in_o she_o all_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o though_o some_o particular_a church_n may_v err_v in_o faith_n and_o consequent_o cease_v from_o be_v church_n nevertheless_o there_o always_o remain_v one_o mass_n of_o a_o church_n exempt_a 〈◊〉_d corruption_n so_o great_a and_o eminent_a that_o she_o represente_v and_o conserve_n in_o herself_o the_o be_v right_n and_o prerogative_n of_o all_o the_o whole_a and_o so_o the_o obligation_n that_o we_o have_v to_o communicate_v with_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v one_o thing_n and_o a_o other_o the_o obligation_n that_o we_o have_v to_o communicate_v with_o particular_a church_n for_o with_o she_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o communicate_v necessary_o and_o absolute_o under_o pain_n of_o anathema_n and_o damnation_n because_o out_o of_o her_o communion_n none_o can_v be_v save_v and_o with_o other_o only_o while_o they_o communicate_v with_o she_o and_o the_o pretence_n of_o truth_n can_v be_v allege_v to_o make_v this_o obligation_n 〈◊〉_d conditional_a since_o saint_n paul_n say_v the_o church_n be_v the_o fowdation_n of_o truth_n 〈◊〉_d and_o saint_n augustine_n within_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o church_n truth_n have_v her_o dwellinge_a nor_o can_v it_o be_v object_v that_o the_o supreme_a law_n in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n be_v the_o sincerity_n of_o heavenly_a doctrine_n for_o beside_o that_o this_o law_n 2_o have_v her_o statute_n write_v and_o unwritten_a follow_v this_o precept_n of_o s._n paul_n follow_v the_o tradition_n that_o you_o have_v receive_v from_o we_o whether_o by_o word_n or_o by_o epistle_n and_o this_o testimony_n of_o eusebius_n the_o apostle_n have_v give_v some_o 8._o thing_n by_o writing_n and_o other_o by_o unwritten_a law_n and_o this_o observation_n of_o saint_n chrysostome_n from_o whence_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o apostle_n have_v not_o 2._o deliver_v all_o thing_n by_o write_n but_o many_o thing_n alsoe_o without_o writing_n it_o be_v not_o 5._o only_o necessary_a in_o matter_n contest_v to_o have_v a_o law_n but_o it_o be_v needful_a beside_o the_o law_n to_o have_v a_o judge_n with_o authority_n able_a to_o oblige_v and_o subdue_v the_o sense_n of_o particular_a person_n to_o interpret_v the_o word_n of_o the_o law_n which_o judge_n as_o we_o have_v already_o demonstrate_v can_v be_v no_o other_o but_o the_o church_n how_o to_o understand_v these_o word_n of_o saint_n gregory_n nazianzen_n there_o be_v a_o sacred_a war_n chap._n fourteen_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_v the_o church_n then_o must_v fly_v the_o communion_n of_o those_o and_o say_v with_o saint_n gregory_n nazianzen_n orand_fw-fr that_o a_o 〈◊〉_d for_o 〈◊〉_d be_v better_a than_o a_o infect_a unity_n and_o will_v not_o doubt_v to_o pronounce_v with_o the_o same_o bless_a father_n that_o there_o be_v a_o sacred_a wary_a episc._n the_o reply_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n of_o prove_v that_o there_o may_v be_v some_o society_n who_o communion_n must_v be_v avoid_v for_o none_o deny_v it_o but_o of_o prove_v that_o there_o may_v come_v such_o a_o time_n wherein_o there_o be_v no_o external_a and_o visible_a society_n wherewith_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o communicate_v now_o the_o place_n that_o his_o majesty_n cit_v out_o of_o s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n be_v so_o far_o from_o insinuatinge_v any_o such_o thing_n as_o they_o affirm_v the_o quite_o contrary_a for_o s._n gregory_n say_v not_o these_o 1._o word_n against_o the_o external_a and_o visible_a communion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o his_o time_n but_o against_o the_o crafty_a practice_n of_o the_o arrian_n which_o demand_v under_o pretence_n of_o peace_n to_o be_v receive_v into_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n with_o confession_n of_o the_o faith_n ambiguous_a and_o
advauncinge_n towards_o the_o live_a god_n and_o 61._o in_o the_o volume_n upon_o the_o psalm_n all_o those_o who_o perferr_v earthly_a felicity_n before_o god_n all_o those_o which_o seek_v themselves_o and_o not_o jesus_n christ_n belong_v to_o that_o only_o city_n which_o be_v mystical_o call_v babylon_n and_o have_v the_o devil_n for_o her_o king_n and_o to_o this_o it_o be_v no_o impediment_n that_o she_o be_v describe_v to_o be_v clad_v in_o purple_a fore_o there_o purple_a signify_v not_o the_o colour_n of_o purple_a but_o temporal_a power_n dignity_n and_o authority_n which_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o wicked_a rather_o than_o of_o the_o good_a the_o white_a and_o shine_a linen_n wherewith_o the_o bride_n be_v clothe_v signify_v not_o the_o stuff_n and_o colour_n of_o linen_n but_o the_o justification_n 19_o of_o the_o saint_n as_o little_o be_v it_o repugnant_a to_o this_o that_o she_o be_v describe_v to_o be_v set_v upon_o 7._o mountain_n for_o that_o which_o follow_v immediate_o after_o and_o those_o be_v 7._o king_n show_v that_o the_o word_n mountain_n ought_v not_o in_o that_o place_n to_o be_v literal_o take_v but_o allegorical_o whether_o for_o the_o seven_o sin_n that_o we_o call_v mortal_a or_o for_o any_o other_o septenary_a number_n rule_v over_o the_o society_n of_o the_o wicked_a the_o second_o interpretation_n celebrate_v by_o the_o father_n be_v to_o expound_v the_o destruction_n of_o babylon_n describe_v in_o the_o revelation_n to_o be_v destruction_n of_o paganism_n and_o of_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o false_a god_n and_o the_o descent_n of_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n to_o be_v the_o propagation_n of_o christian_a religion_n for_o as_o much_o as_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o prophet_n from_o who_o word_n this_o verse_n of_o the_o revelation_n go_v out_o of_o babylon_n my_o people_n be_v take_v babylon_n be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o head_n of_o pagan_a superstition_n and_o also_o that_o the_o word_n babylon_n signifyinge_v confusion_n be_v more_o proper_a than_o any_o other_o to_o design_n the_o religion_n of_o the_o pagan_n which_o be_v a_o confusion_n of_o religion_n because_o rome_n which_o in_o the_o age_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v become_v the_o head_n of_o paganism_n have_v receive_v into_o her_o commonwealth_n and_o religion_n the_o worship_n and_o religion_n of_o all_o the_o province_n that_o she_o have_v overcome_v from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o saint_n augustine_a attribute_n by_o a_o particular_a title_n the_o word_n confusion_n to_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o pagan_n when_o he_o say_v we_o must_v seek_v for_o religion_n neither_o 5._o in_o the_o confusion_n of_o the_o pagan_n nor_o in_o the_o refuse_n of_o heretic_n nor_o in_o the_o languish_n of_o schismatickes_n nor_o in_o the_o blindenes_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o it_o be_v no_o contradiction_n to_o this_o that_o the_o angel_n cry_v go_v out_o of_o babylon_n my_o people_n and_o a_o little_a after_o 18._o and_o recompense_v her_o double_a for_o what_o she_o have_v do_v to_o you_o for_o this_o cry_n be_v address_v to_o the_o elect_a which_o be_v not_o yet_o the_o people_n of_o god_n in_o act_n and_o vocation_n but_o in_o power_n and_o in_o predestination_n who_o god_n so_o call_v to_o draw_v they_o from_o paganism_n and_o to_o make_v they_o actual_o his_o people_n and_o command_v they_o to_o repay_v or_o return_v what_o she_o have_v do_v to_o they_o that_o be_v not_o what_o she_o have_v do_v in_o their_o person_n for_o they_o can_v not_o be_v persecute_v by_o she_o for_o the_o faith_n if_o they_o be_v not_o yet_o separate_v from_o she_o in_o faith_n but_o in_o the_o person_n of_o their_o predecessor_n and_o therefore_o saint_n augusvine_n say_v mark_v how_o the_o people_n of_o babylon_n be_v put_v to_o death_n the_o double_a of_o what_o she_o 149_o have_v do_v be_v render_v unto_o she_o for_o so_o it_o be_v write_v of_o she_o recompense_v she_o the_o double_a of_o what_o she_o have_v do_v etc._n etc._n and_o how_o be_v the_o double_a recompense_v upon_o she_o when_o she_o may_v persecute_v the_o christian_n she_o slay_v their_o body_n but_o she_o break_v not_o their_o god_n now_o she_o be_v recompense_v double_a for_o we_o root_v out_o the_o pagan_n and_o break_v their_o idol_n and_o how_o say_v thou_o be_v the_o pagan_n put_v to_o death_n how_o else_o but_o in_o be_v make_v christian_n for_o if_o some_o ancient_a father_n have_v interpret_v the_o word_n babylon_n to_o be_v the_o city_n of_o rome_n because_o of_o this_o epithet_n drink_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o 17._o saint_n and_o the_o martyr_n of_o jesus_n who_o suffering_n be_v so_o frequent_a at_o rome_n in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o the_o church_n that_o it_o have_v be_v justly_o say_v that_o rome_n be_v not_o so_o much_o a_o city_n of_o man_n as_o a_o churchyard_n of_o martyr_n it_o be_v the_o pagan_a rome_n that_o they_o intend_v as_o the_o capital_a seat_n of_o the_o heathen_a religion_n and_o of_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o not_o of_o any_o church_n neither_o particular_a nor_o universal_a as_o it_o appear_v by_o these_o word_n of_o saint_n jerome_n i_o address_v my_o speech_n to_o thou_o o_o most_o puissant_a town_n which_o have_v wipe_v out_o 2._o the_o blasphemy_n write_v in_o thy_o forehead_n by_o the_o confession_n of_o christ_n which_o show_v we_o that_o whilst_o rome_n be_v pagan_a she_o be_v the_o same_o to_o the_o christian_n as_o babylon_n be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n to_o the_o jew_n but_o that_o becomeinge_v christian_n she_o have_v cease_v to_o be_v so_o and_o be_v transform_v from_o babylon_n into_o jerusalem_n if_o any_o reply_n that_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o marcelia_n the_o same_o saint_n jerom_n have_v go_v so_o far_o as_o to_o apply_v the_o name_n of_o babylon_n to_o 17._o rome_n after_o she_o be_v christian_n it_o be_v not_o to_o rome_n as_o the_o seat_n of_o religion_n but_o to_o rome_n as_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o empire_n not_o to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n of_o rome_n but_o to_o the_o politic_a state_n of_o rome_n not_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o to_o the_o imperial_a court_n to_o the_o senate_n to_o the_o palace_n and_o to_o the_o troop_n of_o courtier_n solicitor_n and_o negotiator_n of_o rome_n and_o not_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o in_o matter_n of_o manner_n and_o not_o in_o regard_n of_o secular_a christian_n but_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o monk_n to_o who_o rome_n be_v a_o kind_n of_o babylon_n because_o of_o the_o diversion_n that_o the_o noise_n the_o confusion_n the_o tumult_n of_o man_n and_o affair_n in_o so_o great_a a_o city_n bring_v to_o monastical_a devotion_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o what_o 〈◊〉_d he_o add_v present_o after_o it_o be_v true_a that_o in_o that_o city_n there_o be_v the_o holy_a church_n it_o be_v true_a that_o there_o be_v the_o trophy_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o of_o the_o martyr_n it_o be_v true_a there_o be_v the_o true_a confession_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v true_a there_o be_v the_o faith_n celebrate_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o christian_a name_n every_o day_n exalt_v by_o the_o depression_n of_o paganism_n tread_v under_o foot_n but_o the_o ambition_n the_o power_n and_o greatness_n of_o this_o city_n to_o visit_v and_o to_o be_v visit_v to_o salute_v and_o to_o be_v salute_v to_o flatter_v and_o detract_v to_o hear_v and_o speak_v nay_o to_o see_v though_o unwilling_o so_o great_a a_o multitude_n of_o man_n be_v thing_n far_o from_o the_o purpose_n and_o quiet_a of_o those_o that_o will_v follow_v a_o monastical_a life_n and_o again_o note_v 13._o the_o same_o discomodity_n in_o the_o dwell_n in_o jerusalem_n if_o say_v he_o the_o place_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o resurrection_n be_v not_o in_o a_o famous_a town_n where_o there_o be_v a_o court_n where_o there_o be_v be_v a_o garrison_n of_o soldier_n where_o there_o be_v common_a woman_n player_n jester_n and_o all_o thing_n which_o use_v to_o be_v in_o other_o city_n etc._n etc._n it_o will_v certain_o be_v a_o dwellinge_a much_o to_o be_v desire_v by_o monk_n now_o if_o sometime_o he_o have_v chance_v to_o make_v use_n of_o this_o word_n in_o his_o write_n against_o certain_a priest_n and_o deacon_n of_o the_o clergy_n of_o rome_n who_o jealous_a of_o his_o favour_n with_o pope_n damasus_n persecute_v he_o with_o slander_n reproach_v to_o he_o de_fw-fr that_o he_o have_v translate_v the_o treaty_n of_o didymus_n a_o heretical_a author_n 99_o that_o he_o have_v converse_v too_o familiar_o with_o the_o devout_a lady_n of_o rome_n and_o persuade_v they_o to_o quit_v their_o country_n child_n and_o kindred_n that_o be_v the_o confusion_n and_o tumulte_n of_o the_o world_n to_o go_v as_o recluse_n into_o the_o monastery_n of_o
predesign_v that_o she_o may_v be_v discern_v and_o have_v be_v exbibit_v that_o she_o may_v be_v see_v and_o if_o he_o can_v prove_v that_o she_o never_o go_v forth_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o any_o other_o but_o that_o all_o other_o go_v forth_o from_o she_o and_o she_o always_o remain_v in_o her_o root_n visible_a eminent_a perpetual_a immutable_a and_o exempt_a from_o all_o interruption_n which_o be_v a_o mark_n which_o saint_n augustine_n testify_v to_o be_v inseparable_a 〈◊〉_d from_o the_o church_n when_o he_o write_v the_o catholic_a church_n fight_a with_o all_o heresy_n may_v be_v oppose_v but_o she_o can_v be_v overthrow_v all_o heresy_n be_v come_v out_o from_o she_o as_o unprofitable_a branch_n out_o from_o the_o vine_n but_o she_o remain_v in_o her_o vine_n in_o her_o root_n in_o her_o charity_n in_o truth_n i_o say_v if_o the_o excellent_a king_n can_v show_v 〈◊〉_d these_o 3._o thing_n i_o confess_v free_o that_o this_o collection_n of_o passage_n that_o out_o of_o the_o catholic_n church_n none_o can_v be_v save_v that_o whosoever_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o catholic_a 152_o cburch_n how_o laudable_a soever_o he_o presume_v his_o life_n to_o be_v for_o this_o only_a crime_n that_o he_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o unity_n of_o christ_n he_o shall_v not_o have_v life_n but_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n shall_v remain_v upon_o he_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o have_v god_n for_o his_o father_n that_o will_v not_o have_v c._n the_o church_n for_o his_o mother_n and_o that_o it_o shall_v nothing_o avail_v he_o to_o have_v 〈◊〉_d or_o do_v such_o and_o so_o many_o good_a work_n without_o the_o end_n of_o the_o sovereign_a good_a that_o out_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n all_o thing_n may_v be_v have_v but_o salvation_n that_o he_o that_o communicate_v 〈◊〉_d with_o the_o the_o general_a church_n be_v a_o christian_n and_o a_o catholic_a and_o he_o that_o communicate_v not_o therewith_o be_v a_o heretic_n and_o antichriste_n that_o it_o must_v be_v 〈◊〉_d and_o undoubted_o hold_v that_o every_o heretic_n or_o schismatic_n baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n the_o sonn_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n if_o before_o the_o end_n of_o his_o life_n he_o do_v not_o 〈◊〉_d himself_o to_o the_o catholic_a church_n what_o almesdeede_n soever_o he_o do_v yea_o though_o he_o shall_v 〈◊〉_d his_o blood_n for_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n can_v in_o no_o sort_n be_v save_v make_v not_o against_o his_o majesty_n but_o if_o contrary_o the_o excellent_a king_n can_v prove_v that_o the_o church_n to_o which_o he_o adhere_v have_v take_v the_o original_n of_o her_o visible_a communion_n continue_v and_o not_o interrupt_v from_o above_o 60._o or_o 80._o year_n and_o that_o between_o the_o time_n of_o the_o father_n from_o who_o that_o collection_n of_o passage_n have_v be_v extract_v and_o the_o time_n of_o calvin_n pretend_a reformation_n there_o have_v never_o be_v any_o church_n any_o communion_n any_o society_n any_o person_n that_o have_v hold_v joint_o universal_o those_o thing_n for_o which_o england_n have_v divide_v herself_o from_o the_o visible_a communion_n of_o that_o church_n wherein_o she_o be_v before_o then_o i_o have_v need_n be_v instruct_v to_o apprehend_v how_o these_o passage_n make_v not_o against_o his_o majesty_n of_o the_o distinction_n of_o heretic_n and_o schis_n matickes_n chapt_n xvi_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n for_o from_o all_o these_o testimony_n there_o follow_v only_o this_o consequent_o that_o there_o remain_v no_o hope_n of_o salvation_n for_o those_o who_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n or_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o same_o catholic_a church_n which_o the_o king_n as_o we_o have_v say_v before_o grant_v himself_o the_o reply_n the_o collection_n of_o the_o passage_n that_o i_o have_v produce_v do_v not_o put_v this_o alternative_o that_o among_o those_o that_o be_v separate_v either_o from_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n or_o from_o her_o communion_n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n otherwise_o in_o a_o thing_n that_o the_o father_n will_v shall_v be_v clear_a and_o manifest_a they_o have_v a_o perpetual_a ambiguity_n to_o wit_n what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n for_o there_o will_v remain_v always_o this_o question_n whether_o the_o point_n of_o separation_n be_v point_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o separation_n may_v be_v make_v upon_o such_o a_o point_n as_o the_o one_o side_n will_v say_v it_o be_v a_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o other_o that_o it_o be_v not_o as_o the_o pellagian_o disputinge_v against_o the_o catholic_n say_v their_o difference_n be_v not_o in_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o catholic_n say_v the_o contrary_a and_o as_o 10._o yet_o to_o this_o day_n the_o zwinglians_n and_o the_o caluiniste_n disputinge_v against_o the_o ibid._n lutheran_n their_o contestation_n be_v not_o about_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o lutheran_n say_v the_o contrary_n but_o the_o father_n absolute_o set_v down_o this_o maxim_n that_o out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n there_o be_v none_o salvation_n reducinge_v all_o the_o certain_o and_o evidence_n of_o this_o proposition_n that_o out_o of_o the_o church_n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n to_o the_o separation_n of_o communion_n it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o separation_n of_o communion_n may_v proceed_v from_o either_o of_o these_o two_o cause_n to_o wit_n either_o from_o a_o error_n in_o faith_n in_o which_o case_n those_o that_o forsake_v the_o church_n be_v call_v heretic_n or_o from_o defect_n in_o charity_n in_o which_o case_n they_o be_v call_v schismatic_n but_o because_o those_o that_o sin_n either_o in_o the_o one_o or_o in_o the_o other_o can_v be_v so_o easy_o convince_v either_o of_o the_o one_o or_o of_o the_o other_o as_o of_o the_o separation_n of_o the_o communion_n of_o this_o visible_a church_n eminent_a above_o all_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a sect_n who_o god_n will_v be_v expose_v to_o the_o view_n of_o all_o nation_n and_o call_v catholic_a and_o to_o who_o he_o have_v affect_v the_o promise_n and_o prerogative_n of_o the_o perpetual_a assistance_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n for_o this_o cause_n the_o father_n and_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n saint_n auguseine_n be_v conc._n 4._o their_o secretary_n have_v pronounce_v this_o sentence_n so_o often_o before_o particularise_v 152._o by_o the_o penn_n of_o the_o precedinge_v author_n that_o out_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n without_o make_v distinction_n between_o those_o that_o separate_a 〈◊〉_d from_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n and_o those_o that_o separate_v themselves_o from_o her_o communion_n for_o as_o much_o as_o all_o those_o that_o separate_v themselves_o visible_o from_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n separate_v themselves_o also_o from_o her_o communion_n for_o there_o be_v no_o declare_a heretic_n but_o they_o be_v withal_o schismatickes_n also_o only_o there_o be_v this_o difference_n that_o heretic_n separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o faith_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n both_o together_o and_o the_o schismatickes_n only_o separate_v themselves_o from_o her_o communion_n although_o there_o be_v few_o schismatickes_n who_o to_o the_o separation_n of_o communion_n add_v not_o the_o separation_n of_o some_o point_n of_o faith_n for_o as_o sea-crabb_n when_o they_o see_v oyster_n open_a cast_v in_o little_a stone_n within_o their_o shell_n to_o keep_v they_o from_o shuttinge_v again_o that_o they_o may_v have_v time_n to_o devowre_v they_o so_o when_o schismatickes_n see_v a_o breach_n make_v in_o the_o church_n to_o hinder_v it_o from_o closeinge_v again_o they_o cast_v point_n of_o heresy_n into_o their_o schism_n and_o from_o schismatic_n become_v accessory_o 3._o heretic_n we_o esteem_v say_v saint_n jerom_n the_o difference_n between_o heresy_n and_o schism_n to_o be_v that_o heresy_n hold_v a_o perverse_a doctrine_n and_o schism_n for_o episcop_n all_o dissension_n separate_v man_n equal_o from_o the_o church_n which_o difference_n may_v well_o have_v place_n a_o while_n in_o the_o begin_v but_o in_o tract_n of_o time_n there_o be_v no_o schism_n that_o do_v not_o forge_v to_o itself_o some_o heresy_n to_o seem_v to_o have_v the_o just_a cause_n to_o separate_v itself_o from_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o when_o the_o emperor_n speak_v of_o the_o donatist_n who_o be_v those_o principal_o for_o who_o his_o majesty_n add_v this_o clause_n or_o have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o her_o communion_n they_o tax_v they_o accessorilie_o of_o heresy_n from_o thence_o say_v the_o law_n it_o be_v happen_v that_o from_o schism_n heresy_n be_v breed_v 〈◊〉_d 4._o and_o when_o saint_n augustine_n dispute_v against_o they_o he_o prove_v to_o they_o that_o they_o be_v not_o only_a
rest_n for_o how_o do_v not_o thou_o deny_v the_o future_a perfection_n of_o these_o prophecy_n thou_o that_o fear_v not_o to_o deny_v so_o great_a in_o 〈◊〉_d to_o which_o the_o perfection_n be_v due_a and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n 7._o although_o there_o be_v many_o kind_n of_o heresy_n among_o christian_n and_o that_o all_o will_v 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v catholic_n and_o call_v the_o rest_n except_o themselves_o heretic_n there_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d church_n if_o you_o cast_v your_o eye_n over_o the_o whole_a world_n more_o abundant_a in_o multitude_n and_o as_o those_o that_o know_v themselves_o to_o be_v of_o it_o affirm_v more_o sincere_a in_o truth_n than_o all_o the_o rest_n but_o of_o the_o truth_n that_o be_v a_o other_o question_n that_o which_o suffice_v for_o this_o dispute_n be_v that_o there_o be_v one_o catholic_a church_n to_o which_o different_a heresy_n impose_v different_a name_n they_o be_v nevertheless_o all_o call_v by_o their_o particular_a 〈◊〉_d that_o they_o dare_v not_o disavow_v from_o whence_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o arbiter_n not_o possess_v with_o favour_n to_o who_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_a whereof_o they_o be_v all_o ambitious_a ought_v to_o be_v attribute_v by_o which_o word_n s._n aug._n elegant_o declare_v that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o call_v catholic_a because_o she_o be_v actual_o and_o at_o oneself_o same_o time_n over_o all_o nation_n but_o for_o this_o cause_n among_o other_o that_o in_o multitude_n of_o people_n and_o in_o extent_n of_o nation_n she_o exceed_v each_o one_o of_o other_o christian_a society_n of_o the_o comparison_n of_o the_o church_n with_o the_o city_n build_v upon_o a_o mountain_n chap._n xx._n the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n for_o heretofore_o the_o catholic_a church_n like_o the_o city_n build_v upon_o a_o mountain_n which_o can_v not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v not_o way_n subject_a to_o be_v call_v in_o question_n but_o be_v evident_a and_o certain_a to_o all_o in_o such_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d no_o body_n of_o a_o undistract_a spirit_n can_v doubt_v of_o it_o the_o reply_n it_o seem_v that_o the_o excellent_a king_n hold_v this_o word_n that_o can_v be_v hide_v to_o have_v reference_n only_o to_o the_o city_n build_v upon_o a_o mountain_n and_o will_v not_o have_v it_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n but_o by_o accident_n that_o be_v when_o she_o resemble_v the_o 〈◊〉_d build_v upon_o a_o mountain_n that_o be_v to_o say_v it_o seem_v that_o his_o majesty_n understand_v not_o that_o this_o condition_n to_o be_v like_o a_o city_n build_v upon_o a_o mountain_n and_o by_o consequent_a not_o to_o be_v hide_v belong_v perpetual_o to_o the_o church_n but_o will_v have_v it_o that_o the_o church_n sometime_o enjoy_v this_o condition_n as_o when_o saint_n augustine_n write_v and_o sometime_o be_v deprive_v of_o it_o as_o afterwards_o nevertelesse_a saint_n augustine_n who_o be_v the_o 14._o best_a interpreter_n that_o can_v be_v of_o his_o own_o word_n say_v that_o the_o church_n have_v this_o most_o certain_a mark_n that_o she_o can_v be_v hide_v and_o again_o that_o of_o she_o it_o be_v say_v the_o city_n build_v upon_o the_o mountain_n can_v be_v hide_v from_o whence_o it_o appear_v that_o this_o epithet_n of_o be_v unconcealeable_a belong_v not_o by_o accident_n to_o the_o church_n when_o she_o shall_v be_v find_v like_o the_o city_n build_v upon_o a_o hill_n but_o appartaine_v to_o she_o proper_o direct_o and_o perpetual_o for_o where_o his_o majesty_n add_v that_o the_o church_n be_v then_o so_o manifest_a as_o no_o man_n in_o his_o right_a wit_n can_v doubt_v of_o she_o that_o be_v true_a and_o so_o be_v she_o still_o at_o this_o day_n in_o regard_n of_o all_o those_o that_o agree_v upon_o the_o true_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o regard_n of_o those_o that_o accord_v to_o god_n promise_n design_v the_o catholic_a church_n by_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o her_o continuance_n and_o by_o the_o eminency_n of_o multitude_n and_o extent_n over_o nation_n above_o all_o other_o christian_a sect_n but_o to_o all_o heretic_n and_o schismatickes_n who_o reject_v those_o mark_n and_o will_v receive_v no_o sign_n for_o a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n but_o only_a purity_n of_o manner_n or_o trial_n of_o doctrine_n of_o which_o they_o attribute_v to_o themselves_o the_o judgement_n by_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n make_v accord_v to_o their_o sense_n the_o church_n be_v not_o only_o doubtful_a but_o altogether_o hide_v it_o be_v say_v s._n aug._n a_o condition_n common_a to_o all_o heretic_n 3._o not_o to_o see_v that_o thing_n which_o be_v in_o the_o world_n the_o most_o apparent_a an_o it_o build_v in_o the_o light_n of_o all_o nation_n out_o of_o who_o unity_n all_o that_o they_o do_v though_o they_o seem_v to_o do_v it_o with_o great_a care_n cannoe_v more_o warrant_v they_o from_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n than_o the_o spider_n web_n against_o the_o extremity_n of_o cold_a of_o the_o conformity_n or_o inconformitie_n of_o the_o donatist_n and_o protestant_n in_o the_o question_n of_o the_o church_n chapt_n xxi_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n for_o she_o be_v not_o shut_v up_o in_o any_o corner_n of_o the_o world_n li_v i_o know_v not_o where_o in_o the_o south_n as_o the_o foolish_a donatist_n affirm_v but_o she_o be_v spread_v in_o leught_n and_o breadth_n over_o all_o the_o space_n of_o the_o earth_n the_o reply_n the_o donatist_n hold_v not_o that_o their_o church_n be_v enclose_v by_o right_a and_o for_o ever_o into_o africa_n but_o only_o in_o fact_n and_o for_o a_o certain_a time_n no_o more_o than_o the_o caluiniste_n who_o have_v pretend_v that_o the_o true_a visible_a church_n have_v be_v reduce_v for_o many_o age_n into_o the_o province_n of_o albigeois_n and_o other_o bound_n and_o afterward_o in_o some_o valley_n of_o dolphiny_a and_o yet_o the_o donatist_n do_v not_o make_v this_o confession_n with_o their_o good_a will_n but_o in_o their_o own_o defence_n by_o constraint_n contrariwise_o they_o attempt_v with_o all_o their_o power_n to_o show_v that_o their_o church_n be_v not_o restrain_v only_o into_o africa_n for_o this_o cause_n they_o keep_v a_o bishop_n at_o rome_n who_o they_o have_v send_v to_o 2._o a_o few_o african_a donatist_n that_o dwell_v there_o they_o have_v plent_v a_o pretend_a church_n in_o spanie_n in_o the_o territory_n of_o a_o lady_n call_v lucilla_n that_o favour_v 3_o they_o they_o have_v make_v the_o false_a act_n of_o the_o mock_n council_n of_o the_o arrian_n hold_v at_o philipopolis_n near_o sardica_n to_o pass_v current_n instead_o of_o the_o true_a council_n of_o sardica_n because_o in_o the_o letter_n of_o those_o bishop_n among_o the_o 163._o name_n of_o the_o bishop_n to_o who_o they_o be_v address_v their_o be_v the_o name_n of_o donatus_n the_o false_a bishop_n of_o carthage_n one_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o donatistes_n party_n thereby_o to_o make_v it_o credible_a that_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n have_v communicate_v with_o they_o yea_o when_o they_o enter_v into_o conference_n with_o the_o catholic_n they_o grow_v to_o be_v so_o impudent_a but_o that_o it_o be_v confound_v at_o the_o instant_n as_o to_o maintain_v that_o their_o communion_n be_v spread_v over_o all_o the_o earth_n here_o first_o sai_z saint_n augustine_n speak_v 163._o of_o the_o conference_n that_o he_o have_v with_o fortunius_n the_o donatist_n do_v he_o attempt_n to_o 〈◊〉_d that_o his_o communion_n be_v over_o the_o extent_n of_o the_o earth_n i_o ask_v he_o there_o 〈◊〉_d whether_o he_o can_v address_v communicatorie_a letter_n which_o we_o call_v formal_a whither_o i_o 〈◊〉_d appoint_v and_o i_o affirm_v as_o it_o be_v manifest_a to_o all_o that_o by_o this_o mean_v the_o 〈◊〉_d may_v be_v easy_o determine_v etc._n etc._n but_o because_o the_o thing_n be_v evident_o false_a 〈◊〉_d out_o of_o this_o discourse_n by_o confusion_n of_o 〈◊〉_d and_o final_o when_o they_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d from_o the_o visible_a 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o church_n they_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d universality_n and_o say_v they_o communicate_v invisible_o with_o all_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o hide_a member_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v spread_v over_o all_o the_o world_n for_o it_o be_v against_o they_o that_o saint_n aug._n dispute_n when_o he_o write_v it_o 16._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o god_n have_v other_o sheep_n which_o i_o know_v not_o but_o god_n 〈◊〉_d care_n of_o they_o he_o be_v too_o absurd_a in_o humane_a sense_n that_o imagine_v such_o thing_n by_o 〈◊〉_d whereof_o their_o cause_n who_o have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o we_o in_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d age_n can_v be_v no_o way_n distinguish_v in_o the_o point_n of_o the_o church_n from_o that_o of_o the_o donatistes_n of_o the_o extent_n of_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n
have_v always_o observe_v what_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a have_v command_v and_o why_o then_o when_o saint_n gregory_n the_o great_a to_o who_o i_o have_v bring_v down_o this_o information_n as_o well_o because_o the_o english_a man_n derive_v from_o he_o the_o original_n of_o their_o mission_n ecclesiastical_a as_o because_o calume_v propounde_n he_o for_o true_a and_o lawful_a model_n of_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o pope_n reprehend_v 1027._o year_n ago_o natalis_n bishop_n of_o salona_n in_o dalmatia_n for_o the_o fault_n that_o he_o have_v commit_v for_o which_o he_o after_o do_v penance_n in_o depose_v honoratus_n archdeacon_n of_o salona_n notwithstanding_o pope_n pelagius_n letter_n do_v he_o write_v to_o he_o that_o such_o a_o disobedience_n have_v be_v intolerable_a even_o in_o one_o of_o the_o four_o patriarch_n if_o one_o of_o the_o four_o patriarch_n say_v 37._o he_o have_v commit_v such_o a_o act_n so_o great_a disobedience_n can_v not_o have_v escape_v without_o a_o grievous_a scandal_n and_o why_o then_o when_o clementius_fw-la primate_n of_o bysacia_n in_o africa_n have_v be_v accuse_v before_o the_o emperor_n and_o send_v back_o by_o the_o emperor_n to_o the_o sea_n 64._o apostolic_a do_v the_o same_o s._n gregory_n say_v if_o there_o be_v any_o fault_n in_o the_o bishop_n i_o know_v not_o what_o bishop_n be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a if_o a_o fault_n require_v it_o not_o according_a to_o the_o reason_n of_o humility_n we_o be_v all_o equal_a and_o why_o then_o when_o john_n archbishop_n of_o larissa_n in_o thessalia_n have_v unjust_o and_o unworthy_o condemn_v adrian_n bishop_n of_o thebes_n one_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o his_o jurisdiction_n and_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o thebes_n have_v appeal_v to_o rome_n from_o he_o do_v s._n gregory_n eclipse_v the_o bishop_n and_o bishopric_n of_o thebes_n from_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o archbishop_n of_o larissa_n his_o metropolitan_a and_o declare_v the_o archbishop_n of_o larissa_n if_o ever_o he_o attempt_v more_o to_o exercise_v any_o act_n of_o metropolitan_a over_o he_o interdict_v from_o the_o sacrament_n so_o as_o they_o can_v not_o be_v restore_v to_o he_o except_o at_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n but_o with_o the_o leave_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n we_o ordain_v say_v he_o that_o 46._o thy_o brotherhood_n abstain_v from_o all_o the_o jurisdiction_n which_o you_o have_v former_o have_v over_o he_o and_o over_o his_o church_n and_o a_o while_n after_o that_o if_o in_o any_o time_n or_o for_o 〈◊〉_d occasion_n whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v attempt_v to_o contradict_v this_o our_o statute_n know_v that_o we_o declare_v thou_o deprive_v from_o the_o sacred_a communion_n so_o as_o it_o may_v not_o be_v restore_v to_o thou_o except_o in_o the_o article_n of_o death_n but_o with_o the_o leave_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o why_o then_o final_o when_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n have_v get_v the_o upper_a hand_n of_o the_o other_o patriarch_n do_v he_o continue_v to_o suffer_v appeal_n of_o cause_n from_o his_o jurisdiction_n to_o the_o pope_n tribunal_n and_o to_o acknowledge_v himself_o subject_a and_o inferior_a to_o the_o pope_n john_n priest_n of_o chalcedon_n 82._o say_v s._n gregory_n in_o the_o cause_n that_o he_o have_v against_o our_o brother_n colleague_n john_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n have_v have_v recourse_n according_a to_o the_o canon_n to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o the_o cause_n have_v be_v determine_v by_o our_o sentence_n and_o again_o pronounce_v the_o restitution_n of_o athanasius_n a_o priest_n and_o a_o religious_a man_n of_o lycaonia_n who_o have_v be_v depose_v and_o cast_v out_o of_o his_o monastery_n by_o the_o same_o john_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o have_v appeal_v to_o he_o we_o declare_v thou_o say_v he_o to_o be_v free_a from_o all_o spott_n of_o heresy_n and_o a_o catholic_n 64._o &c._n &c._n and_o give_v thou_o free_a leave_n to_o return_v into_o thy_o monastery_n and_o to_o hold_v there_o the_o same_o rank_n as_o thou_o do_v before_o and_o again_o who_o doubt_v but_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n 63._o be_v subject_a to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a which_o the_o most_o religious_a emperor_n and_o our_o brother_n bishop_n of_o the_o same_o town_n do_v continual_o protest_v for_o as_o for_o the_o word_n universal_a bishop_n wherein_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n desire_v to_o participate_v 34._o with_o the_o pope_n but_o under_o the_o pope_n and_o in_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o east_n forasmuch_o as_o constantinople_n have_v be_v erect_v into_o the_o title_n of_o the_o second_o rome_n it_o shall_v be_v answer_v in_o a_o chapter_n by_o itself_o &_o for_o the_o resusall_n that_o s._n gregory_n make_v to_o use_v the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n though_o it_o have_v 34_o be_v give_v to_o his_o predecessor_n in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n it_o shall_v be_v satisfy_v in_o the_o same_o place_n and_o show_v that_o it_o be_v because_o of_o the_o evil_a sense_n the_o word_n universal_a bishop_n may_v receive_v which_o be_v to_o signify_v only_a bishop_n and_o so_o exclude_v the_o other_o prelate_n from_o the_o title_n of_o bishop_n in_o chief_a and_o of_o minister_n and_o officer_n of_o god_n and_o to_o hold_v they_o but_o for_o committee_n and_o deputy_n of_o the_o universal_a bishop_n as_o the_o same_o s._n gregory_n lib._n protest_v when_o he_o faith_n if_o there_o be_v one_o that_o be_v universal_a bishop_n all_o the_o rest_n be_v no_o more_o bishop_n and_o not_o to_o deprive_v himself_o from_o the_o superintendencie_n and_o jurisdiction_n over_o all_o other_o bishop_n of_o which_o he_o cry_v clean_o contrary_a if_o there_o be_v any_o crime_n in_o the_o bishop_n i_o know_v no_o bishop_n but_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a if_o no_o crime_n require_v it_o according_a to_o the_o reason_n of_o bumilitie_n we_o be_v all_o equal_a of_o form_v letter_n chapt_n xxvi_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n than_o be_v alsoe_o in_o frequent_a use_n form_v letter_n by_o the_o commerce_n and_o contexture_n where_o of_o the_o communion_n be_v admirable_o exercise_v among_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n how_o far_o soever_o they_o be_v distant_a one_o from_o a_o other_o in_o place_n the_o reply_n it_o be_v true_a but_o the_o centre_n of_o this_o communion_n and_o of_o this_o ecclesiastical_a unity_n which_o be_v exercise_v and_o entertain_v by_o the_o commerce_n of_o form_a letter_n be_v the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o the_o roman_a church_n this_o appear_v 3._o by_o s._n ireneus_fw-la who_o cry_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n because_o of_o a_o principality_n that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o it_o have_v be_v above_o manifest_v because_o of_o the_o principality_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a it_o be_v necessary_a that_o every_o church_n shall_v agree_v this_o appear_v 55._o by_o s._n cyprian_n who_o call_v the_o roman_a church_n the_o chair_n of_o peter_n and_o the_o principal_a church_n and_o the_o original_n of_o sacerdotal_a unity_n this_o appear_v by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o emperor_n gratian_n which_o ordain_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v deliver_v to_o those_o that_o be_v in_o the_o pope_n communion_n he_o ordain_v say_v theodoret_n that_o the_o sacred_a house_n shall_v be_v restore_v to_o those_o that_o communicate_v 〈◊〉_d with_o damasus_n and_o a_o while_n after_o and_o this_o law_n be_v indefinite_o execute_v in_o all_o nation_n this_o appear_v by_o s._n ambrose_n who_o write_v speak_v of_o his_o brother_n come_v into_o one_o of_o the_o city_n of_o the_o isle_n of_o sardinia_n he_o ask_v the_o bishop_n of_o that_o place_n whether_o he_o agree_v with_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n that_o be_v to_o 57_o say_v add_v he_o with_o the_o roman_a church_n this_o appear_v by_o s._n jerome_n who_o write_v to_o pope_n damasus_n i_o be_o join_v in_o communion_n with_o thy_o blessedness_n that_o be_v to_o say_v with_o peter_n chair_n i_o know_v the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o that_o rock_n whosoever_o be_v not_o in_o the_o ark_n he_o shall_v perish_v at_o the_o come_n of_o the_o flood_n he_o that_o eat_v the_o lamb_n out_o os_fw-la this_o house_n be_v profane_a and_o a_o while_n after_o whosoever_o gather_v not_o with_o thou_o scatters_z that_o be_v to_o say_v whosoever_o be_v not_o of_o christ_n be_v of_o antichrist_n and_o again_o send_v i_o word_n with_o who_o i_o ought_v to_o communicate_v in_o antioch_n for_o the_o heretic_n of_o camp_n with_o those_o of_o tharse_n have_v no_o other_o ambition_n but_o that_o they_o may_v under_o the_o authority_n of_o your_o communion_n preach_v the_o three_o hypostosy_n according_a to_o the_o ancient_a understanding_n 58._o and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n the_o while_o i_o cry_v if_o any_o of_o you_o be_v join_v to_o peter_n chair_n he_o
be_v i_o miletius_n vitalis_n paulinus_n so_o be_v the_o 3._o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n call_v say_v that_o they_o communicate_v with_o thou_o if_o but_o one_o of_o they_o have_v say_v so_o i_o have_v believe_v it_o but_o now_o either_o two_o or_o all_o three_o do_v lie_n and_o therefore_o i_o coviure_v thy_o blessedness_n by_o the_o cross_n of_o our_o lord_n by_o the_o necessary_a ornament_n of_o our_o faith_n by_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n etc._n etc._n that_o thou_o signify_v to_o i_o by_o thy_o letter_n with_o who_o in_o syria_n i_o ought_v to_o communicate_v this_o appear_v by_o optatus_n bishop_n of_o milevis_n in_o africa_n 2._o who_o say_v at_o rome_n have_v be_v settle_v for_o peter_n first_o the_o episcopal_a chair_n in_o which_o the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o apoctles_a peter_n have_v sit_v etc._n etc._n to_o the_o end_n that_o in_o that_o only_a chair_n unity_n may_v be_v observe_v by_o all_o lest_o the_o other_o apostle_n shall_v attribute_v to_o themselves_o each_o one_o his_o sever_n all_o chair_n but_o that_o be_v may_v be_v a_o sinner_n and_o a_o schismatic_n that_o against_o that_o only_a chair_n shall_v erect_v a_o other_o and_o a_o little_a after_o to_z peter_z then_o succeed_v linus_n to_o linus_n clement_n to_o clement_n anacletus_fw-la to_o anacletus_fw-la euaristus_n etc._n etc._n to_o damasus_n syricius_n who_o be_v at_o this_o day_n our_o colleague_n by_o which_o mean_v all_o the_o world_n communicate_v with_o we_o by_o the_o commerce_n of_o form_a letter_n this_o appear_v by_o 1._o saint_n chrysostome_n who_o write_v to_o pope_n innocent_a let_v we_o enjoy_v the_o continuance_n of_o your_o letter_n and_o of_o your_o charity_n and_o those_o of_o all_o the_o rest_n which_o we_o enjoy_v before_o this_o appear_v by_o saint_n austin_n who_o say_v cecilianus_n may_v well_o despise_v 162_o the_o conspire_a multitude_n of_o his_o enemy_n see_v himself_o unite_v by_o communicatorie_a letter_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o which_o the_o principality_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a have_v always_o sllorisht_v &_o with_o other_o country_n from_o whence_o the_o gospel_n come_v into_o asrica_n this_o appear_v by_o eulalius_n bishop_n of_o syracuse_n who_o a_o while_n after_o s._n augustine_n death_n dissuade_v fulgentius_n a_o asrican_a afterward_o bishop_n of_o ruspa_n in_o asrica_n from_o go_v to_o inhabit_v with_o the_o monk_n of_o egypt_n in_o the_o desert_n of_o thebaidis_n 〈◊〉_d because_o they_o be_v not_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n peter_n the_o country_n say_v he_o whither_o thou_o desire_v to_o travail_v a_o perfidious_a dissension_n have_v separate_v they_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o bless_a peter_n all_o those_o religious_a man_n who_o admirable_a abstinence_n be_v celebrate_v shall_v not_o have_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n in_o common_a with_o thou_o this_o appear_v by_o john_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n who_o write_v to_o pope_n 〈◊〉_d in_o abjuration_n of_o acacius_n memory_n follow_v say_v he_o in_o all_o thing_n the_o apostolic_a chair_n we_o declare_v all_o that_o have_v be_v thereby_o decree_v and_o therefore_o hope_v to_o be_v in_o one_o communion_n with_o you_o declare_v by_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a in_o which_o there_o be_v the_o integrity_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o perfect_a solidity_n promise_v hereafter_o not_o to_o 〈◊〉_d amid_o the_o sacred_a mystery_n their_o name_n that_o have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o consent_v not_o in_o all_o thing_n with_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a this_o appear_v by_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n who_o write_v in_o the_o law_n address_v to_o epiphanius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n we_o preserve_v in_o all_o thing_n the_o estate_n of_o the_o 7._o unity_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n with_o the_o holy_a pope_n of_o old_a rome_n and_o in_o the_o law_n address_v to_o the_o pope_n we_o have_v have_v care_n to_o unite_v and_o submit_v all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n to_o the_o sea_n of_o your_o holiness_n 〈◊〉_d who_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o holy_a church_n 4._o this_o appear_v by_o menas_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n who_o say_v in_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n we_o follow_v the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o obey_v it_o and_o communicate_v with_o those_o that_o communicate_v therewith_o and_o condemn_v those_o that_o it_o condemn_v this_o appear_v by_o the_o form_n that_o saint_n gregory_n leave_v we_o of_o the_o abjuration_n that_o the_o bishope_n return_v from_o schism_n to_o the_o communion_n of_o 31._o the_o church_n make_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o apostolic_a procurator_n which_o have_v these_o word_n i_o bishop_n of_o such_o a_o city_n have_v discern_v the_o trapp_v of_o division_n wherein_o i_o be_v catch_v after_o a_o long_a and_o mature_a deliberation_n i_o be_o return_v by_o god_n grace_n with_o my_o pure_a and_o free_a will_n to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o that_o i_o may_v not_o be_v esteem_v to_o return_v malicious_o or_o sained_o i_o vow_v and_o promise_v under_o pain_n of_o fall_v from_o my_o order_n and_o under_o obligation_n of_o 〈◊〉_d to_o thou_o and_o by_o thou_o to_o the_o holy_a prince_n of_o apostle_n peter_n and_o to_o his_o vicar_n the_o most_o bless_a gregory_n or_o to_o his_o successor_n that_o by_o any_o persuasion_n whatsoever_o or_o in_o any_o other_o manner_n i_o will_v never_o return_v to_o schism_n from_o whence_o by_o our_o redeemer_n mercy_n i_o have_v be_v deliver_v but_o that_o i_o will_v always_o remain_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o this_o final_o appear_v by_o the_o extract_n of_o the_o council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v to_o be_v read_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o latin_a edition_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o extract_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n for_o the_o composition_n manuse_n of_o form_a letter_n make_v by_o atticus_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n but_o some_o conc._n manuscript_n of_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n testify_v they_o be_v send_v into_o champigny_n the_o west_n by_o the_o same_o atticus_n with_o the_o other_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n when_o the_o asrican_a bishop_n request_v they_o of_o he_o for_o this_o extract_n ordain_v that_o they_o shall_v take_v the_o number_n of_o the_o first_o greek_n letter_n of_o chalc._n the_o name_n father_n sonn_n and_o holy_a ghost_n the_o number_n of_o the_o first_o letter_n of_o the_o apostle_n peter_n name_n and_o of_o the_o author_n that_o write_v and_o of_o he_o to_o who_o he_o write_v and_o of_o the_o bearer_n of_o the_o letter_n and_o of_o the_o place_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v write_v and_o the_o day_n of_o paske_n and_o add_v they_o to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o indiction_n which_o then_o be_v currant_n they_o shall_v thereof_o make_v a_o sum_n who_o cipher_n shall_v be_v add_v to_o the_o epistle_n to_o serve_v it_o for_o a_o form_n and_o character_n by_o mean_n whereof_o when_o there_o be_v no_o more_o occasion_n to_o doubt_v who_o be_v either_o in_o communion_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n or_o saint_n peter_n sea_n or_o out_o of_o it_o as_o the_o diligence_n of_o the_o catholic_a emperor_n and_o king_n have_v in_o the_o west_n leave_v no_o subject_n of_o that_o doubt_v this_o many_o age_n the_o necessity_n of_o these_o kind_n of_o letter_n have_v cease_v and_o therefore_o so_o far_o off_o be_v it_o that_o the_o use_n of_o the_o letter_n form_v or_o communicatory_a whereof_o antiquity_n make_v use_v be_v a_o mark_n to_o show_v that_o the_o church_n be_v then_o more_o manifest_a than_o now_o as_o contrariwise_o it_o be_v a_o testimony_n that_o she_o be_v much_o hard_a to_o be_v discern_v than_o she_o be_v at_o this_o present_a for_o that_o which_o constrain_v they_o to_o use_v this_o mean_n be_v the_o multitude_n and_o confusion_n of_o heresy_n which_o be_v then_o in_o so_o great_a number_n and_o so_o mingle_v in_o abode_n and_o habitation_n amid_o the_o catholic_a church_n as_o there_o be_v almost_o no_o town_n where_o there_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v beside_o the_o true_a church_n a_o dozen_o sect_n and_o heresy_n and_o the_o most_o of_o they_o agree_v in_o form_n and_o outward_a worship_n with_o the_o catholic_a church_n arian_n donatist_n pelagian_n novatian_n macedonian_n appolinaristes_n and_o other_o such_o like_a plague_n of_o the_o pretend_a excommunication_n attempt_v against_o the_o pope_n chap._n xxvii_o but_o against_o this_o thesis_fw-la to_o wit_n that_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a be_v the_o centre_n and_o beginning_n of_o all_o the_o form_v and_o communicatory_a letter_n the_o pope_n adversary_n object_n three_o instance_n first_o that_o stephen_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n in_o the_o false_a
and_o not_o our_o mother_n as_o the_o first_o eve_n be_v who_o engender_v her_o child_n dead_a to_o salvation_n but_o as_o the_o second_o eve_n who_o engender_v her_o child_n live_v from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o saint_n ambrose_n and_o saint_n hierome_n 3._o call_v the_o church_n the_o true_a eve_n mother_n of_o the_o live_n and_o how_o then_o be_v it_o that_o heretical_a sect_n who_o among_o the_o condition_n under_o 9_o which_o they_o receive_v man_n into_o their_o communion_n oblige_v they_o to_o hold_v kill_v doctrine_n shall_v attribute_v to_o themselves_o the_o title_n of_o a_o church_n he_o teach_v we_o that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o earth_n will_v not_o give_v their_o child_n a_o scorpion_n for_o a_o egg_n or_o a_o serpent_n for_o a_o fish_n and_o how_o then_o be_v it_o that_o the_o church_n shall_v give_v she_o poison_n instead_o of_o wholesome_a food_n or_o that_o heretical_a sect_n who_o wine_n say_v saint_n hierom_n be_v the_o fury_n of_o dragon_n and_o the_o incurable_a fury_n of_o asp_n shall_v be_v church_n he_o teach_v 11_o we_o that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o way_n the_o gate_n and_o entry_n into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n yea_o for_o this_o cause_n himself_o often_o call_v it_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n it_o be_v then_o of_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o church_n that_o salvation_n may_v be_v therein_o obtain_v and_o the_o way_n how_o to_o come_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o consequent_o that_o among_o the_o condition_n under_o who_o obligation_n she_o receive_v man_n into_o her_o communion_n there_o be_v none_o repugnant_a to_o salvation_n now_o contrariwise_o it_o be_v of_o the_o essence_n and_o of_o the_o definition_n of_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a society_n that_o among_o the_o condition_n under_o which_o they_o receive_v man_n into_o their_o communion_n there_o be_v condition_n repugnant_a to_o salvation_n otherwise_o they_o can_v not_o be_v heretical_a &_o schismatical_a and_o so_o it_o be_v of_o the_o essence_n and_o of_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n not_o to_o be_v heretical_a and_o it_o be_v of_o the_o essence_n and_o of_o the_o definition_n of_o heretical_a society_n contrariwise_o not_o to_o be_v church_n nor_o part_n of_o the_o church_n and_o they_o can_v be_v call_v church_n nor_o member_n of_o the_o church_n but_o false_o and_o equivocallie_o as_o a_o dead_a member_n that_o be_v cut_v off_o from_o the_o body_n be_v no_o member_n but_o equivocallie_o and_o by_o abuse_n of_o speech_n of_o as_o a_o dead_a man_n or_o a_o man_n either_o form_v in_o picture_n or_o raise_v in_o a_o sculpture_n be_v no_o man_n but_o equivocal_o &_o by_o abuse_n of_o speech_n by_o mean_n whereof_o it_o be_v to_o err_v against_o the_o essence_n and_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n to_o hold_v they_o for_o church_n or_o to_o reckon_v they_o in_o the_o totalitie_n of_o the_o catholic_a 73._o church_n and_o to_o this_o all_o the_o father_n agree_v heresy_n say_v clemens_n alexandrinus_n be_v equivocallie_o call_v church_n and_o saint_n cyprian_n novatianus_n do_v as_o ape_n do_v who_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v man_n though_o they_o be_v not_o so_o so_o will_v he_o seem_v to_o have_v a_o church_n though_o he_o have_v none_o and_o again_o when_o the_o novatian_n demand_v 22._o believe_v thou_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n by_o the_o holy_a church_n they_o lie_v in_o their_o interrogatory_n for_o they_o have_v no_o church_n and_o the_o elibertine_n council_n if_o any_o one_o pass_v from_o the_o catholic_n church_n unto_o heresy_n and_o return_n again_o to_o the_o church_n episc._n etc._n etc._n and_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n we_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o limtt_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n those_o that_o affirm_v christ_n to_o be_v god_n and_o not_o very_a god_n and_o saint_n hierome_n heretic_n make_v in_o their_o church_n by_o false_a appellation_n that_o which_o they_o make_v when_o they_o be_v yet_o heathen_a and_o again_o no_o heretical_a congregation_n can_v be_v call_v advers._n the_o church_n os_fw-la christ._n and_o elsewhere_o in_o what_o church_n have_v he_o believe_v in_o that_o luciferian_n of_o the_o arrian_n but_o they_o have_v none_o and_o in_o the_o same_o work_n if_o thou_o hear_v in_o ibid._n any_o place_n of_o man_n denominate_v from_o any_o other_o then_o from_o christ_n as_o marcionites_n ualentinian_o montagnier_n or_o campite_n know_v that_o there_o be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n and_o optatus_n milevitanus_fw-la out_o of_o the_o only_a church_n which_o be_v the_o true_a catholic_n church_n other_o among_o heretic_n be_v esteem_v to_o be_v and_o be_v not_o and_o again_o there_o be_v one_o only_a church_n which_o can_v be_v among_o you_o and_o among_o we_o it_o remain_v then_o that_o she_o must_v be_v in_o one_o place_n and_o s._n augustine_n you_o be_v with_o we_o in_o the_o creed_n and_o in_o the_o other_o sacrament_n of_o our_o lord_n &c_n &c_n but_o you_o be_v not_o with_o we_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o again_o there_o be_v one_o catholic_a church_n upon_o which_o other_o 〈◊〉_d impose_v other_o name_n although_o themselves_o be_v all_o call_v by_o particular_a name_n which_o they_o dare_v not_o disavow_v from_o whence_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o judge_n not_o preoccupate_v with_o favour_n to_o who_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_a whereof_o they_o be_v all_o ambitious_a aught_o to_o be_v attribute_v and_o elsewhere_o the_o church_n of_o the_o saint_n 149._o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n the_o church_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o heretic_n she_o have_v be_v predesign_v before_o she_o be_v see_v and_o have_v be_v exhibit_v that_o she_o may_v be_v see_v and_o in_o the_o book_n of_o faith_n and_o of_o the_o creed_n neither_o do_v the_o heretic_n belong_v to_o the_o catholic_n church_n because_o she_o love_v god_n nor_o the_o schismatickes_n because_o she_o love_v her_o neighbour_n and_o in_o the_o book_n against_o the_o fundamental_a epistle_n in_o this_o church_n final_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_a detain_v i_o which_o this_o church_n alone_o among_o so_o many_a and_o so_o great_a heresy_n have_v so_o preserve_v as_o when_o a_o stranger_n ask_v where_o they_o assemble_v to_o the_o catholic_n church_n there_o be_v no_o heretic_n dare_v she_o we_o his_o temple_n or_o his_o house_n and_o in_o his_o treatise_n upon_o saint_n john_n 4._o all_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n be_v go_v out_o from_o we_o that_o be_v to_o say_v be_v go_v out_o from_o the_o church_n faustinus_n be_v not_o precedent_n to_o a_o church_n but_o to_o a_o faction_n the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v not_o glorify_v christ_n with_o a_o true_a glory_n but_o in_o the_o catholic_n church_n for_o elsewhere_o add_v he_o be_v it_o among_o heretic_n be_v it_o among_o pagan_n his_o true_a glory_n upon_o earth_n can_v be_v and_o upon_o saint_n matthew_n verb._n jew_n and_o all_o other_o heretic_n which_o do_v indeed_o confess_v that_o there_o be_v a_o holy_a ghost_n but_o deny_v that_o he_o be_v in_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v his_o only_a church_n no_o other_o certain_o but_o only_o the_o catholic_a be_v without_o doubt_n like_o the_o pharisee_n who_o though_o they_o euang._n do_v confess_v that_o there_o be_v a_o holy_a ghost_n yet_o deny_v he_o to_o be_v in_o christ._n and_o in_o 11._o the_o book_n of_o the_o method_n to_o cathecise_a the_o not_o instruct_v we_o must_v say_v he_o garnish_n and_o animate_v the_o infirmity_n of_o man_n against_o temptation_n and_o scandal_n c_o be_v it_o without_o or_o be_v it_o within_o the_o church_n 〈◊〉_d against_o gentile_n or_o 〈◊〉_d or_o heretic_n and_o within_o against_o the_o straw_n in_o the_o barn_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o 27._o again_o let_v not_o the_o enemy_n seduce_v thou_o not_o only_o by_o those_o that_o be_v without_o the_o conc._n church_n whether_o pagan_n or_o jew_n or_o heretic_n but_o even_o by_o those_o that_o thou_o see_v 71._o in_o the_o church_n evil_a liver_n and_o in_o the_o fowrth_a council_n of_o carthage_n where_o he_o assist_v in_o person_n let_v not_o the_o conventicle_n of_o heretic_n be_v call_v church_n cod._n but_o mock-councell_n and_o the_o very_a law_n of_o the_o emperor_n heretic_n rash_o presume_v to_o call_v their_o conventicle_n church_n now_o if_o this_o have_v place_n in_o other_o 2._o heresy_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o be_v and_o title_n of_o a_o church_n be_v deny_v to_o they_o how_o much_o more_o in_o that_o of_o the_o eutychian_o that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o egyptian_n and_o ethiopian_n which_o destroy_v not_o the_o wall_n the_o roof_n and_o the_o cover_n only_o but_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o edifice_n of_o faith_n upon_o the_o which_o all_o the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o doctrine_n be_v build_v to_o wit_n christ_n the_o corner_n stone_n and_o maintain_v
alone_o and_o from_o belong_v to_o she_o alone_o no_o more_o than_o when_o in_o a_o common_a weal_n the_o factious_a part_n and_o which_o separate_v itself_o from_o the_o state_n and_o revolte_n against_o the_o true_a preserver_n of_o the_o estate_n come_v to_o be_v divide_v from_o that_o which_o remain_v in_o the_o lawful_a administration_n of_o the_o estate_n this_o division_n hinder_v not_o the_o part_n which_o rest_v unite_v with_o the_o estate_n from_o preserve_v the_o right_a and_o title_n of_o the_o universallitie_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n and_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v by_o it_o alone_o from_o be_v account_v to_o be_v do_v by_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n who_o whole_a be_v be_v preserve_v in_o this_o part_n alone_o the_o other_o by_o the_o desertion_n thereof_o have_v lose_v all_o the_o part_n it_o have_v in_o the_o name_n and_o effect_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n of_o the_o sense_n wherein_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v call_v catholic_a chap._n ix_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n to_o attribute_n to_o themselves_o the_o title_n of_o catholic_a as_o proper_a to_o themselves_o alone_o the_o reply_n when_o we_o use_v this_o train_n of_o epithet_n the_o catholic_a apostolic_a roman_a church_n we_o intend_v not_o by_o the_o word_n roman_n the_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n but_o all_o the_o church_n which_o adhere_v and_o be_v join_v in_o communion_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n even_o as_o by_o the_o jewish_a church_n we_o intend_v not_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n only_o but_o the_o line_n of_o levi_n and_o benjamin_n and_o many_o relic_n of_o the_o line_n which_o be_v join_v therewith_o for_o saint_n john_n baptist_n be_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o levy_n and_o saint_n paul_n of_o that_o of_o benjamin_n &_o anna_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o aser_n and_o nevertheless_o they_o be_v all_o of_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o of_o the_o jewish_a church_n but_o they_o be_v call_v jew_n and_o jewish_a people_n because_o of_o the_o adherence_n and_o communion_n that_o they_o have_v with_o the_o principal_a tribe_n which_o be_v that_o of_o juda_n so_o all_o the_o other_o church_n which_o communicate_v with_o the_o roman_a in_o what_o soever_o part_n they_o be_v constitute_v be_v comprehend_v under_o the_o common_a word_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n when_o we_o say_v the_o catholic_a apostolic_a and_o roman_a church_n because_o they_o hold_v the_o roman_a church_n for_o the_o centre_n and_o original_n of_o their_o communion_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n saint_n ambrose_n say_v that_o his_o brother_n inquire_v if_o the_o bishop_n of_o one_o of_o the_o city_n of_o sardica_n where_o he_o desire_v to_o be_v baptize_v consent_v with_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n that_o be_v to_o say_v add_v he_o with_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n saint_n hierome_n say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n glorify_v herself_o that_o she_o participate_v with_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n john_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n write_v to_o pope_n hormisdas_n we_o promise_v not_o to_o recite_v among_o the_o sacred_a mistiry_n the_o name_n of_o those_o which_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o cathoick_a church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o consent_v not_o in_o all_o thing_n with_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o in_o this_o sense_n beda_n use_v these_o word_n our_o mother_n the_o roman_a church_n in_o this_o same_o sense_n they_o comprehend_v under_o the_o greek_a church_n not_o only_o the_o natuaall_a greek_n but_o the_o russian_n and_o muscovite_n although_o they_o be_v distinct_a in_o nation_n and_o in_o language_n from_o the_o greek_n yea_o even_o have_v their_o service_n in_o a_o tongue_n quite_o different_a for_o asmuch_o as_o they_o adhere_v to_o the_o creek_n church_n not_o that_o the_o particular_a roman_a church_n may_v not_o also_o in_o a_o certain_a regard_n be_v call_v catholic_a for_o the_o word_n catholic_a be_v take_v in_o three_o sort_n to_o wit_n either_o formal_o or_o causallie_o or_o participativelie_a formal_o the_o only_a universal_a church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o society_n of_o all_o the_o true_a particular_a church_n unite_v in_o ourselves_o same_o communion_n be_v call_v catholic_a causallie_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v call_v catholic_a for_o as_o much_o as_o she_o infuse_v universality_n into_o all_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o it_o be_v so_o to_o constitute_v universality_n there_o must_v be_v two_o thing_n one_o that_o may_v analogicallie_o be_v instead_o of_o matter_n thereto_o to_o wit_n the_o multitude_n for_o where_o there_o be_v no_o multitude_n there_o can_v be_v no_o universality_n and_o the_o other_o to_o be_v instead_n of_o form_n thereto_o to_o wit_n unity_n for_o a_o multitude_n without_o unity_n make_v no_o universality_n take_v away_o say_v saint_n augustine_n the_o unity_n from_o the_o multitude_n and_o it_o be_v a_o tumult_n but_o bring_v in_o unity_n and_o it_o be_v the_o people_n and_o therefore_o 26._o the_o roman_a church_n which_o as_o centre_n and_o beginning_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n infuse_v unity_n which_o be_v the_o form_n of_o universality_n into_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o by_o consequent_a cause_v universality_n in_o she_o may_v be_v call_v catholic_a causallie_n though_o in_o she_o own_o be_v she_o be_v particular_a no_o more_o nor_o less_o than_o the_o galley_n to_o which_o all_o the_o other_o galley_n of_o a_o fleet_n have_v relation_n of_o dependency_n and_o correspondency_n be_v call_v the_o general_n although_o she_o be_v but_o one_o particular_a galley_n because_o it_o be_v she_o that_o by_o the_o relation_n that_o all_o other_o have_v to_o she_o give_v unity_n to_o the_o total_a and_o general_a body_n of_o the_o fleet_n and_o final_o particular_a church_n be_v call_v catholic_a participative_o because_o they_o agree_v and_o participate_v in_o doctrine_n and_o communion_n with_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n the_o church_n of_o smyrna_n address_v her_o epistle_n to_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o philomilion_n and_o to_o all_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o be_v throughout_o the_o world_n of_o the_o cause_n wherefore_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v cut_n of_o the_o rest_n from_o her_o communion_n chap._n x._o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n and_o to_o exclude_v from_o their_o communion_n all_o the_o rest_n which_o dissent_n from_o they_o in_o any_o thing_n or_o refuse_v the_o yoke_n of_o slavery_n the_o reply_n the_o most_o excellent_a king_n may_v be_v please_v to_o remember_v two_o thing_n one_o that_o ancient_a author_n have_v write_v that_o oftentimes_o for_o one_o only_a word_n contrary_a to_o faith_n many_o heresy_n have_v be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o other_o that_o the_o society_n of_o the_o egyptian_n and_o ethiopian_n have_v not_o be_v exclude_v out_o of_o the_o church_n for_o refuse_v that_o which_o his_o majesty_n call_v the_o yoke_n of_o slavery_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o superintendencie_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o for_o have_v embrace_v the_o sect_n of_o eutyches_n who_o with_o all_o his_o partaker_n be_v cut_v off_o from_o the_o church_n by_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o that_o even_o to_o this_o day_n they_o be_v all_o ready_a and_o have_v often_o offer_v to_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n who_o they_o confess_v to_o be_v the_o successor_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n if_o they_o may_v be_v receive_v into_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n without_o oblige_v they_o to_o anathematise_v eutiche_n and_o dioscorus_n and_o as_o for_o the_o division_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n the_o true_a cause_n thereof_o have_v be_v the_o schism_n fall_v out_o between_o ignatius_n lawful_a patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n who_o the_o pope_n preserve_v in_o his_o communion_n and_o photius_n intrude_v into_o the_o patriarkship_n by_o the_o favour_n of_o the_o emperor_n to_o which_o schism_n the_o greek_n add_v for_o a_o obstacle_n of_o reunion_n as_o the_o crabb_n cast_v the_o stone_n into_o the_o oyster_n to_o hinder_v it_o from_o shut_v itself_o again_o the_o difference_n of_o the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o of_o schismatickes_n become_v flat_a heretic_n this_o be_v the_o true_a cause_n of_o the_o separation_n of_o the_o greek_n and_o not_o the_o yoke_n of_o slavery_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n of_o the_o which_o neither_o jgnatius_n nor_o any_o of_o his_o catholic_a predcessor_n have_v ever_o complain_v of_o the_o sense_n wherein_o the_o heretic_n belong_v not_o to_o the_o catholic_n church_n chap._n xi_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_v and_o so_o on_o the_o sudden_a to_o pronounce_v presumptuous_o that_o they_o belong_v not_o in_o any_o thing_n to_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o reply_n this_o denial_n be_v
in_o our_o own_o word_n or_o in_o the_o word_n of_o her_o head_n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n i_o think_v we_o ought_v rather_o to_o seek_v she_o in_o his_o word_n from_o he_o that_o be_v truth_n and_o well_o know_v his_o own_o body_n and_o a_o while_n after_o i_o will_v not_o have_v the_o church_n demonstrate_v by_o humane_a instruction_n but_o by_o divine_a or_o acle_n and_o again_o let_v we_o then_o seek_v she_o in_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n he_o do_v not_o intend_v that_o to_o seek_v the_o church_n in_o the_o scripture_n 3_o between_o the_o catholic_n and_o the_o donatist_n be_v to_o seek_v the_o doctrine_n of_o ibidem_fw-la the_o church_n in_o the_o scripture_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o examine_v by_o the_o scripture_n the_o point_n of_o doctrine_n which_o be_v contest_v between_o the_o church_n and_o the_o donatist_n but_o to_o seek_v the_o mark_n and_o external_a and_o visible_a character_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o scripture_n to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o church_n be_v discern_v by_o those_o mark_n the_o truth_n of_o the_o doctrine_n contest_v may_v be_v after_o know_v by_o the_o disposition_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o understanding_n whereof_o it_o must_v be_v note_v that_o there_o be_v two_o question_n between_o the_o catholic_n and_o the_o donatist_n the_o one_o of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n to_o know_v on_o what_o party_n either_o of_o the_o catholic_n or_o of_o they_o the_o true_a society_n of_o the_o church_n reside_v the_o other_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n to_o wit_n the_o which_o they_o or_o the_o catholic_n hold_v the_o true_a doctrine_n concern_v the_o baptism_n of_o heretic_n the_o first_o question_n then_o which_o be_v of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n saint_n augustine_n will_v it_o shall_v be_v judge_v by_o the_o scripture_n alone_o for_o as_o much_o as_o in_o the_o precise_a controversy_n wherein_o the_o question_n be_v which_o of_o the_o two_o society_n be_v the_o church_n the_o voice_n of_o the_o true_a church_n can_v be_v discern_v but_o the_o second_o question_n which_o be_v that_o of_o the_o doctrine_n contest_v between_o the_o catholic_n and_o the_o donatist_n he_o will_v have_v it_o decide_v by_o the_o only_o deposition_n of_o the_o church_n as_o a_o faith_n full_a guardian_n and_o depositarie_n of_o the_o apostolic_a tradition_n to_o seek_v then_o according_a to_o saint_n augustine_n between_o the_o catholic_n and_o the_o donatist_n the_o church_n in_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o to_o search_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o contentious_a point_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o scripture_n but_o to_o seek_v the_o visible_a mark_n and_o note_n by_o which_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v exterior_o discern_v in_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o donatist_n to_o prove_v that_o their_o church_n be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o not_o the_o catholic_a church_n allege_v human_a act_n and_o human_a proof_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v receive_v into_o her_o communion_n without_o any_o expiation_n and_o purgation_n of_o precede_a penance_n those_o that_o have_v deliur_v the_o holy_a book_n to_o be_v burn_v and_o have_v sacrifice_v to_o the_o false_a god_n in_o the_o time_n of_o persecution_n and_o therefore_o that_o she_o be_v pollute_v with_o their_o contagion_n and_o be_v perish_v and_o then_o that_o the_o only_a faction_n of_o donatus_n which_o have_v remain_v pure_a from_o this_o contagion_n be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o saint_n augustine_n contrariwise_o say_v that_o against_o all_o these_o word_n which_o be_v human_a proof_n and_o word_n for_o if_o he_o that_o ordain_v cecilianus_n have_v deliver_v up_o the_o holy_a book_n in_o persecution_n time_n it_o be_v a_o thing_n to_o be_v prove_v by_o human_a testimony_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o act_n of_o notary_n and_o clerk_n even_o profane_a the_o catholic_n have_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n wherein_o the_o work_n of_o the_o church_n be_v describe_v to_o wit_n that_o she_o ought_v to_o be_v visible_a eminent_a universal_a perpetual_a and_o that_o to_o examine_v the_o church_n according_a to_o these_o mark_n it_o be_v to_o seek_v she_o in_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o examine_v she_o according_a to_o the_o production_n of_o the_o donatist_n it_o be_v 2._o to_o seek_v she_o in_o humane_a word_n what_o be_v say_v he_o our_o word_n wherein_o we_o must_v not_o seek_v she_o etc._n etc._n all_o that_o we_o object_n one_o against_o a_o other_o of_o the_o delivery_n 3._o of_o the_o holy_a book_n of_o the_o sacrifice_a to_o jdoll_n and_o of_o the_o persecution_n those_o be_v our_o word_n and_o a_o while_n after_o i_o will_v not_o that_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v demonstrate_v by_o human_a instruction_n but_o by_o divine_a oracle_n for_o if_o the_o holse_a scripture_n have_v design_v the_o church_n to_o be_v in_o africa_n alone_o and_o in_o a_o smalle_a number_n of_o roman_a inhabitant_n make_v their_o conventicle_n in_o rock_n and_o mount_v 〈◊〉_d and_o in_o the_o house_n and_o territory_n of_o a_o certain_a spanish_a lady_n than_o whatsoever_o record_n can_v be_v produce_v there_o be_v none_o but_o the_o donatist_n that_o have_v the_o church_n if_o the_o scripture_n assign_v it_o to_o a_o little_a number_n of_o mauritanian_n in_o the_o 〈◊〉_d province_n you_o must_v go_v to_o the_o rogatist_n if_o in_o a_o smalle_a troop_n of_o bizacenians_n and_o tripolitans_n &_o provincials_n the_o maximinianist_n have_v meet_v with_o she_o if_o those_o of_o the_o east_n alone_o we_o must_v seek_v she_o among_o the_o arrian_n macedonian_n eunomian_o and_o other_o if_o there_o be_v other_o for_o who_o can_v number_v the_o heresy_n as_o proper_a and_o particular_a of_o every_o particular_a province_n but_o if_o by_o the_o divine_a and_o most_o certain_a testimony_n of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n she_o be_v design_v in_o all_o nation_n whatsoever_o they_o produce_v and_o whensoever_o it_o be_v produce_v by_o those_o that_o say_v there_o be_v christ_n if_o we_o be_v 〈◊〉_d let_v we_o 〈◊〉_d hear_v the_o voice_n of_o our_o shepherd_n say_v believe_v they_o not_o for_o every_o one_o of_o those_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v but_o this_o which_o be_v over_o all_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o self_n same_o place_n where_o the_o other_o be_v and_o therefore_o let_v we_o seek_v she_o in_o the_o holy_a canonical_a scripture_n the_o place_n the_o of_o the_o scripture_n where_o s._n augustine_n will_v have_v the_o donatist_n to_o seek_v the_o church_n be_v these_o in_o thy_o seed_n all_o the_o nation_n upon_o the_o earth_n shall_v be_v bless_v the_o child_n of_o the_o forsake_a 165._o shall_v be_v in_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d number_n than_o those_o of_o she_o that_o have_v a_o husband_n this_o gospel_n must_v be_v declare_v over_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o then_o the_o end_n shall_v be_v i_o be_o with_o you_o to_o 〈◊〉_d the_o consummation_n of_o age_n and_o other_o such_o like_a and_o the_o argument_n that_o he_o 48._o bring_v to_o manifest_v the_o church_n by_o the_o scripture_n be_v these_o the_o city_n of_o god_n say_v he_o have_v this_o for_o a_o certain_a mark_n that_o she_o can_v be_v hide_v she_o be_v they_o 50_o know_v to_o all_o nation_n the_o sect_n of_o donatus_n be_v unknown_a to_o many_o nation_n then_o that_o be_v not_o she_o item_n you_o have_v the_o church_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v spread_v over_o all_o and_o to_o grow_v till_o the_o harvest_n you_o have_v the_o city_n whereof_o he_o that_o build_v it_o have_v say_v the_o city_n build_v upon_o the_o mountain_n can_v be_v hide_v it_o be_v she_o then_o that_o be_v most_o evident_a 104._o not_o in_o any_o one_o part_n of_o the_o world_n but_o over_o all_o and_o other_o the_o like_a but_o as_o for_o the_o point_n of_o doctrine_n i_o say_v again_o and_o i_o say_v it_o bold_o 26._o that_o saint_n augustine_n never_o intend_v either_o that_o the_o question_n of_o the_o church_n between_o the_o catholic_n and_o the_o donatist_n shall_v be_v try_v by_o the_o doctrine_n nor_o that_o the_o article_n of_o the_o doctrine_n contest_v between_o they_o shall_v be_v decide_v by_o scripture_n but_o that_o the_o point_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v examine_v by_o the_o external_a and_o visible_a mark_n that_o of_o the_o external_a and_o visible_a mark_n by_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o difference_n of_o doctrine_n by_o the_o report_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v to_o deny_v that_o in_o disputation_n against_o other_o heresy_n when_o point_n be_v handle_v which_o be_v here_o esteem_v to_o be_v expresselie_o treat_v of_o by_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n but_o that_o he_o often_o call_v upon_o their_o judgement_n for_o who_o doubt_v but_o that_o where_o the_o scripture_n be_v clear_a &_o
express_v we_o must_v have_v recourse_n thereto_o but_o we_o say_v that_o he_o never_o think_v neither_o in_o general_a that_o all_o thing_n belong_v to_o religion_n be_v treat_v off_o in_o scripture_n nor_o in_o particular_a that_o the_o contention_n between_o the_o catholic_n and_o the_o donatist_n concern_v baptism_n be_v of_o that_o quality_n and_o we_o maintain_v that_o for_o so_o many_o year_n wherein_o he_o combat_v with_o they_o about_o this_o article_n when_o there_o be_v quenstion_n of_o search_v the_o cause_n to_o the_o bottom_n he_o never_o produce_v one_o proof_n out_o of_o canonical_a scripture_n indeed_o he_o have_v often_o allege_v place_n of_o scripture_n to_o make_v some_o approach_n to_o it_o and_o to_o beat_v down_o certain_a defence_n to_o solve_v by_o scripture_n the_o argument_n that_o the_o donatist_n bring_v out_o of_o scripture_n to_o maintain_v that_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o point_n contest_v be_v according_a to_o scripture_n in_o as_o much_o as_o according_a signify_v not_o against_o the_o scripture_n to_o establie_o general_a thesis_n and_o preparative_n to_o prove_v the_o proposition_n that_o have_v some_o sympathy_n and_o affinity_n with_o that_o which_o he_o dispute_v as_o for_o example_n he_o do_v indeed_o prove_v by_o scripture_n that_o what_o be_v sound_a 7._o and_o entire_a among_o heretic_n must_v not_o be_v repeat_v again_o when_o they_o return_v to_o the_o church_n but_o that_o baptism_n be_v sound_a and_o entire_a among_o they_o he_o do_v no_o be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n he_o prove_v indeed_o by_o scripture_n 30._o that_o there_o may_v be_v ecclesiastical_a thing_n out_o of_o the_o church_n but_o that_o baptism_n be_v of_o that_o number_n he_o nether_a do_v nor_o can_v prove_v by_o scripture_n he_o prove_v indeed_o by_o scripture_n that_o it_o be_v against_o the_o commaun_n dement_fw-la alibi_fw-la of_o god_n if_o heretic_n have_v receive_v the_o baptism_n of_o christ_n in_o their_o own_o party_n to_o rebaptise_v they_o for_o we_o also_o read_v that_o our_o lord_n answer_v saint_n peter_n he_o that_o be_v whole_o wash_v need_v wash_v but_o his_o foot_n but_o that_o heretic_n receive_v the_o baptism_n of_o christ_n in_o their_o sect_n and_o not_o 〈◊〉_d pollute_a and_o profane_a wash_n which_o be_v all_o the_o knot_n of_o the_o question_n he_o no_o be_v prove_n by_o scripture_n for_o as_o 31._o he_o note_v elsewhere_o peter_n of_o who_o this_o be_v write_v have_v not_o be_v baptize_v by_o heretic_n he_o prove_v indeed_o by_o scripture_n that_o they_o 18._o who_o be_v out_o of_o the_o interior_a and_o spiritual_a unity_n of_o the_o church_n as_o judas_n and_o wicked_a catholic_n do_v not_o for_o that_o leave_n to_o confer_v true_a baptism_n but_o that_o they_o who_o be_v neither_o inwardlie_a nor_o outward_o in_o the_o church_n who_o be_v out_o of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o profession_n of_o faith_n and_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a body_n can_v confer_v it_o he_o prove_v no_o where_o by_o scripture_n and_o in_o sum_n the_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o solution_n of_o argument_n to_o probable_a and_o conjectural_a preparative_n to_o show_v of_o possibility_n and_o non_fw-la repugnancy_n to_o soften_v and_o dispose_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o reader_n he_o do_v indeed_o prove_v by_o scripture_n but_o the_o impression_n of_o the_o last_o form_n the_o assumption_n and_o hypothesis_n of_o the_o sillogisme_n the_o proof_n of_o this_o precise_a and_o special_a point_n that_o baptism_n whereof_o saint_n john_n cry_v none_o may_v receive_v any_o thing_n except_o it_o be_v give_v he_o from_o heaven_n that_o saint_n peter_n say_v to_o be_v administer_v into_o remission_n 2._o 〈◊〉_d of_o sin_n that_o saint_n paul_n call_v the_o wash_n of_o regeneration_n and_o the_o renew_n 4._o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o whereof_o he_o write_v one_o faith_n and_o one_o 3_o baptism_n and_o again_o all_o they_o that_o be_v baptize_v have_v put_v on_o christ_n that_o this_o sacrament_n i_o say_v may_v be_v confer_v out_o of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o fullnes_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o seal_a fountain_n which_o be_v the_o only_a dwell_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v she_o alone_a that_o have_v receive_v the_o key_n and_o the_o authority_n to_o remit_v sin_n that_o this_o can_v subsist_v among_o heretic_n who_o have_v neither_o faith_n nor_o gift_n from_o heaven_n nor_o the_o holy_a ghost_n you_o can_v never_o find_v that_o in_o so_o main_a year_n as_o saint_n augustine_n the_o principal_a opposite_a and_o overthrow_n of_o this_o heresy_n have_v contest_v she_o he_o have_v never_o manifest_v nor_o can_v he_o nor_o he_o have_v not_o pretend_v to_o prove_v by_o any_o passage_n of_o scripture_n but_o by_o the_o only_a unwritten_a tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o general_a practice_n and_o universal_a attestation_n of_o the_o church_n we_o must_v say_v he_o observe_v in_o these_o thing_n what_o the_o church_n of_o god_n observe_v the_o question_n now_o between_o you_o and_o we_o be_v which_o of_o you_o or_o we_o be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o again_o wherefore_o although_o in_o truth_n there_o be_v no_o example_n to_o be_v produce_v of_o this_o out_o of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d scripture_n yet_o we_o leave_v not_o to_o maintain_v even_o in_o this_o case_n the_o truth_n of_o the_o scripture_n when_o we_o observe_v what_o have_v be_v approve_v by_o all_o that_o church_n that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n recommend_v and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n this_o be_v neither_o open_o nor_o evidentlie_o 19_o read_v neither_o by_o you_o nor_o by_o i_o etc._n etc._n but_o if_o any_o one_o endue_v with_o wisdom_n and_o recommend_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o world_n and_o that_o he_o have_v be_v consult_v by_o we_o upon_o this_o question_n we_o ought_v no_o way_n to_o doubt_v to_o do_v what_o he_o shall_v tell_v we_o for_o fear_v of_o be_v judge_v repugnant_a not_o so_o much_o to_o he_o as_o to_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n by_o who_o testimony_n he_o have_v be_v recommend_v now_o he_o give_v testimony_n to_o his_o church_n and_o in_o the_o work_n of_o baptism_n against_o the_o same_o donatist_n the_o apostle_n say_v he_o have_v prescribe_v nothing_o in_o this_o matter_n but_o 23._o this_o custom_n ought_v to_o be_v believe_v to_o have_v take_v the_o original_n there_o of_o from_o their_o tradition_n as_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n which_o the_o universal_a church_n observe_v and_o which_o be_v therefore_o not_o without_o cause_n believe_v to_o have_v be_v command_v by_o the_o apostle_n although_o they_o be_v not_o write_v from_o whence_o the_o contrary_a appear_v to_o what_o his_o majesty_n pretend_v to_o infer_v from_o this_o passage_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o scripture_n only_o destitute_a of_o the_o unwritten_a apostolic_a tradition_n can_v decidè_fw-la all_o point_n of_o faith_n nor_o refute_v all_o heresy_n for_o the_o point_n in_o agitation_n between_o the_o catholic_n and_o the_o donatist_n concern_v the_o truth_n &_o reality_n of_o the_o baptism_n give_v by_o heretic_n be_v a_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o wherein_o obstinate_a error_n will_v make_v a_o heresy_n the_o proof_n of_o this_o be_v first_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o baptism_n import_v so_o much_o to_o the_o faith_n as_o where_o there_o be_v no_o true_a baptism_n there_o be_v no_o true_a church_n saint_n paul_n teach_v we_o that_o 5._o god_n cleanse_v his_o church_n through_o the_o wash_n of_o water_n in_o the_o word_n now_o there_o where_o the_o church_n be_v destroy_v there_o be_v destroy_v this_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o creed_n i_o believe_v the_o bolie_a catholic_n church_n and_o secondlie_o that_o the_o unity_n of_o baptism_n belong_v so_o to_o faith_n as_o s._n paul_n say_v there_o be_v one_o faith_n and_o one_o baptism_n and_o that_o the_o creed_n of_o constantinople_n set_v among_o the_o 4._o article_n of_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o faith_n we_o 〈◊〉_d one_o baptism_n in_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o if_o the_o donatist_n err_v in_o disannul_v the_o baptism_n 1_o of_o heretic_n and_o rebaptise_v they_o they_o destroy_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o baptism_n and_o anathematise_v the_o character_n of_o christ_n which_o have_v already_o be_v imprint_v in_o the_o baptize_v by_o baptism_n and_o if_o the_o catholic_n err_v in_o approve_v the_o baptism_n of_o heretic_n and_o in_o not_o rebaptisinge_v they_o when_o they_o come_v to_o they_o they_o sin_v against_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o baptism_n for_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o church_n and_o consequent_o have_v no_o church_n and_o nevertheless_o neither_o can_v this_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v prove_v nor_o
beside_o that_o antiquity_n affirm_v that_o the_o apostle_n have_v give_v many_o thing_n by_o tradition_n unwritten_a to_o their_o disciple_n his_o majesty_n himself_o testify_v that_o he_o be_v far_o from_o their_o opinion_n that_o believe_v the_o universal_a history_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n to_o be_v all_o contain_v in_o the_o sacred_a but_o only_o little_a book_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n of_o the_o indefectibilitie_n of_o the_o church_n chap._n xxvii_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n the_o king_n confess_v that_o his_o church_n have_v separate_v herself_o in_o many_o point_n from_o the_o faith_n and_o discipline_n that_o the_o roman_a bishop_n do_v at_o this_o day_n hold_v and_o defend_v with_o might_n and_o main_n but_o the_o king_n and_o the_o english_a church_n 〈◊〉_d not_o interpret_v that_o to_o be_v a_o defection_n from_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a say_v but_o rather_o a_o return_n to_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a faith_n which_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v be_v admirable_o deform_v in_o many_o kind_n and_o a_o conversion_n to_o christ_n the_o only_a master_n of_o the_o church_n the_o reply_n and_o even_o this_o confirm_v our_o intention_n to_o know_v that_o there_o be_v at_o this_o day_n no_o catholic_a church_n a_o thing_n direct_o against_o god_n promise_n or_o that_o this_o that_o we_o have_v be_v she_o for_o there_o can_v be_v no_o other_o catholic_a church_n but_o she_o that_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o first_o 〈◊〉_d counsel_n now_o she_o if_o she_o have_v be_v interrupt_v and_o she_o have_v be_v so_o if_o we_o which_o have_v succeed_v she_o have_v be_v want_v in_o faith_n and_o in_o union_n with_o christ_n without_o which_o a_o society_n can_v be_v a_o church_n the_o english_a church_n which_o succeed_v she_o not_o by_o a_o uninterrupt_a continuance_n can_v be_v the_o same_o church_n for_o what_o aristotle_n say_v of_o commonwealth_n may_v also_o be_v say_v of_o the_o church_n to_o wit_n that_o when_o a_o commonwealth_n have_v interrupt_v the_o successive_a continuance_n of_o her_o be_v it_o be_v no_o more_o one_o common_a wealth_n in_o number_n but_o a_o other_o commonwealth_n so_o if_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n have_v interrupt_v the_o successive_a continuance_n of_o her_o be_v she_o be_v no_o more_o one_o and_o not_o be_v one_o she_o be_v no_o more_o a_o church_n for_o the_o church_n be_v one_o or_o none_o and_o therefore_o the_o father_n cry_v out_o that_o if_o the_o church_n be_v once_o perish_v she_o can_v no_o more_o be_v bear_v again_o if_o in_o s._n cyprian_n time_n say_v saint_n augustine_n the_o church_n perish_v from_o what_o heaven_n it_o donatus_n fall_v from_o con_fw-mi what_o sea_n come_v he_o forth_o what_o earth_n have_v sprunge_v he_o up_o for_o to_o say_v that_o the_o english_a church_n account_v not_o her_o separation_n from_o the_o faith_n and_o from_o the_o 2_o discipline_n of_o the_o pope_n a_o defection_n from_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a faith_n but_o a_o return_n to_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a faith_n and_o a_o conversion_n to_o christ_n be_v not_o the_o question_n viz._n whether_o the_o english_a church_n be_v convert_v to_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a faith_n for_o as_o it_o have_v be_v above_o show_v the_o name_n of_o catholic_a be_v not_o a_o name_n of_o simple_a belief_n but_o of_o communion_n by_o mean_n whereof_o the_o english_a church_n may_v have_v all_o faith_n even_o to_o the_o remove_n of_o mountain_n yet_o if_o she_o communicate_v not_o with_o the_o catholic_a church_n she_o can_v neither_o obtain_v the_o title_n of_o catholic_a nor_o the_o reward_n of_o life_n eternal_a but_o shall_v be_v schismatical_a and_o exclude_v from_o salvation_n and_o therefore_o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n in_o this_o which_o be_v present_v be_v not_o whether_o the_o english_a church_n be_v return_v to_o the_o true_a faith_n but_o whether_o the_o church_n which_o possess_v at_o this_o day_n the_o name_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v lose_v the_o be_v of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o she_o can_v have_v do_v if_o in_o thing_n important_a to_o salvation_n and_o constructive_a or_o destructive_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n she_o have_v not_o vary_v from_o that_o of_o the_o time_n of_o the_o four_o first_o counsel_n which_o we_o on_o both_o side_n confess_v to_o have_v be_v the_o true_a church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v if_o she_o have_v not_o take_v away_o from_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o those_o age_n some_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o without_o which_o salvation_n can_v be_v obtain_v or_o if_o she_o have_v not_o add_v to_o the_o practice_n of_o that_o church_n something_o repugnant_a to_o salvation_n and_o with_o which_o life_n eternal_a can_v be_v obtain_v from_o whence_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o office_n of_o the_o english_a church_n in_o this_o question_n be_v to_o show_v not_o that_o she_o have_v return_v to_o the_o ancient_a faith_n which_o will_v always_o exact_v the_o necessity_n of_o a_o precede_a dispute_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o church_n from_o whence_o she_o go_v out_o have_v divert_v herself_o from_o it_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o aversion_n shall_v precede_v the_o proof_n of_o reversion_n but_o that_o the_o church_n which_o we_o at_o this_o day_n entitle_v catholic_a have_v so_o divert_v herself_o from_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o time_n of_o the_o four_o first_o counsel_n which_o both_o they_o and_o we_o hold_v to_o have_v be_v the_o true_a church_n as_o she_o have_v lose_v be_v and_o the_o just_a title_n of_o a_o church_n and_o that_o salvation_n can_v no_o more_o be_v obtain_v in_o she_o and_o our_o office_n be_v contrariwise_o to_o maintain_v that_o the_o church_n which_o be_v at_o this_o day_n differ_v not_o in_o any_o thing_n that_o can_v destroy_v salvation_n and_o make_v she_o loose_v the_o be_v and_o the_o title_n of_o a_o true_a church_n from_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n and_o that_o all_o the_o point_n that_o our_o adversary_n object_n against_o we_o as_o such_o and_o for_o which_o they_o take_v occasion_n to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o we_o under_o pretence_n that_o in_o our_o communion_n salvation_n can_v be_v obtain_v have_v be_v hold_v by_o the_o ancient_a church_n of_o the_o sense_n wherein_o the_o father_n have_v intend_v that_o their_o doctrine_n have_v be_v hold_v from_o the_o beginning_n chap._n xxviii_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n and_o therefore_o if_o any_o one_o in_o consequence_n of_o this_o observation_n will_v infer_v from_o thence_o that_o the_o english_a church_n because_o she_o reject_v some_o of_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v depart_v from_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n the_o king_n will_v not_o grant_v he_o that_o till_o he_o have_v first_o prove_v by_o solid_a reason_n that_o all_o thing_n that_o the_o roman_a teach_v have_v be_v approve_v from_o the_o beginning_n and_o ordain_v by_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n and_o that_o no_o man_n can_v do_v this_o now_o nor_o in_o the_o time_n to_o come_v at_o the_o least_o that_o till_o now_o no_o body_n have_v do_v it_o be_v a_o thing_n é_fw-fr as_o certain_a to_o the_o king_n and_o to_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o english_a church_n as_o that_o the_o sun_n shine_v àt_a noon_n day_n the_o reply_n neither_o be_v it_o the_o question_n as_o i_o have_v already_o many_o time_n say_v whether_o the_o english_a church_n have_v depart_v from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n but_o whether_o our_o church_n be_v so_o far_o stray_v from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n as_o she_o can_v no_o more_o be_v repute_v one_o self_n same_o church_n with_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o that_o we_o can_v no_o more_o communicate_v with_o she_o without_o loss_n of_o salvation_n for_o if_o she_o be_v still_o the_o same_o church_n and_o that_o among_o the_o condition_n under_o the_o obligation_n whereof_o her_o communion_n be_v participate_v there_o be_v no_o doctrine_n nor_o custom_n which_o be_v opposite_a to_o salvation_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o out_o of_o her_o society_n though_o one_o shall_v have_v faith_n sufficient_a to_o remove_v mountain_n yet_o they_o can_v neither_o possessé_fw-fr the_o salvation_n nor_o title_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n neither_o be_v it_o the_o question_n to_o know_v whether_o all_o thing_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n hold_v and_o principal_o those_o which_o she_o hold_v to_o be_v necessary_a for_o salvation_n have_v be_v hold_v by_o antiquity_n and_o in_o this_o quality_n which_o will_v be_v a_o long_a and_o thorny_a disputation_n because_o of_o the_o diversity_n of_o the_o acception_n of_o the_o word_n necessary_a under_o the_o ambiguity_n whereof_o there_o will_v always_o remain_v a_o thousand_o cavil_n and_o
himself_o confess_v in_o these_o word_n the_o apostle_n say_v he_o in_o truth_n have_v prescribe_v nothing_o of_o this_o but_o this_o custom_n ought_v to_o be_v believe_v to_o have_v take_v original_a from_o their_o tradition_n 23._o as_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n that_o the_o universal_a church_n observe_v which_o be_v with_o good_a reason_n believe_v to_o have_v be_v give_v by_o the_o apostle_n although_o they_o be_v not_o in_o writing_n be_v this_o to_o pretend_v to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o church_n out_o of_o jollity_n of_o hart_n and_o without_o any_o cause_n and_o neither_o to_o blame_v the_o faith_n nor_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o christian_a people_n which_o deny_v to_o the_o church_n the_o title_n of_o catholic_n chapt._n xxxii_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_v the_o english_a have_v separate_v themselves_o by_o a_o cruel_a necessity_n from_o that_o church_n that_o infinite_a christian_a people_n that_o i_o may_v speak_v as_o modest_o as_o i_o possible_o can_v do_v not_o 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v the_o true_a universal_a church_n the_o reply_n that_o the_o english_a church_n have_v be_v just_o force_v by_o a_o cruel_a necessity_n to_o depart_v from_o the_o catholic_a church_n wherein_o alone_o the_o stock_n of_o unity_n do_v reside_v as_o our_o very_a adversary_n dare_v not_o say_v that_o the_o body_n of_o catholic_a unity_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o any_o other_o society_n when_o the_o english_a nation_n divide_v themselves_o from_o she_o saint_n agustine_n will_v not_o avow_v who_o say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o just_a necessity_n to_o divide_v unity_n and_o less_o s._n dionysius_n of_o alexandria_n 11_o who_o be_v much_o ancient_a than_o saint_n augustine_n who_o write_v thou_o ought_v rather_o to_o suffer_v all_o kind_n of_o death_n then_o to_o divide_v the_o church_n of_o christ._n 45_o for_o whereas_o his_o majesty_n add_v that_o a_o infinite_a number_n of_o christian_a people_n do_v not_o grant_v she_o to_o be_v the_o true_a &_o universal_a catholic_a church_n if_o these_o people_n can_v show_v that_o there_o be_v a_o other_o to_o who_o this_o title_n belong_v when_o luther_n come_v into_o the_o world_n we_o will_v confess_v she_o not_o to_o be_v so_o but_o if_o it_o be_v not_o in_o their_o power_n not_o only_o to_o show_v but_o to_o feign_v a_o other_o than_o this_o must_v be_v she_o for_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v perpetual_a and_o their_o contradiction_n that_o be_v depart_v from_o she_o can_v not_o raise_v any_o doubt_n of_o her_o title_n more_o than_o the_o contradiction_n of_o the_o ancient_a arrian_n and_o other_o heretic_n can_v cause_v the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n to_o loose_v this_o title_n for_o in_o that_o only_a that_o they_o have_v depart_v from_o she_o and_o can_v show_v that_o she_o have_v depart_v from_o any_o of_o all_o the_o other_o society_n which_o be_v in_o be_v they_o testify_v that_o she_o only_o be_v the_o true_a catholic_a church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o true_a stock_n and_o original_a root_n of_o the_o church_n from_o who_o all_o other_o by_o their_o schism_n and_o division_n be_v depart_v and_o go_v forth_o of_o the_o testimony_n of_o our_o writer_n chap._n xxxiii_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n and_o that_o manien_v of_o your_o writer_n themselves_o have_v a_o long_a while_n ago_o ingeniouslien_a confess_v to_o have_v much_o vary_v from_o the_o ancient_a in_o the_o dogm'a_n and_o in_o the_o form_n of_o discipline_n and_o to_o have_v patch_v and_o tack_v together_o many_o new_a thing_n to_o the_o old_a many_o evil_a thing_n to_o the_o good_a the_o reply_n those_o writer_n have_v be_v such_o as_o i_o have_v above_o describe_v as_o erasmus_n cassander_n and_o other_o who_o partly_o in_o presumption_n and_o partly_o in_o ignorance_n of_o antiquity_n and_o partly_o to_o gratify_v those_o prince_n in_o who_o favour_n they_o have_v take_v pen_n in_o hand_n have_v write_v thing_n which_o will_v confound_v their_o face_n if_o they_o be_v to_o maintain_v they_o before_o any_o that_o be_v verse_v of_o purpose_n in_o the_o study_n of_o antiquity_n of_o the_o beg_n of_o the_o principle_n contain_v in_o this_o hypothesis_n chapt_n xxxiv_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n which_o be_v already_o so_o know_v to_o all_o the_o world_n as_o it_o be_v no_o long_o in_o the_o power_n of_o any_o to_o deny_v it_o or_o to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o it_o the_o reply_n this_o be_v to_o take_v for_o a_o principle_n of_o disputation_n that_o which_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o the_o controversy_n for_o not_o only_o all_o catholic_n but_o also_o all_o the_o christian_a society_n in_o the_o world_n more_o ancient_a than_o the_o author_n of_o this_o division_n and_o who_o have_v no_o interest_n neither_o for_o the_o one_o part_n nor_o for_o the_o other_o and_o if_o they_o have_v any_o will_v have_v it_o rather_o against_o the_o church_n from_o which_o they_o be_v separate_v then_o for_o she_o do_v maintain_v that_o all_o the_o principal_a point_n that_o the_o pretend_a reformer_n calumniate_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v of_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o of_o the_o true_a discipline_n of_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n of_o the_o temporal_a cause_n of_o the_o separation_n of_o england_n chap._n xxxv_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_v add_v to_o this_o that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v find_v the_o yoke_n of_o the_o roman_a bondage_n so_o hard_o upon_o she_o for_o some_o age_n past_a be_v incrediblie_o torment_v from_o day_n to_o day_n with_o new_a vexation_n oppression_n and_o unheard_a of_o exaction_n as_o 〈◊〉_d only_a cause_n before_o just_a judge_n may_v seem_v to_o be_v able_a to_o free_v she_o from_o suspicion_n of_o schism_n and_o as_o s._n augustine_n say_v speak_v of_o the_o donatist_n wicked_a dismember_n for_o sur_fw-fr ely_z the_o english_a have_v not_o separarate_v themselves_o for_o jollity_n of_o heart_n from_o brotherly_a charity_n as_o the_o 〈◊〉_d do_v the_o reply_n if_o it_o may_v please_v your_o majesty_n to_o call_v again_o to_o memory_n the_o history_n of_o the_o schism_n of_o england_n you_o will_v find_v that_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v allege_v for_o pretence_n of_o the_o church_n division_n have_v no_o way_n be_v the_o cause_n thereof_o contrariwlse_o that_o the_o english_a church_n be_v more_o flourish_a when_o this_o separation_n happen_v and_o the_o king_n of_o england_n and_o his_o clergy_n more_o affectionate_a to_o maintain_v the_o faith_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n than_o ever_o they_o have_v be_v before_o as_o appear_v by_o the_o book_n that_o he_o make_v in_o defence_n of_o the_o church_n against_o luther_n the_o original_n whereof_o he_o send_v to_o rome_n with_o these_o verse_n such_o as_o they_o be_v address_v to_o pape_n leo_n write_v with_o his_o own_o hand_n friendship_n harrie_n the_o english_a king_n at_o once_o do_v recommend_v this_o work_n leo_n to_o thou_o which_o public_a proof_n shall_v lend_v to_o show_v which_o way_n his_o faith_n and_o friendship_n both_o do_v bend_v but_o that_o it_o be_v the_o amorous_a passion_n of_o that_o king_n who_o to_o satisfy_v the_o appetite_n which_o transport_v he_o will_v cause_v a_o just_a marriage_n to_o be_v break_v and_o marry_v she_o that_o he_o love_v his_o first_o lawful_a wife_n and_o by_o who_o he_o have_v issue_n be_v yet_o live_v to_o which_o the_o pope_n conceive_v that_o he_o can_v not_o with_o a_o safe_a conscience_n give_v consent_n this_o be_v the_o true_a and_o only_a cause_n of_o all_o this_o iliad_n of_o evil_n lachrymae_fw-la from_o hence_o gush_v all_o these_o tear_n of_o the_o comparison_n of_o the_o english_a church_n with_o the_o judaical_a chap._n xxxvi_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n not_o for_o fear_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v eminent_a but_o do_v not_o yet_o press_v they_o like_o the_o ten_o tribe_n of_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n but_o after_o have_v suffer_v many_o age_n after_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o unspeakable_a greevance_n they_o have_v final_o shake_v from_o their_o shoulder_n that_o insupportable_a burden_n which_o neither_o their_o strength_n be_v long_o able_a to_o bear_v nor_o will_v their_o conscience_n permit_v they_o to_o do_v it_o the_o reply_n here_o i_o may_v content_v myself_o with_o say_v that_o what_o be_v ordain_v and_o approve_v by_o god_n in_o the_o separation_n of_o the_o ten_o tribe_n of_o israel_n from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o juda_n be_v the_o only_a di_fw-mi vision_n of_o state_n and_o not_o that_o of_o religion_n for_o god_n as_o saint_n augfstine_n say_v command_v neither_o schism_n nor_o heresy_n and_o by_o consequence_n what_o pretence_n soever_o be_v add_v of_o present_a and_o not_o future_a evil_n there_o can_v be_v no_o consequence_n
the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n 437_o xxvi_o of_o the_o invention_n of_o order_n in_o the_o justification_n of_o the_o reformation_n before_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o deformation_n 438_o xxvii_o of_o the_o indefectibilitie_n of_o the_o church_n 439_o xxviii_o of_o the_o sense_n wherein_o the_o father_n have_v intend_v that_o their_o doctrine_n have_v be_v hold_v from_o the_o beginning_n 441_o xxix_o of_o the_o exception_n that_o the_o king_n produce_v to_o show_v that_o he_o have_v not_o separate_v himself_o from_o the_o church_n 442_o xxx_o of_o the_o demand_v make_v for_o reformation_n since_o the_o five_o last_o age_n 443_o xxxi_o of_o the_o agreement_n of_o the_o english_a reformer_n with_o the_o donatist_n 444_o xxxii_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o christian_a people_n which_o deny_v to_o the_o church_n the_o title_n of_o catholic_n 446_o xxxiii_o of_o the_o testimony_n of_o our_o writer_n 447_o xxxiv_o of_o the_o beg_n of_o the_o principle_n contain_v in_o this_o hypothesis_n ibid._n xxxu_o of_o the_o temporal_a cause_n of_o the_o separation_n of_o england_n 448_o xxxvi_o of_o the_o comparison_n of_o the_o english_a church_n with_o the_o judaical_a ibid._n xxxvii_o of_o the_o comparison_n of_o the_o charity_n of_o the_o ancient_a african_a church_n and_o the_o modern_a roman_a church_n 462_o xxxviii_o of_o the_o innocence_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o conspiracy_n against_o his_o majesty_n ibid._n thirty-nine_o of_o the_o write_n of_o the_o illustrious_a cardinal_n bellarmin_n 463_o a_o admonition_n to_o the_o reader_n courteous_a reader_n for_o so_o i_o will_v esteem_v of_o thou_o whosoever_o out_o of_o a_o true_a desire_n of_o understand_v the_o truth_n take_v this_o learned_a work_n into_o thy_o hand_n to_o peruse_v it_o with_o judgement_n and_o yet_o without_o prejudice_n vouchsafe_v before_o thou_o begin_v the_o perusal_n thereof_o to_o take_v these_o few_o observation_n from_o i_o first_o whereas_o the_o most_o eminent_a author_n thereof_o have_v project_v to_o divide_v it_o into_o twelve_o several_a book_n or_o partial_a treatise_n and_o die_v before_o he_o can_v make_v a_o complete_a end_n thereof_o be_v often_o divert_v from_o it_o by_o manifold_a employment_n which_o his_o high_a estate_n &_o calling_n be_v subject_a unto_o &_o by_o some_o more_o necessary_a dispute_n &_o write_n which_o the_o condition_n of_o france_n do_v then_o afford_v his_o friend_n either_o not_o mark_v this_o his_o project_n or_o because_o all_o the_o work_n be_v not_o end_v neglect_v that_o division_n set_n be_v forth_o repart_v into_o six_o book_n only_o and_o those_o so_o unequal_o sort_v that_o the_o first_o book_n alone_o be_v in_o the_o french_a edition_n far_o big_a than_o all_o the_o other_o ensue_v five_o book_n take_v together_o this_o unproportionable_a partition_n we_o have_v amend_v in_o this_o english_a translation_n as_o we_o may_v easy_o do_v by_o the_o citation_n or_o quotation_n with_o which_o the_o author_n himself_o border_v his_o margin_n for_o in_o they_o he_o sometime_o refer_v himself_o to_o such_o a_o chapter_n of_o the_o second_o seven_o eleven_o twelve_o book_n whereby_o he_o sufficient_o insinuate_v into_o how_o many_o book_n he_o intend_v to_o divide_v this_o his_o excellent_a work_n &_o at_o what_o matter_n every_o book_n shall_v take_v its_o beginning_n which_o his_o intention_n we_o have_v observe_v in_o this_o that_o now_o we_o present_v to_o thy_o view_n that_o the_o fit_a division_n of_o matter_n therein_o handle_v may_v make_v it_o more_o intelligible_a and_o less_o tedious_a second_o the_o humour_n of_o the_o french_a demand_v for_o their_o satisfaction_n that_o the_o many_o place_n which_o be_v cite_v out_o of_o learned_a holy_a and_o classical_a autour_n hold_v not_o only_o be_v faithful_o translate_v in_o the_o text_n but_o also_o place_v at_o large_a in_o their_o original_a language_n in_o the_o margin_n that_o the_o learned_a reader_n may_v without_o recourse_n to_o the_o several_a volume_n which_o require_v a_o copious_a library_n whereof_o few_o be_v furnish_v out_o of_o hand_n examine_v the_o faithfullnes_n of_o the_o translation_n &_o consequent_o how_o fit_o the_o allege_a authority_n make_v for_o the_o purpose_n but_o this_o humour_n not_o yet_o for_o aught_o i_o have_v see_v much_o reign_v in_o our_o country_n we_o have_v think_v it_o sufficient_a to_o cite_v the_o place_n only_o in_o the_o margin_n which_o be_v full_o express_v in_o the_o text_n the_o rather_o because_o the_o excellent_a translatresse_n copy_n which_o we_o have_v faithful_o express_v contain_v no_o more_o and_o more_o beseem_v not_o her_o translation_n as_o not_o desire_v to_o make_v show_n of_o skill_n in_o greek_n and_o other_o such_o learned_a language_n but_o only_o of_o that_o which_o be_v sufficient_a for_o her_o assumpt_n that_o it_o be_v of_o a_o faithful_a translation_n according_a to_o the_o significant_a expressement_n of_o the_o french_a three_o we_o have_v not_o presume_v to_o alter_v or_o change_v any_o one_o word_n of_o her_o translation_n but_o in_o some_o few_o place_n where_o the_o french_a allusion_n can_v not_o be_v so_o well_o understand_v if_o they_o be_v express_v in_o english_a proper_o correspond_v thereunto_o for_o every_o tongue_n have_v some_o peculiar_a grace_n and_o elegancy_n which_o be_v lose_v in_o the_o translation_n if_o they_o be_v put_v word_n for_o word_n and_o yet_o this_o have_v we_o do_v as_o we_o say_v very_o seldom_o and_o that_o especial_o in_o the_o word_n church_n which_o we_o english_a man_n use_v derive_v from_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o the_o house_n dedicate_v to_o our_o lord_n service_n which_o tropical_o we_o use_v also_o to_o signify_v the_o congregation_n of_o the_o faithful_a most_o solemn_o and_o usual_o make_v in_o the_o church_n the_o french_a express_v it_o by_o the_o name_n of_o eglise_fw-fr from_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d vocatus_fw-la ad_fw-la professionem_fw-la fidei_fw-la the_o company_n of_o the_o faithful_a call_v by_o christ_n to_o profess_v his_o law_n by_o which_o word_n they_o secundary_o or_o tropical_o understand_v and_o call_v the_o church_n or_o house_n of_o prayer_n so_o in_o the_o name_n of_o s._n peter_n in_o french_a s._n pierre_n which_o word_n also_o signify_v a_o rock_n or_o stone_n in_o french_a as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o greek_n and_o cephas_n in_o syriak_n do_v but_o in_o our_o english_a we_o have_v no_o such_o allusion_n no_o other_o change_n but_o in_o these_o few_o and_o such_o like_a have_v we_o make_v neither_o be_v it_o needful_a the_o translatresse_n have_v so_o fit_o and_o significant_o express_v the_o autours_n meaning_n that_o it_o will_v have_v be_v lose_v labour_n to_o strive_v to_o do_v it_o better_o and_o rather_o mar_v then_o mend_v so_o perfect_a a_o expression_n last_o i_o desire_v thou_o gentle_a reader_n to_o bear_v with_o the_o fault_n of_o the_o press_n the_o printer_n be_v walloon_n and_o our_o english_a strange_a unto_o they_o it_o be_v incredible_a to_o see_v how_o may_v fault_n they_o commit_v in_o set_v so_o that_o in_o overlook_v the_o proof_n for_o the_o print_n the_o margin_n have_v not_o room_n enough_o to_o hold_v our_o correction_n and_o do_v what_o we_o can_v yet_o the_o number_n of_o our_o correction_n be_v so_o many_o a_o great_a many_o of_o they_o remain_v uncorrect_v by_o the_o fastidious_a fantasy_n of_o our_o workman_n yet_o we_o judge_v there_o be_v no_o fault_n that_o may_v hinder_v or_o change_v the_o sense_n but_o be_v amend_v and_o for_o the_o rest_n we_o desire_v thou_o to_o pardon_v we_o consider_v how_o hard_o it_o be_v to_o make_v a_o stranger_n here_o to_o express_v our_o orthography_n farewell_n in_o our_o lord_n and_o he_o of_o his_o goodness_n give_v thou_o grace_n to_o take_v profit_n by_o read_v these_o learned_a discourse_n thy_o wellwisher_n in_o christ_n jesus_n f._n l._n d._n s._n m._n approbatio_fw-la translatio_fw-la haec_fw-la operis_fw-la excellentissimi_fw-la quod_fw-la eminentissimus_fw-la cardinalis_fw-la perronius_n pro_fw-la fides_fw-la catholicae_fw-la doctrina_fw-la ad_fw-la potentissimum_fw-la regem_fw-la ac_fw-la dominum_fw-la nostrum_fw-la jacobum_fw-la totius_fw-la britanniae_fw-la francia_fw-la &_o hiberniae_fw-la monarcham_n summa_fw-la cum_fw-la cruditione_n pariter_fw-la &_o modestia_fw-la conscripsit_fw-la facta_fw-la a_fw-la nobilissima_fw-la quadam_fw-la heroina_fw-la provinciae_fw-la nostrae_fw-la &_o serenissimae_fw-la reginae_fw-la domine_fw-la nostrae_fw-la mariae_fw-la 〈◊〉_d borboniae_fw-la dicata_fw-la per_fw-la omne_fw-la fideliter_fw-la concordat_fw-la cum_fw-la ipsa_fw-la autoris_fw-la ment_fw-la verbis_fw-la &_o sententiis_fw-la qua_fw-la propter_fw-la dignan_n eam_fw-la 〈◊〉_d quae_fw-la typis_fw-la tradatur_fw-la utex_fw-la tanti_fw-la praeceptoris_fw-la accuratissimis_fw-la cloquentiaque_fw-la incomparabili_fw-la vestitis_fw-la disputationihus_fw-la fructum_fw-la copiosum_fw-la capiatur_fw-la anglia_fw-it nostra_fw-la qualem_fw-la universa_fw-la gallia_n cum_fw-la perpetua_fw-la magni_fw-la autoris_fw-la veneratione_n se_fw-la percepisse_fw-la protestatur_fw-la
2._o decemb._n 1631_o f._n leander_n de_fw-fr s._n martino_n sacrae_fw-la theologiae_n doctor_n hebraeae_fw-la linguae_fw-la in_o alma_fw-la academia_n duacena_n professor_n regius_n benedictinorum_n conventus_fw-la s._n gregorij_fw-la angliae_fw-la prior._n the_o letter_n of_o the_o lord_n cardinal_n of_o perron_n send_v to_o monsieur_n casaubon_n into_o england_n sir_n the_o letter_n that_o you_o deliver_v to_o mounseur_fw-fr de_fw-fr la_fw-fr bodery_n be_v deliver_v to_o i_o by_o he_o even_o as_o i_o be_v upon_o my_o departure_n for_o a_o voyage_n into_o normandy_n and_o since_o my_o return_n from_o thence_o i_o have_v be_v almost_o perpetuallie_o sick_a which_o hinder_v i_o from_o answer_v with_o more_o speed_n now_o that_o my_o disease_n begin_v to_o be_v at_o some_o truce_n with_o i_o i_o will_v pay_v the_o arrearage_n of_o this_o delay_n and_o will_v first_o thank_v you_o for_o the_o good_a office_n that_o you_o have_v do_v i_o in_o show_v the_o letter_n i_o write_v to_o you_o to_o the_o most_o excellent_a king_n of_o great_a britain_n and_o in_o procure_v i_o a_o interest_n in_o his_o favour_n i_o will_v strive_v so_o to_o husband_n it_o by_o my_o humble_a service_n s_o and_o particular_o by_o celebrate_v his_o praise_n which_o be_v the_o only_a fruit_n that_o good_a and_o virtuous_a king_n such_o as_o he_o do_v gather_v from_o allthe_n labour_n and_o thorny_a care_n that_o the_o burden_n of_o a_o kingdom_n load_v they_o with_o as_o his_o majesty_n shall_v have_v no_o cause_n to_o be_v sorry_a that_o it_o be_v declare_v to_o after_o age_n how_o he_o have_v honour_v i_o with_o his_o well_o wish_n and_o how_o i_o have_v have_v his_o 〈◊〉_d in_o reverence_n and_o admiration_n as_o for_o the_o translation_n of_o the_o verse_n of_o virgil_n whereof_o you_o write_v to_o i_o that_o he_o desire_v a_o copy_n that_o which_o i_o send_v you_o be_v lose_v i_o defer_v yet_o for_o some_o day_n to_o acquit_v myself_o of_o that_o duty_n because_o i_o have_v put_v it_o to_o the_o press_n with_o the_o addition_n of_o a_o part_n of_o the_o fowrth_n which_o i_o have_v end_v expresselie_o for_o his_o majesty_n sake_n to_o enlarge_v my_o present_n to_o he_o as_o soon_o as_o those_o few_o copy_n which_o be_v in_o do_v shall_v be_v finish_v i_o will_v not_o fail_v to_o address_v one_o of_o they_o to_o you_o to_o offer_v up_o to_o he_o on_o my_o behalf_n the_o three_o point_n of_o your_o letter_n yet_o remain_v which_o be_v that_o his_o majesty_n be_v astonish_v at_o those_o word_n in_o my_o letter_n that_o except_v the_o title_n of_o catholic_a i_o know_v nothing_o want_v in_o he_o to_o express_v the_o figure_n of_o a_o perfect_a and_o complete_a prince_n and_o that_o he_o pretende_v that_o since_o he_o believe_v all_o thing_n that_o the_o ancient_n have_v with_o a_o unanimous_a consent_n esteem_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n the_o title_n of_o catholic_n can_v be_v dony_v he_o now_o as_o on_o the_o one_o side_n i_o can_v not_o but_o great_o praise_v his_o majesty_n piety_n and_o christian_a humility_n in_o not_o disdain_v to_o submit_v his_o judgement_n adorn_v with_o so_o many_o light_n natural_a and_o acquire_v to_o that_o of_o those_o clear_a beam_n of_o antiquity_n imitate_v therein_o the_o wisdom_n of_o that_o great_a emperor_n thodosius_n who_o think_v there_o be_v noebetter_v mean_n to_o agree_v the_o dissension_n which_o disturb_v the_o church_n of_o his_o time_n then_o to_o exact_v from_o either_o part_n a_o answer_n whither_o thy_o believe_v that_o the_o father_n which_o have_v flourish_v in_o the_o church_n before_o the_o separation_n have_v be_v orthodoxal_a and_o that_o be_v confess_v to_o summon_v they_o to_o submit_v themselves_o to_o whatsoever_o they_o shall_v be_v find_v to_o have_v believe_v so_o on_o the_o other_o side_n there_o be_v many_o observation_n `to_o be_v make_v upon_o this_o thesis_n before_o we_o pass_v to_o the_o hypothesis_n which_o since_o i_o can_v represent_v to_o his_o majesty_n i_o shall_v be_v glad_a to_o inform_v you_o of_o they_o for_o your_o particular_a satisfaction_n the_o first_o be_v that_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_a be_v not_o a_o name_n of_o belief_n simple_o but_o of_o communion_n also_o else_o antiquity_n will_v not_o have_v refuse_v that_o title_n to_o those_o which_o be_v not_o separate_v from_o the_o belief_n but_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o will_v they_o have_v protest_v that_o out_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o faith_n and_o sacrament_n may_v be_v have_v but_o not_o salvation_n out_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n say_v s._n augustin_n in_o his_o treaty_n of_o conference_n with_o emeritus_n a_o man_n may_v have_v order_n he_o may_v have_v sacrament_n he_o may_v sing_v alleluya_n he_o may_v answer_v a_o man_n he_o may_v keep_v the_o gospel_n he_o may_v have_v and_o preach_v the_o faith_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o sonn_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o he_o can_v no_o where_o find_v salvation_n but_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o in_o the_o book_n de_fw-fr utilit_fw-la credendi_fw-la there_o be_v a_o church_n as_o all_o man_n grant_v if_o you_o cast_v your_o eye_n over_o the_o extent_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n more_o full_a in_o multitude_n than_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o as_o those_o that_o know_v themselves_o to_o be_v of_o it_o affirm_v more_o sincere_a in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o truth_n but_o of_o the_o truth_n that_o be_v a_o other_o question_n that_o will_v suffice_v for_o this_o search_n that_o there_o be_v one_o catholic_a church_n upon_o which_o sever_v all_o heresy_n impose_v several_a name_n whereas_o they_o be_v all_o call_v call_v every_o one_o by_o his_o particular_a name_n which_o they_o dare_v not_o disavow_v from_o whence_o it_o may_v appear_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o any_o arbyter_n that_o be_v not_o prepossess_v by_o favour_n to_o who_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_a where_o of_o all_o be_v ambition_n aught_o to_o be_v attribute_v and_o in_o the_o book_n against_o the_o fundamental_a epistle_n then_o to_o omit_v this_o wisdom_n which_o you_o deny_v to_o be_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n there_o be_v many_o other_o thing_n which_o do_v most_o justly_o retain_v i_o in_o her_o bosom_n the_o consent_n of_o people_n and_o nation_n retain_v i_o therein_o the_o authority_n begunn_v by_o miracle_n nourish_v by_o hope_n increase_v by_o charity_n confirm_v by_o antiquity_n retain_v i_o therein_o the_o succession_n of_o prelate_n even_o from_o the_o very_a seat_n of_o peter_n to_o who_o our_o lord_n deliver_v his_o sheep_n to_o be_v feed_v after_o his_o resurrection_n even_o to_o the_o present_a bishop_n seat_n retain_v i_o therein_o and_o final_o the_o very_a name_n of_o catholic_n retain_v i_o therein_o which_o not_o without_o cause_n this_o church_n alone_o among_o so_o many_o heresy_n have_v in_o such_o sort_n obtain_v as_o though_o all_o heretic_n will_v be_v call_v catholic_n nevertheless_o when_o a_o stranger_n ask_v where_o the_o catholic_a church_n do_v assemble_v there_o be_v not_o one_o 〈◊〉_d that_o dare_v show_v his_o 〈◊〉_d or_o his_o house_n and_o in_o his_o treatise_n of_o faith_n and_o of_o the_o creed_n we_o believe_v the_o holy_a church_n and_o that_o catholic_n for_o heretic_n and_o schismatickes_n call_v their_o congregation_n church_n but_o heretic_n believe_v of_o god_n false_a thing_n violate_v faith_n and_o schismatickes_n separate_v themselves_o from_o brotherly_a charity_n by_o unjust_a division_n although_o they_o believe_v the_o same_o thing_n that_o we_o believe_v and_o therefore_o neither_o can_v the_o heretic_n belong_v to_o the_o catholic_a church_n because_o she_o love_v god_n nor_o the_o schismatic_n because_o she_o love_v her_o neightour_n and_o in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n all_o those_o that_o believe_v as_o have_v be_v say_v that_o over_o lord_n jesus_n be_v come_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o be_v rise_v again_o in_o the_o same_o flesh_n wherein_o he_o be_v bear_v and_o have_v suffer_v and_o that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n god_n with_o god_n and_o one_o with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o only_o immovable_a word_n of_o the_o father_n by_o which_o all_o thing_n have_v be_v make_v but_o yet_o dissent_v so_o from_o his_o body_n which_o be_v the_o church_n that_o their_o communion_n be_v not_o with_o the_o whole_a or_o be_v spread_v in_o deed_n but_o yet_o be_v in_o some_o part_n find_v to_o be_v separate_a it_o be_v manifest_a they_o be_v not_o in_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o prosper_v his_o scholar_n he_o say_v he_o that_o communicate_v with_o this_o universal_a church_n be_v a_o christian_n and_o a_o catholic_a but_o he_o that_o communicate_v not_o therewith_o be_v a_o heretic_n and_o antichrist_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n we_o see_v that_o the_o father_n deny_v the_o title_n
with_o that_o modesty_n and_o submission_n which_o be_v due_a to_o the_o person_n and_o worth_n of_o so_o high_a and_o mighty_a a_o monarch_n and_o with_o that_o learning_n and_o solidyty_n that_o may_v be_v expect_v from_o so_o great_a a_o master_n of_o truth_n as_o that_o most_o eminent_a cardinal_n be_v in_o behalf_n of_o so_o glorious_a a_o cause_n as_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o l._n cardin_n perron_n reply_v to_o his_o majesty_n answer_n to_o the_o letter_n write_v to_o mons_fw-la casaubon_n the_o first_o observation_n reduce_v into_o a_o abridgement_n by_o the_o king_n the_o name_n of_o catholic_a do_v not_o simple_o design_n faith_n but_o also_o communion_n with_o the_o catholic_a church_n for_o this_o cause_n the_o father_n will_v not_o suffer_v that_o those_o shall_v be_v call_v catholic_n which_o have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n though_o they_o retain_v the_o faith_n thereof_o for_o there_o be_v one_o only_a catholic_a church_n out_o of_o the_o which_o faith_n and_o sacrament_n may_v be_v have_v but_o not_o salvation_n to_o this_o end_n there_o be_v many_o place_n allege_v out_o of_o s._n augtstin_n of_o the_o use_n of_o the_o word_n catholiqve_n the_o answer_n of_o the_o king_n chapitre_fw-fr 1_n to_o believe_v the_o catholicko_n church_n and_o to_o believe_v the_o communion_n of_o saintes_n be_v put_v distinct_o as_o diverse_a thing_n in_o the_o creed_n and_o it_o seem_v the_o first_o be_v ptincipallie_o insert_v to_o discern_v the_o jewish_a synagogue_n from_o the_o christian_a church_n which_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v as_o that_o be_v enclose_v within_o the_o lymitte_v of_o one_o only_a nation_n but_o to_o be_v spread_v in_o length_n and_o breadth_n through_o all_o the_o region_n of_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o the_o reason_n be_v not_o manifest_a enough_o why_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o observation_n it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o title_n of_o catholic_a design_v communion_n these_o two_o thing_n be_v very_o near_a one_o a_o other_o but_o different_a notwithstanding_o as_o we_o have_v show_v the_o reply_n when_o the_o philosopher_n favorinus_n dispute_v against_o the_o emperor_n adrian_z and_o that_o his_o hearer_n be_v amaze_v and_o reproach_v it_o to_o he_o that_o he_o suffer_v the_o emperor_n to_o confute_v he_o and_o yield_v to_o he_o he_o answer_v they_o shall_v not_o i_o yield_v to_o a_o man_n than_z command_v twenty_o legion_n so_o if_o there_o be_v no_o question_n in_o this_o work_n but_o of_o humane_a philosophy_n &_o secular_a learning_n it_o shall_v be_v easy_a for_o i_o to_o stop_v myself_o at_o favorinus_n bound_n and_o to_o abstain_v to_o contest_v with_o his_o majesty_n or_o to_o resist_v he_o but_o since_o here_o we_o treat_v of_o his_o interest_n who_o have_v not_o legion_n of_o man_n but_o of_o angel_n and_o which_o have_v for_o his_o title_n the_o king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n and_o from_o who_o this_o excellent_a king_n himself_o make_v profession_n to_o hold_v in_o fee_n his_o life_n and_o crown_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o cause_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o of_o his_o kingdom_n which_o be_v the_o church_n i_o will_v promise_v myself_o from_o his_o majesty_n bounty_n that_o he_o will_v not_o mislike_v where_o it_o shall_v be_v needful_a that_o i_o resist_v and_o contradict_v he_o with_o all_o the_o respective_a liberty_n that_o the_o law_n of_o disputation_n yield_v i_o then_o for_o the_o argument_n of_o the_o creed_n i_o will_v say_v after_o i_o have_v kiss_v my_o weapone_n three_o thing_n for_o my_o defence_n first_o that_o it_o be_v uncertain_a whither_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o communion_n of_o saintes_n be_v a_o article_n apart_o or_o a_o explication_n of_o the_o precedinge_v cause_n and_o a_o declaration_n that_o the_o catholic_a church_n consist_v not_o in_o the_o simple_a number_n of_o the_o faithful_a every_o one_o consider_v a_o part_n but_o in_o the_o joinct_n communion_n of_o all_o the_o body_n of_o the_o faithful_a in_o such_o sort_n as_o both_o clause_n make_v but_o one_o article_n as_o it_o seem_v saint_n jerom_n luciser_n ruffinus_n symbol_n and_o catec_fw-la saint_n augustine_n who_o have_v omit_v the_o latter_a have_v esteem_v it_o the_o second_o that_o it_o be_v uncertain_a whether_o it_o signify_v the_o communion_n that_o the_o faithful_a live_n have_v one_o with_o a_o other_o or_o the_o commerce_n that_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o triumphant_a church_n do_v exercise_n with_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o militant_a church_n by_o the_o prayer_n that_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o triumphant_a offer_v for_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o militant_a and_o the_o commemoration_n that_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o militant_a make_v of_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o triumphant_a which_o be_v that_o that_o we_o in_o our_o liturgy_n call_v to_o communicate_v with_o the_o memory_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o the_o three_o that_o whatsoever_o it_o signify_v it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o the_o word_n catholic_a be_v not_o add_v to_o that_o of_o the_o church_n to_o distinguish_v the_o christian_a church_n from_o the_o jewish_a synagogue_n which_o have_v never_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o church_n in_o quality_n of_o a_o title_n of_o a_o religion_n when_o the_o creed_n be_v compose_v and_o by_o consequence_n do_v not_o oblige_v the_o christian_a church_n to_o take_v the_o epithet_n of_o catholic_a to_o be_v discern_v from_o that_o from_o which_o in_o all_o case_n she_o have_v be_v suffieientlie_o distinguish_v by_o the_o title_n of_o christian_a but_o it_o be_v add_v to_o discern_v the_o true_a church_n from_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a society_n which_o usurp_v equivocal_o and_o by_o false_a mark_n the_o name_n of_o church_n for_o that_o our_o lord_n be_v the_o first_o that_o affect_v and_o consecrate_v the_o word_n ecclesia_fw-la which_o we_o usual_o translate_v in_o english_a church_n to_o signify_v a_o society_n of_o religion_n whereas_o before_o neither_o it_o nor_o the_o hebrew_n word_n that_o answer_v to_o it_o have_v any_o other_o use_n but_o that_o which_o profane_a author_n give_v it_o which_o be_v to_o signify_v assembly_n convocation_n general_n estate_n as_o when_o demosthenes_n say_v to_o eschines_n thou_o be_v dumb_a to_o the_o demost_a assembly_n where_o the_o greek_a word_n be_v ecclesijs_fw-la the_o convocation_n or_o general_a meeting_n and_o as_o when_o aristotle_n 2._o call_v the_o convocation_n of_o crete_n ecclesias_fw-la and_o as_o when_o the_o scholiast_n of_o homer_n say_v jupiter_n gather_v together_o ecclesias_fw-la the_o assembly_n of_o the_o god_n it_o appear_v first_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o moses_n who_o forbid_v bastard_n to_o enter_v into_o the_o church_n of_o israel_n and_o 23._o of_o david_n who_o singe_v i_o hate_v the_o church_n of_o the_o malignant_a and_o of_o s._n stephen_n 25._o who_o say_v moses_n be_v in_o the_o church_n in_o the_o solitary_a place_n that_o be_v to_o say_v 17._o with_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o people_n in_o the_o desert_n it_o appear_v secondlie_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o s._n jerom_n and_o of_o s._n cyrillus_n who_o interpretinge_v this_o verse_n of_o isaiah_n thou_o shall_v be_v call_v by_o a_o new_a name_n that_o the_o mouth_n of_o our_o lord_n shall_v pronounce_v do_v affirm_v that_o this_o new_a name_n must_v be_v the_o name_n of_o 62._o church_n it_o shall_v no_o more_o say_v s._n jerom_n be_v call_v jerusalem_n and_o zion_n but_o it_o shall_v receive_v a_o new_a name_n that_o the_o lord_n shall_v impose_v upon_o it_o say_v to_o the_o apostle_n peter_n thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o petra_n or_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n and_o s._n cyrill_n it_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o call_v synagogue_n but_o the_o church_n of_o the_o live_a ibid._n god_n and_o final_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o very_a testimony_n of_o our_o adversary_n that_o not_o only_o in_o all_o the_o text_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n where_o the_o greek_a translation_n of_o the_o seventie_o use_v the_o word_n ecclesia_fw-la but_o also_o in_o all_o those_o of_o the_o new_a where_o that_o word_n have_v relation_n to_o any_o other_o multitude_n beside_o the_o christian_a church_n they_o express_v it_o by_o congregation_n or_o assembly_n and_o if_o since_o the_o come_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o edition_n of_o the_o creed_n the_o father_n have_v sometime_o call_v the_o synagogue_n by_o the_o name_n of_o ecclesia_fw-la or_o church_n it_o have_v be_v by_o anticipation_n to_o show_v the_o successive_a unity_n of_o the_o one_o and_o other_o society_n but_o not_o that_o the_o jewish_a church_n while_o it_o last_v have_v ever_o undertake_v to_o attribute_v to_o herself_o the_o title_n of_o a_o church_n in_o the_o quality_n of_o a_o title_n of_o religion_n neither_o consequent_o when_o the_o creed_n be_v compose_v be_v there_o need_v of_o a_o
epithet_n to_o distinguish_v the_o christian_a church_n from_o she_o for_o as_o the_o star_n that_o the_o author_n call_v lucifer_n although_o it_o be_v the_o same_o with_o that_o that_o be_v call_v vesper_n yet_o when_o it_o go_v before_o the_o son_n it_o bear_v one_o name_n and_o when_o it_o follow_v he_o it_o have_v a_o other_o so_o although_o the_o jewish_a congregation_n have_v be_v in_o some_o sort_n one_o same_o society_n with_o the_o christian_a congregation_n nevertheless_o when_o this_o society_n have_v go_v before_o her_o sun_n which_o be_v christ_n she_o have_v bear_v one_o name_n to_o wit_n the_o synagogue_n and_o when_o she_o follow_v he_o she_o 18._o bear_v a_o other_o to_o wit_n the_o church_n and_o therefore_o when_o our_o lord_n say_v to_o s._n peter_n dic_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la tell_v it_o to_o the_o church_n and_o if_o he_o hear_v not_o he_o church_n let_v he_o 12._o be_v to_o thou_o as_o a_o heathen_a or_o a_o publican_n and_o when_o s._n luke_n relate_v that_o herod_n set_v himself_o to_o persecute_v quosdam_fw-la de_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la some_o of_o those_o of_o the_o church_n 4_o 10._o and_o when_o saint_n paul_n write_v i_o teach_v it_o so_o in_o all_o the_o church_n and_o again_o be_v 5._o without_o scandal_n to_o the_o jew_n and_o to_o the_o gentile_n and_o to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o 34._o when_o s._n james_n proclaim_v if_o any_o one_o be_v sick_a let_v he_o call_v the_o priest_n of_o the_o church_n and_o when_o s._n ireneus_fw-la say_v there_o have_v be_v sacrifice_n among_o the_o people_n there_o be_v sacrifice_n in_o the_o church_n they_o think_v they_o have_v sufficient_o distinguish_v 13._o without_o any_o other_o addition_n the_o christian_a church_n from_o the_o jewish_a synagogue_n and_o contrariwise_o when_o the_o church_n of_o smyrna_n in_o a_o age_n neighbouringe_v upon_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n entitle_v her_o epistle_n to_o the_o church_n of_o philomilion_n and_o to_o all_o the_o a_o diocese_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v throughout_o the_o world_n and_o when_o clement_n alexandrinus_n write_v there_o need_v not_o many_o word_n to_o show_v that_o the_o mocke-councell_n of_o heretic_n be_v 4._o after_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o clem._n when_o tertullian_n say_v martion_n give_v his_o money_n to_o the_o catholic_a 27._o church_n which_o reject_v both_o it_o and_o he_o when_o he_o stray_v from_o our_o truth_n 4._o to_o heresy_n and_o when_o saint_n cyprian_n advertise_v the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n that_o pass_v in_o to_o italy_n to_o acknowledge_v and_o hold_v fast_o the_o root_n and_o matrice_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o when_o saint_n epiphanius_n report_v that_o under_o the_o persecution_n of_o dioclesian_n those_o that_o hold_v the_o ancient_a church_n call_v themselves_o 65._o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o the_o militian_n the_o church_n of_o the_o martyr_n and_o when_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n ordain_v that_o all_o the_o 3._o oratory_n of_o the_o heretic_n shall_v be_v take_v from_o they_o and_o present_o after_o deliver_v to_o the_o catholic_a church_n they_o pretend_v not_o by_o the_o word_n catholic_a to_o distinguish_v the_o christian_a church_n from_o the_o jewish_a but_o to_o distinguish_v the_o great_a and_o the_o original_a body_n of_o the_o church_n from_o the_o particular_a and_o late_a sect_n yet_o we_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o word_n catholic_a in_o distinguish_v by_o heruniversalitie_n the_o true_a church_n from_o the_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a sect_n distinguish_v she_o alsoe_o by_o accident_n from_o the_o jewish_a synagogue_n as_o a_o special_a difference_n in_o distinguish_v her_o species_n from_o other_o species_n of_o the_o same_o gender_n do_v also_o distinguish_v it_o from_o that_o of_o other_o gender_n though_o that_o be_v not_o her_o proper_a office_n for_o the_o word_n reasonable_a discerninge_v man_n from_o bird_n fish_n serpent_n and_o other_o beast_n leave_v he_o not_o undiscern_v accessary_o from_o plant_n metal_n and_o stone_n but_o we_o maintain_v the_o express_a and_o direct_a end_n for_o which_o the_o surname_n of_o catholic_a have_v be_v add_v to_o the_o church_n i_o say_v to_o the_o church_n and_o not_o to_o the_o figure_n of_o the_o church_n have_v be_v to_o distinguish_v it_o from_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a sect_n if_o i_o shall_v this_o day_n by_o chance_n enter_v into_o a_o populous_a town_n 〈◊〉_d say_v s._n pacianus_n a_o author_n celebrate_v by_o saint_n jerom_n and_o find_v there_o marcioniste_n and_o apolinarians_n it_o must_v be_v read_v apellecians_n cataphrigian_o novatian_n and_o other_o such_o like_a which_o call_v themselves_o christian_n by_o what_o surname_n shall_v i_o know_v the_o congregation_n of_o my_o people_n if_o it_o be_v not_o entitle_v catholic_a and_o again_o christian_n be_v my_o name_n catholic_a be_v my_o surname_n that_o name_n i_o this_o mark_n i_o out_o by_o that_o i_o be_o manifest_v prodor_fw-la &_o non_fw-la probor_fw-la by_o this_o i_o be_o distinguish_v and_o saint_n cyrill_n of_o jerusalem_n a_o author_n the_o same_o age_n expoundinge_a the_o creed_n for_o this_o cause_n say_v he_o thy_o faith_n have_v give_v thou_o this_o article_n to_o hold_v undoubtedlie_o and_o in_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n to_o the_o end_n thou_o 〈◊〉_d fly_v the_o pollute_a 〈◊〉_d of_o heretic_n and_o a_o little_a after_o and_o when_o 〈◊〉_d thou_o come_v into_o a_o town_n inquire_v not_o simple_o where_o the_o temple_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v for_o the_o other_o heresy_n of_o impious_a person_n do_v likewise_o call_v their_o den_n the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n neither_o ask_v simple_o where_o the_o church_n be_v but_o where_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n for_o that_o 10._o name_n be_v the_o proper_a name_n of_o this_o holy_a church_n and_o saint_n augustine_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o the_o creed_n we_o believe_v say_v he_o the_o holy_a church_n and_o that_o catholic_a for_o the_o heretic_n and_o schismatickes_n name_n also_o their_o congregation_n church_n but_o heretic_n believe_v in_o god_n in_o a_o false_a manner_n violate_v the_o faith_n and_o schismatickes_n by_o their_o unjust_a division_n separate_v themselves_o from_o brotherlie_a charity_n although_o they_o believe_v the_o same_o thing_n that_o we_o believe_v therefore_o the_o heretic_n appartain_v not_o to_o the_o catholic_a church_n because_o she_o love_v god_n nor_o the_o schismatic_n because_o she_o love_v her_o neighbour_n so_o that_o it_o amaze_v i_o that_o i_o have_v have_v so_o little_a industry_n to_o explain_v myself_o as_o to_o have_v give_v his_o majesty_n occasion_n to_o answer_v that_o the_o reason_n for_o which_o i_o have_v say_v in_o the_o begin_v of_o my_o first_o observation_n that_o the_o word_n catholic_a be_v not_o a_o title_n of_o simple_a belief_n but_o of_o communion_n be_v not_o enough_o manifest_a for_o have_v allege_v these_o four_o place_n of_o saint_n augustine_n schismatickes_n appertain_v not_o to_o the_o catholic_a church_n although_o they_o believe_v 〈◊〉_d the_o same_o thing_n with_o us._n those_o that_o disagree_v so_o from_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o church_n as_o their_o communion_n be_v not_o with_o all_o or_o that_o it_o spread_v itself_o but_o be_v find_v separate_v in_o some_o part_n it_o be_v manifest_a they_o be_v not_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n there_o be_v a_o church_n if_o you_o cast_v your_o eye_n over_o the_o extent_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n more_o abundant_a in_o multitude_n and_o also_o as_o those_o that_o know_v themselves_o to_o be_v of_o it_o affirm_v more_o sincere_a in_o truth_n than_o all_o the_o other_o but_o of_o the_o truth_n be_v a_o other_o disputation_n division_n and_o dissension_n 〈◊〉_d make_v you_o heretic_n and_o peace_n and_o unity_n make_v we_o catholic_n and_o have_v accompany_v they_o with_o these_o word_n of_o saint_n vincentius_n 9_o 〈◊〉_d o_o admirable_a conversion_n or_o change_n the_o author_n of_o oneself_o opinion_n be_v call_v catholic_n and_o the_o follower_n of_o it_o bereticke_n and_o with_o those_o of_o saint_n 〈◊〉_d prosper_n 〈◊〉_d that_o communicate_v with_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v a_o christian_n and_o a_o 〈◊〉_d catholic_a and_o he_o that_o communicate_v not_o therewith_o be_v a_o heretic_n and_o antichrist_n it_o seem_v to_o i_o that_o i_o have_v sufficient_o show_v that_o the_o title_n of_o catholic_a be_v not_o a_o simple_a title_n of_o belief_n but_o of_o communion_n also_o it_o be_v true_a i_o expect_v not_o that_o a_o question_n that_o have_v be_v ancient_o move_v and_o adiuge_v even_o with_o the_o intervention_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o emperor_n shall_v again_o have_v be_v contest_v against_o and_o put_v into_o dispute_n for_o in_o the_o controversy_n of_o catholic_n and_o donatists_n upon_o the_o word_n catholic_a before_o 〈◊〉_d the_o decision_n whereof_o as_o saint_n austin_n say_v the_o church_n be_v never_o
perfect_o treat_v of_o no_o more_o then_o before_o the_o question_n of_o the_o arrian_n the_o trinity_n have_v never_o be_v perfect_o treat_v of_o the_o thesis_fw-la or_o tenet_fw-la of_o the_o catholic_n be_v that_o the_o word_n catholic_a be_v a_o word_n of_o communion_n and_o not_o a_o word_n of_o simple_a belief_n the_o christian_a african_n be_v call_v say_v saint_n augustin_n and_o not_o with_o out_o good_a right_n catholic_n protest_v 3_o by_o their_o proper_a communion_n the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o again_o we_o show_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o our_o communion_n that_o we_o have_v the_o catholic_a church_n &_o the_o thesis_fw-la of_o the_o donatist_n ibid._n contrariwise_o be_v that_o the_o word_n catholic_a be_v not_o a_o word_n of_o communion_n but_o of_o belief_n and_o observation_n of_o precept_n the_o donatist_n say_v saint_n id_fw-la austin_n answer_v that_o the_o word_n catholic_a be_v not_o derive_v from_o the_o universality_n of_o nation_n but_o from_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o sacrament_n that_o be_v to_o say_v from_o the_o integrity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n 48._o and_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o vincentius_n rogat_fw-la thou_o think_v say_v he_o then_o to_o saìe_v some_o subtle_a thing_n when_o thou_o interprete_a the_o name_n of_o catholic_a not_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o from_o the_o observation_n of_o all_o the_o precept_n and_o divine_a sacrament_n and_o again_o you_o be_v those_o that_o hold_v the_o catholic_a faith_n not_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n hut_a from_o the_o observation_n of_o all_o the_o precept_n and_o divine_a sacrament_n and_o the_o judgement_n that_o be_v make_v ibid._n upon_o this_o difference_n be_v that_o the_o word_n catholic_a be_v a_o title_n not_o of_o simple_a belief_n but_o of_o communion_n also_o after_o a_o contention_n of_o 40._o day_n say_v 1._o optatus_n milevit_fw-la speak_v of_o the_o first_o disputation_n of_o the_o donatist_n the_o final_a sentence_n of_o the_o bishop_n eunomius_n and_o olympus_n which_o be_v the_o bishop_n depute_v to_o judge_v the_o possession_n of_o the_o word_n catholic_a between_o the_o catholic_n 3._o of_o africa_n and_o the_o donatist_n be_v that_o that_o be_v catholic_a that_o be_v spread_v throughout_o the_o world_n and_o saint_n austin_n speak_v of_o the_o conference_n of_o carthage_n the_o commissary_n say_v he_o answer_v that_o he_o can_v not_o by_o 〈◊〉_d attribute_v the_o name_n catholic_a to_o any_o other_o then_o to_o those_o to_o who_o the_o emperor_n 6._o from_o who_o he_o have_v his_o commission_n have_v attribute_v it_o and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n cite_v the_o law_n of_o the_o emperor_n make_v upon_o this_o conference_n the_o emperor_n say_v he_o have_v forbid_v that_o those_o that_o usurp_v the_o name_n of_o christian_n out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o will_v not_o in_o peace_n adore_v the_o author_n of_o 〈◊〉_d shall_v dare_v to_o possess_v any_o thing_n under_o the_o title_n of_o the_o church_n and_o again_o 57_o the_o emperor_n of_o our_o communion_n have_v ordain_v law_n against_o all_o heretic_n now_o they_o call_v heretic_n those_o that_o be_v not_o of_o their_o communion_n among_o which_o you_o be_v 13_o and_o after_o dispute_v with_o the_o same_o donatist_n thou_o ask_v say_v he_o of_o a_o stranger_n whether_o he_o be_v a_o pagan_a or_o a_o christian_a he_o answer_v thou_o a_o christian_a thou_o ask_v he_o whether_o he_o be_v a_o catechumenus_fw-la or_o one_o of_o the_o faithful_a lest_o he_o shall_v intrude_v himself_o unlawfullie_o to_o the_o sacrament_n he_o answer_v thou_o one_o of_o the_o faithful_a thou_o ask_v he_o of_o what_o communion_n he_o be_v he_o answer_v thou_o a_o christian_a catholic_a chap._n ii_o of_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o pursuit_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n now_o the_o king_n believe_v simple_o without_o colour_n or_o fraud_n that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v one_o only_o by_o name_n and_o effect_n catholic_a and_o universal_a spread_v over_o all_o the_o world_n out_o of_o which_o he_o affirm_v himself_o there_o can_v be_v no_o hope_n of_o salvation_n he_o condemn_v and_o deteste_v those_o which_o either_o heretofore_o or_o since_o have_v depart_v from_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n &_o be_v become_v heretic_n as_o the_o man_n ichee_n or_o from_o her_o communion_n and_o be_v become_v schismatickes_n as_o the_o donatist_n against_o which_o two_o kind_n of_o man_n principal_o saint_n augustine_n have_v write_v the_o thing_n allege_v in_o this_o observation_n the_o reply_n telesius_n a_o stripling_n of_o greece_n have_v win_v the_o prize_n and_o victory_n of_o the_o combat_n in_o the_o pythian_a game_n when_o there_o be_v question_n of_o leadinge_n he_o in_o triumph_n there_o arise_v such_o a_o dispute_n between_o the_o diverse_a nation_n there_o present_a every_o one_o be_v earnest_n to_o have_v he_o for_o their_o own_o as_o the_o one_o draw_v he_o one_o way_n the_o other_o a_o other_o way_n instead_o of_o receive_v the_o honour_n which_o be_v prepare_v for_o he_o he_o be_v tear_v and_o dismember_v even_o by_o those_o that_o strive_v who_o shall_v honour_v he_o most_o so_o happenes_n it_o to_o the_o church_n all_o those_o that_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o christian_n avow_v that_o to_o she_o only_o appertain_v the_o victory_n over_o hell_n and_o that_o whosoever_o will_v have_v part_n in_o the_o prize_n and_o glory_n of_o this_o triumph_n must_v serve_v under_o her_o ensign_n but_o when_o they_o come_v to_o debate_v of_o the_o true_a body_n of_o this_o society_n than_o every_o sect_n desirous_a to_o draw_v she_o to_o themselves_o they_o rend_v and_o tear_v she_o in_o piece_n and_o in_o steed_n of_o embrace_v the_o church_n which_o consist_v in_o unity_n they_o embrace_v schism_n and_o division_n which_o be_v the_o death_n and_o ruin_n of_o the_o church_n the_o cause_n or_o rather_o the_o pretext_n of_o this_o evil_a come_v from_o two_o fault_n that_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o church_n commit_v in_o the_o distinction_n of_o the_o word_n ecclesia_fw-la or_o church_n which_o make_v the_o possession_n uncertain_a and_o disputable_a the_o one_o be_v the_o fraudulent_a restriction_n of_o the_o term_n of_o the_o church_n to_o the_o only_a invisible_a number_n of_o the_o predestinate_a by_o which_o when_o they_o feel_v themselves_o press_v to_o represent_v the_o succession_n of_o their_o church_n they_o save_v themselves_o like_o homer_n aeneas_n or_o virgil_n cacus_n in_o obscurity_n and_o darkness_n the_o other_o be_v the_o equivocal_a and_o captious_a extension_n of_o the_o same_o word_n church_n to_o all_o sect_n which_o profess_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n by_o which_o when_o they_o see_v themselves_o exclude_v from_o the_o refuge_n of_o their_o invissble_a church_n they_o have_v recourse_n from_o darkness_n to_o confusion_n and_o confess_v that_o there_o have_v be_v always_o a_o visible_a church_n but_o sometime_o pure_a in_o faith_n and_o sometime_o impure_a that_o be_v to_o say_v now_o a_o church_n and_o now_o no_o church_n and_o therefore_o i_o attribute_v it_o to_o a_o singular_a care_n of_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n that_o his_o majesty_n say_v he_o believe_v the_o catholic_a church_n have_v add_v as_o to_o prevent_v all_o thesis_n shift_n without_o colour_n or_o fraud_n for_o to_o believe_v the_o catholic_a church_n without_o colour_n or_o fraud_n be_v to_o believe_v she_o in_o the_o sense_n that_o the_o father_n have_v believe_v and_o understand_v she_o the_o father_n i_o say_v which_o have_v lest_o we_o these_o sentence_n pronunce_v sometime_o as_o in_o the_o hypothesis_n against_o the_o manichee_n and_o donatist_n but_o as_o in_o the_o thesis_fw-la against_o all_o kind_n of_o heretic_n or_o schismatickes_n in_o general_a that_o out_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n that_o whosoever_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o catholic_a church_n can_v have_v life_n and_o other_o such_o like_a which_o his_o majesty_n protest_v to_o approve_v now_o first_o by_o the_o word_n catholic_a church_n these_o father_n have_v believe_v and_o intend_v such_o a_o church_n as_o these_o word_n of_o isaiah_n 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o last_o day_n the_o mountain_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v on_o the_o top_n of_o all_o the_o mountain_n 2._o and_o all_o the_o hill_n shall_v flow_v to_o she_o the_o people_n shall_v walk_v in_o thy_o light_n and_o the_o 60._o 61._o king_n in_o the_o brightness_n of_o thy_o orient_n their_o seed_n shall_v be_v know_v among_o the_o 5._o people_n and_o their_o king_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o nation_n and_o these_o of_o our_o lord_n the_o 18._o city_n build_v upon_o the_o mountain_n can_v be_v hide_v tell_v it_o to_o the_o church_n and_o if_o he_o hear_v 〈◊〉_d not_o the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v to_o thou_o as_o
the_o donatist_n do_v heal_v from_o the_o wound_n of_o infidelity_n and_o idolatry_n they_o hurt_v they_o more_o greevous_o with_o the_o wound_n of_o schism_n and_o for_o a_o proof_n of_o his_o say_n he_o allege_v the_o example_n of_o core_n dathan_n and_o abiron_n and_o other_o schismatickes_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n who_o be_v all_o send_v quick_a into_o hell_n and_o punish_v more_o greevouslie_o than_o the_o idolator_n 6._o who_o doubt_n say_v he_o but_o that_o be_v commit_v most_o criminal_o that_o be_v punist_a most_o severelie_o and_o therefore_o as_o the_o ancient_a heretic_n have_v always_o against_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n press_v and_o cry_v out_o the_o faith_n the_o faith_n so_o the_o ancient_a father_n against_o the_o division_n of_o heretic_n and_o schismatickes_n have_v always_o press_v and_o cry_v out_o the_o church_n the_o church_n 62._o he_o shall_v judge_v say_v s._n ireneus_n those_o that_o make_v schism_n in_o the_o church_n ambition_n man_n not_o have_v the_o honour_n of_o god_n before_o their_o eye_n but_o rather_o embrace_v their_o own_o interest_n than_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o for_o little_a and_o light_a cause_n devidinge_v the_o great_a and_o glorious_a body_n of_o christ._n and_o a_o little_a after_o for_o in_o the_o end_n they_o can_v make_v any_o so_o important_a a_o reformation_n as_o the_o evil_a of_o the_o schism_n be_v pernicious_a and_o saint_n denis_n of_o alexandria_n write_n to_o novatian_n 6._o certain_o all_o thing_n shall_v rather_o be_v endure_v then_o to_o consent_v to_o the_o division_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n those_o martyr_n be_v no_o less_o glorious_a that_o expose_v themselves_o to_o hinder_v the_o dismembringe_n of_o the_o church_n than_o those_o that_o suffer_v rather_o than_o they_o will_v offer_v sacrifice_n to_o idol_n and_o saint_n cyprian_n eccl._n do_v those_o that_o assemble_v themselves_o without_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n suppose_v christ_n to_o be_v with_o they_o in_o their_o assembly_n although_o they_o shall_v be_v drag_v to_o death_n for_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n yet_o this_o spott_n be_v not_o wash_v away_o from_o they_o with_o blood_n the_o inexpiable_a and_o inexcusable_a crime_n of_o discord_n be_v not_o purge_v with_o death_n t_o self_n he_o can_v be_v a_o martyr_n that_o be_v not_o in_o the_o church_n and_o saint_n pacian_a 〈◊〉_d although_o say_v he_o novatian_n have_v be_v put_v to_o death_n yet_o have_v he_o not_o be_v crown_v wherefore_o not_o because_o it_o be_v out_o of_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n out_o of_o concord_n out_o of_o this_o mother_n whereof_o 11._o whosever_v will_v be_v a_o martyr_n must_v be_v a_o portion_n and_o saint_n chrysostome_n nothing_o stir_v say_v he_o so_o sharp_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n as_o the_o division_n of_o the_o church_n so_o as_o when_o we_o have_v do_v all_o other_o kind_n of_o good_a work_n we_o shall_v deserve_v no_o less_o cruel_a punishment_n devidinge_v the_o unity_n and_o fullness_n of_o the_o church_n than_o those_o that_o pierce_v and_o divide_v his_o own_o bless_a body_n and_o s._n augustine_n 〈◊〉_d out_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n all_o thing_n may_v be_v have_v except_o salvation_n etc_n they_o may_v have_v and_o preach_v the_o faith_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o they_o can_v no_o where_o have_v salvation_n but_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o a_o little_a after_o i_o say_v more_o if_o a_o man_n ibidem_fw-la out_o of_o the_o church_n suffer_v the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n i_o say_v not_o his_o catholic_a brother_n that_o desire_v his_o salvation_n but_o the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n if_o he_o suffer_v he_o without_o and_o that_o he_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n say_v to_o he_o offer_v incense_n to_o idol_n adore_v my_o god_n and_o for_o not_o adore_v they_o he_o be_v put_v to_o death_n by_o the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n he_o may_v well_o shed_v his_o blood_n but_o he_o can_v obtain_v the_o crown_n and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n 204._o be_v constitute_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o separate_v from_o the_o heap_n of_o unity_n and_o the_o bond_n of_o charity_n thou_o shall_v be_v punish_v with_o eternal_a death_n though_o thou_o shall_v have_v be_v burn_v alive_a for_o the_o name_n of_o christ._n and_o again_o i_o go_v not_o to_o worship_v 88_o the_o devil_n i_o serve_v not_o stock_n and_o stone_n but_o i_o be_o of_o donatus_n his_o party_n what_o will_v it_o serve_v thy_o turn_n that_o the_o father_n be_v not_o offend_v since_o he_o will_v revenge_v the_o mother_n 〈◊〉_d and_o in_o his_o work_n against_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n 17._o if_o he_o hear_v not_o the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v to_o thou_o as_o a_o heathen_a or_o publican_n which_o be_v more_o grievons_a then_o if_o he_o be_v strike_v by_o the_o sword_n consume_v with_o flame_n expose_v to_o wild_a beast_n and_o in_o the_o book_n of_o pastor_n 12._o the_o devil_n do_v not_o say_v let_v they_o be_v donatist_n and_o not_o arrian_n be_v they_o here_o be_v they_o there_o they_o appartaine_a to_o he_o that_o gather_v without_o any_o distinction_n let_v he_o say_v the_o devil_n adore_v idol_n he_o his_o mine_n let_v he_o remain_v in_o jewish_a superstition_n he_o be_v i_o let_v he_o abandon_v unity_n and_o enter_v into_o such_o or_o such_o a_o heresy_n he_o be_v i_o and_o in_o the_o profession_n to_o be_v make_v by_o the_o donatist_n returninge_v to_o the_o church_n 48_o we_o think_v it_o have_v not_o import_v in_o which_o part_n we_o have_v hold_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n but_o thancke_n be_v to_o our_o lord_n that_o have_v take_v we_o in_o from_o the_o division_n and_o teach_v we_o that_o it_o belonhg_v to_o god_n who_o be_v one_o to_o be_v serve_v in_o unity_n and_o fulgentius_n the_o second_o saint_n augustine_n and_o the_o phoenix_n bear_v a_o new_a out_o of_o his_o ash_n 22._o out_o of_o this_o church_n neither_o do_v the_o title_n of_o christian_a warrant_v any_o body_n nether_a do_v baptism_n confer_v salvation_n nor_o can_v they_o offer_v a_o sacrifice_n acceptable_a to_o god_n nor_o receive_v remission_n of_o sin_n nor_o obtain_v life_n eternal_a for_o there_o be_v one_o only_a church_n one_o only_a dove_n one_o only_o well_o belove_v one_o only_a sponse_n and_o again_o 39_o believe_v this_o steadfast_o without_o doubt_v that_o every_o heretic_n or_o schismatic_n baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n if_o before_o the_o end_n of_o his_o life_n he_o be_v not_o reconcile_v to_o the_o catholikke_n church_n what_o alm_n so_o ever_o he_o give_v yea_o though_o he_o shall_v shed_v his_o blood_n for_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n he_o can_v obtain_v salvation_n fair_a but_o fearful_a lesson_n for_o those_o who_o think_v that_o in_o what_o communion_n soever_o they_o be_v so_o they_o believe_v in_o christ_n they_o may_v be_v save_v of_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n chapter_n v._n the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n among_o the_o proper_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n the_o king_n confess_v that_o that_o be_v great_o necessary_a but_o his_o majesty_n be_v not_o of_o opinion_n that_o it_o be_v the_o true_a form_n of_o the_o church_n and_o as_o the_o philosopher_n term_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o wherein_o it_o consist_v the_o reply_n neither_o be_v it_o necessary_a that_o a_o condition_n for_o to_o be_v the_o mark_n of_o any_o thing_n shall_v be_v the_o essential_a form_n of_o the_o thing_n for_o than_o we_o shall_v have_v no_o mark_n of_o any_o substantial_a thing_n for_o we_o know_v not_o the_o essential_a form_n of_o any_o one_o of_o they_o except_o only_o of_o man_n and_o for_o more_o than_o three_o thousand_o year_n the_o true_a essential_a form_n of_o man_n be_v unknowen_a witness_n the_o jest_n of_o diogenes_n upon_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o man_n give_v by_o plato_n and_o therefore_o saint_n basile_n reproach_v it_o to_o eunomius_n 1._o who_o have_v boast_v that_o he_o know_v the_o essence_n of_o the_o father_n that_o he_o know_v not_o so_o much_o as_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o ground_n whereupon_o he_o walk_v every_o day_n and_o that_o what_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o man_n be_v but_o accident_n neither_o on_o the_o other_o side_n be_v it_o necessary_a that_o the_o essential_a form_n of_o a_o thing_n shall_v be_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o same_o thing_n nay_o contrariwise_o to_o be_v the_o essential_a form_n of_o any_o thing_n and_o to_o be_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v common_o repugnant_a and_o incompatible_a condition_n for_o the_o mark_n do_v demonstrate_v the_o thing_n to_o the_o sense_n and_o the_o
essential_a form_n do_v show_v it_o to_o the_o understand_v the_o mark_n design_v the_o thing_n in_o the_o existence_n the_o essential_a form_n design_v it_o in_o the_o offence_n the_o mark_n teach_v where_o the_o thing_n be_v and_o the_o essential_a form_n teach_v what_o it_o be_v the_o mark_n be_v soon_o know_v than_o the_o thing_n and_o contrariwise_o the_o thing_n be_v soon_o know_v than_o the_o essential_a form_n of_o the_o thing_n for_o the_o thing_n define_v as_o aristotle_n say_v 1._o preceede_v in_o knowledge_n the_o definition_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o whole_a be_v know_v before_o the_o resolution_n of_o the_o thing_n into_o his_o essential_a part_n and_o therefore_o to_o say_v that_o the_o eminency_n of_o the_o communion_n be_v not_o the_o essential_a form_n of_o the_o church_n hinder_v it_o not_o from_o be_v a_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n and_o a_o mark_n likewise_o not_o only_o great_o necessary_a but_o absolute_o necessary_a 〈◊〉_d she_o have_v say_v saint_n augustine_n this_o most_o certain_a mark_n that_o she_o can_v be_v hide_v she_o be_v then_o know_v to_o all_o nation_n the_o sect_n of_o donatus_n be_v unknown_a to_o many_o nation_n therefore_o that_o be_v not_o she_o again_o on_o the_o other_o side_n to_o say_v that_o the_o doctrine_n be_v the_o essential_a form_n or_o belong_v to_o the_o essential_a form_n of_o the_o church_n make_v not_o that_o 〈◊〉_d it_o shall_v be_v a_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n for_o a_o mark_n must_v have_v three_o condition_n the_o first_o be_v to_o be_v more_o know_v than_o the_o thing_n since_o it_o be_v it_o that_o make_v the_o thing_n know_v the_o second_o that_o the_o thing_n never_o be_v find_v without_o it_o and_o the_o three_o as_o we_o have_v say_v elsewhere_o 〈◊〉_d that_o it_o be_v never_o find_v either_o alone_a if_o it_o be_v a_o total_a mark_n or_o with_o its_o fellow_n if_o it_o be_v a_o mark_n in_o part_n without_o the_o thing_n now_o the_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n in_o all_o instance_n thereof_o be_v much_o hard_a to_o be_v know_v than_o the_o society_n of_o the_o church_n i_o say_v in_o all_o instance_n thereof_o because_o to_o know_v the_o right_n of_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o church_n in_o one_o particular_a question_n with_o one_o or_o other_o sect_n suffice_v not_o to_o know_v the_o church_n by_o the_o doctrine_n but_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o know_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o her_o particularity_n contest_v by_o heresy_n as_o well_o past_a as_o present_v before_o we_o can_v 〈◊〉_d by_o virtue_n of_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o doctrine_n where_o the_o true_a church_n be_v for_o there_o need_v no_o more_o but_o that_o she_o go_v wrong_v in_o any_o one_o controversy_n to_o make_v she_o fall_v from_o the_o title_n of_o the_o true_a church_n now_o who_o be_v he_o that_o can_v vaunt_v to_o know_v the_o integrity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o her_o instance_n and_o to_o have_v make_v the_o examination_n against_o every_o one_o of_o the_o other_o society_n by_o infallible_a and_o insoluble_a proof_n to_o all_o their_o answer_n and_o by_o invincible_a and_o irrefutable_a answer_n to_o all_o their_o objection_n and_o if_o any_o can_v do_v this_o who_o know_v not_o that_o the_o simple_a people_n and_o ignorant_a and_o rustical_a person_n of_o who_o salvation_n nevertheless_o god_n have_v the_o same_o care_n that_o he_o have_v of_o the_o learned_a and_o to_o who_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v equal_o common_a since_o they_o be_v equal_o oblige_v to_o obey_v she_o be_v not_o capable_a of_o this_o examination_n 4._o for_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o people_n say_v saint_n augustine_n it_o be_v not_o the_o quickness_n of_o understand_v but_o the_o simplicity_n of_o belief_n that_o secure_v they_o and_o by_o consequent_a who_o see_v not_o that_o they_o must_v have_v other_o mark_n to_o know_v the_o church_n by_o then_o that_o of_o her_o doctrine_n to_o wit_n mark_n proportionable_a to_o their_o capacity_n that_o be_v to_o say_v external_a and_o sensible_a mark_n as_o 〈◊〉_d antiquity_n perpetuity_n and_o such_o like_a even_o as_o child_n and_o ignorant_a person_n must_v have_v external_a and_o sensible_a mark_n and_o other_o than_o the_o essential_a form_n of_o a_o man_n to_o know_v and_o discern_v a_o man_n from_o other_o live_a creature_n 〈◊〉_d by_o what_o manifest_a mark_n cry_n out_o saint_n augustine_n speak_v in_o the_o person_n of_o a_o catechumenist_n by_o what_o demonstration_n shall_v i_o that_o be_o yet_o little_a and_o weak_a and_o can_v discern_v the_o pure_a truth_n from_o the_o many_o error_n know_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n to_o which_o i_o be_o constrain_v to_o believe_v by_o the_o event_n of_o so_o many_o thing_n heretofore_o presage_v for_o these_o cause_n say_v he_o the_o prophet_n go_v forward_o and_o as_o it_o be_v collect_v methodical_o the_o motion_n of_o that_o spirit_n say_v that_o she_o be_v foretell_v to_o be_v that_o church_n which_o be_v eminent_a and_o apparent_a to_o all_o and_o a_o little_a after_o and_o also_o because_o of_o the_o motion_n of_o these_o little_a one_o who_o may_v be_v seduce_v and_o divert_v by_o man_n from_o the_o brightness_n of_o of_o the_o church_n our_o lord_n go_v before_o they_o say_v the_o city_n 5._o build_v upon_o the_o mountain_n can_v be_v hide_v and_o indeed_o how_o be_v it_o that_o esaie_n shall_v prophesy_v that_o 2._o in_o the_o last_o day_n the_o mountain_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v on_o the_o top_n of_o all_o the_o mountain_n and_o that_o all_o the_o hill_n shall_v flow_v to_o she_o and_o that_o the_o nation_n shall_v come_v and_o say_v let_v we_o go_v up_o into_o the_o mountain_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o into_o the_o house_n of_o the_o god_n of_o jacob_n and_o he_o will_v 〈◊〉_d we_o his_o way_n if_o the_o only_a mark_n to_o know_v assure_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o church_n be_v the_o especial_a knowledge_n of_o his_o way_n and_o how_o shall_v saint_n paul_n say_v 〈◊〉_d god_n have_v place_v in_o the_o church_n apostles_n prophet_n evangelist_n pastor_n and_o doctor_n etc._n etc._n to_o the_o end_n we_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o little_a child_n blow_v about_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n if_o he_o have_v not_o give_v we_o other_o mark_n to_o know_v the_o church_n than_o the_o purity_n of_o doctrine_n beside_o suppose_v the_o doctrine_n to_o be_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n it_o must_v be_v either_o the_o doctrine_n contest_v between_o the_o party_n that_o pretend_v the_o title_n of_o the_o church_n or_o the_o doctrine_n not_o contest_v now_o it_o can_v be_v the_o doctrine_n not_o contest_v because_o both_o side_n have_v it_o and_o less_o yet_o the_o doctrine_n contest_v for_o while_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o doctrine_n be_v contest_v it_o remain_v undecided_a of_o which_o side_n it_o be_v and_o the_o certain_a and_o assure_a decision_n can_v be_v make_v but_o by_o the_o church_n by_o which_o mean_v it_o be_v necessary_a that_o during_o the_o contestation_n of_o the_o doctrine_n there_o must_v be_v other_o mark_n to_o know_v the_o church_n by_o which_o be_v acknowledge_v the_o question_n of_o the_o doctrine_n may_v be_v decide_v and_o you_o can_v say_v that_o the_o contest_v doctrine_n can_v be_v decide_v by_o scripture_n only_o for_o beside_o that_o there_o be_v matter_n of_o religion_n which_o be_v not_o any_o way_n touch_v by_o the_o scripture_n ans_fw-fr that_o whereof_o saint_n august_n speak_v do._n the_o apostle_n in_o truth_n have_v prescribe_v nothing_o of_o that_o but_o this_o custom_n which_o be_v opposite_a to_o cyprian_a ought_v to_o be_v believe_v to_o have_v take_v its_o original_n 23._o from_o their_o tradition_n saint_n jerome_n protest_v 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o scripture_n consist_v not_o in_o the_o read_n but_o in_o the_o understanding_n and_o 3._o that_o by_o a_o wrong_a interpretation_n the_o gospel_n of_o god_n may_v be_v make_v the_o gospel_n of_o a_o man_n nay_o which_o be_v worse_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o devil_n wherefore_o to_o judge_v sure_o of_o the_o doctrine_n by_o the_o scripture_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v first_o assure_v of_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o by_o a_o infallible_a mean_n for_o all_o the_o conclusion_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v not_o find_v in_o term_n express_v and_o incapable_a of_o ambiguity_n in_o the_o scripture_n but_o be_v draw_v by_o interpretation_n to_o make_v they_o conclusion_n of_o faith_n and_o decision_n infallible_a and_o equal_a to_o the_o authority_n of_o their_o principle_n must_v be_v draw_v from_o it_o by_o a_o infallible_a means_n now_o there_o be_v but_o three_o way_n whereby_o we_o may_v pretend_v to_o be_v assure_v that_o a_o conclusion_n draw_v from_o
spouse_n mark_n of_o the_o place_n where_o he_o dwell_v she_o say_v lest_o i_o be_v as_o hidden_a amoug_v the_o flock_n of_o thy_o competitor_n 14._o that_o be_v to_o say_v say_v saint_n augustine_n of_o those_o that_o be_v in_o the_o begin_v with_o thou_o will_v assemble_v without_o not_o thy_o flock_n but_o their_o stock_n for_o what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o say_v that_o the_o church_n demand_v mark_n of_o her_o spouse_n not_o to_o be_v discern_v from_o all_o kind_n of_o thing_n but_o to_o be_v discern_v only_o from_o the_o society_n of_o heretic_n which_o bear_v by_o false_a mark_n the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o title_n of_o church_n and_o second_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o the_o mark_n in_o part_n that_o be_v to_o say_v those_o that_o take_v separatlie_o have_v not_o the_o entire_a office_n of_o mark_n may_v not_o be_v find_v every_o one_o a_o part_n without_o the_o thing_n mark_v but_o that_o the_o thing_n may_v not_o be_v find_v without_o every_o one_o of_o they_o nor_o they_o take_v joint_o and_o altogether_o without_o the_o thing_n who_o mark_n they_o be_v and_o therefore_o the_o argument_n of_o the_o mark_n in_o part_n separate_v be_v good_a to_o argue_v negative_o and_o to_o say_v with_o saint_n austin_n against_o the_o donatist_n 104._o the_o church_n have_v this_o most_o certain_a mark_n that_o she_o can_v be_v hide_v she_o be_v then_o know_v to_o all_o nation_n the_o sect_n of_o donatus_n be_v unknown_a to_o many_o nation_n then_o that_o be_v not_o she_o or_o with_o saint_n jerom_n against_o the_o luciferian_o lucif_n hilarius_n be_v dead_a a_o deacon_n he_o can_v ordain_v no_o priest_n after_o he_o now_o that_o be_v no_o church_n that_o have_v no_o priest_n or_o with_o the_o same_o saint_n augustine_n against_o all_o heresy_n in_o general_a 4._o every_o heresy_n that_o sit_v in_o corner_n be_v a_o concubine_n and_o no_o matron_n but_o the_o argument_n of_o the_o mark_n in_o part_n take_v joint_o be_v good_a to_o argue_v both_o negative_o and_o affirmative_o and_o to_o conclude_v with_o saint_n augustine_n 4._o suppose_v then_o that_o i_o omit_v this_o wisdom_n that_o you_o deny_v to_o be_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n there_o be_v many_o other_o thing_n that_o retain_v i_o most_o justly_o in_o her_o lap_n the_o consent_n of_o people_n and_o nation_n retain_v i_o the_o authority_n begin_v by_o miracle_n nourish_v by_o hope_n increase_v by_o charity_n confirm_v by_o antiquity_n retain_v i_o the_o succession_n of_o prelate_n since_o the_o sea_n of_o peter_n to_o who_o or_o lord_n consign_v the_o feed_n of_o his_o sheep_n after_o his_o resurrection_n to_o the_o present_a bishop_n sea_n retain_v i_o and_o final_o the_o very_a name_n of_o catholic_a retain_v i_o which_o not_o without_o cause_n this_o church_n alone_o among_o so_o many_a and_o so_o great_a heresy_n have_v so_o maintain_v as_o when_o a_o stranger_n ask_v where_o they_o assemble_v to_o comunicate_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n there_o be_v no_o heretic_n than_o dare_v show_v he_o his_o own_o temple_n or_o his_o own_o house_n from_o what_o place_n of_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o shepherd_n the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v take_v chapter_n vi._n the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n the_o king_n have_v learn_v from_o the_o read_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o all_o the_o father_n heretofore_o none_o except_v hold_v no_o otherwise_o that_o the_o true_a and_o essential_a form_n of_o the_o church_n be_v that_o the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n do_v hear_v the_o voice_n of_o their_o pastor_n the_o reply_n to_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o pastor_n be_v the_o office_n of_o the_o sheep_n but_o not_o the_o essential_a form_n either_o of_o the_o church_n or_o of_o the_o sheep_n for_o the_o essential_a form_n of_o the_o church_n i_o mean_v essential_a form_n analogical_o as_o that_o of_o the_o suppost_n constitute_v by_o aggregation_n be_v unity_n in_o the_o mean_n of_o vocation_n to_o salvation_n and_o the_o essential_a form_n of_o the_o flock_n be_v the_o communion_n and_o participation_n to_o this_o unity_n ●_o the_o name_n of_o church_n say_v saint_n chrisostom_n be_v a_o name_n of_o agreement_n and_o union_n and_o saint_n augustine_n 100_o god_n be_v one_o the_o church_n be_v unity_n nothing_o agree_v with_o this_o one_o '_o but_o unity_n but_o if_o the_o essential_a form_n of_o the_o flock_n be_v to_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o pastor_n do_v not_o he_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o pastor_n that_o hear_v her_o voice_n of_o who_o the_o pastor_n say_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o isaiah_n 14._o thou_o shall_v judge_v every_o tongue_n that_o resist_v thou_o in_o judgement_n and_o by_o his_o own_o mouth_n 16._o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o she_o and_o 18_o whosoever_o hear_v she_o not_o shall_v be_v hold_v as_o a_o heathen_a and_o a_o publican_n and_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o saint_n paul_n 4._o he_o have_v place_v in_o the_o church_n apostles_n prophet_n evangelist_n pastor_n and_o doctor_n etc._n etc._n that_o we_o may_v no_o more_o be_v little_a child_n fleet_a and_o waver_v with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n and_o do_v not_o saint_n augustine_n cry_v out_o 〈◊〉_d the_o truth_n of_o scripture_n be_v hold_v by_o we_o when_o we_o do_v that_o which_o please_v the_o universal_a church_n who_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o same_o scripture_n recommend_v and_o again_o 23._o there_o be_v many_o thing_n that_o the_o universal_a church_n observe_v and_o which_o therefore_o be_v lawful_o believe_v to_o have_v be_v deliver_v by_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n although_o we_o find_v they_o not_o write_v and_o then_o again_o to_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o pastor_n be_v it_o not_o to_o hear_v it_o according_a to_o true_a understanding_n for_o do_v not_o tertullian_n pronounce_v prese_n a_o adulterate_a gloss_n do_v as_o much_o outrage_n to_o the_o truth_n as_o a_o false_a pen_n and_o do_v not_o saint_n hilary_n say_v 2._o the_o heresy_n be_v in_o the_o understanding_n and_o not_o in_o the_o scripture_n the_o sense_n and_o not_o the_o word_n become_v the_o crime_n and_o do_v not_o saint_n jerome_n write_v 1._o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o in_o the_o word_n but_o in_o the_o sense_n and_o do_v not_o saint_n augustine_n cty_n out_o 222._o all_o the_o heretic_n which_o receive_v the_o scripture_n think_v to_o follow_v they_o when_o they_o follow_v their_o own_o error_n and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n 9_o heretic_n be_v no_o heretic_n but_o that_o misunderstand_v the_o scripture_n they_o defend_v obstinate_o their_o own_o false_a opinion_n against_o the_o truth_n thereof_o and_o again_o 9_o many_o thing_n be_v speak_v by_o christ_n in_o the_o scripture_n in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o the_o impion_n spirit_n of_o heretic_n who_o will_v needs_o teach_v before_o they_o be_v teach_v be_v thereby_o lead_v into_o error_n and_o upon_o saint_n john_n 18._o the_o heresy_n and_o perverse_a doctrine_n which_o entangle_v soul_n and_o cast_v they_o headlong_o into_o hell_n have_v their_o birth_n no_o where_o but_o from_o good_a scripture_n evil_o understand_v and_o so_o be_v not_o the_o question_n still_o to_o who_o it_o belong_v to_o judge_v infallible_o of_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n moreover_o the_o first_o voice_n of_o the_o shepherd_n that_o the_o father_n summon_v the_o sheep_n to_o hear_v be_v it_o not_o that_o whereby_o he_o design_v the_o mark_n of_o his_o sheepefolde_a that_o be_v of_o his_o church_n 10._o i_o have_v say_v saint_n augustine_n the_o most_o manifest_a voice_n of_o my_o pastor_n who_o recommend_v and_o express_v to_o i_o his_o church_n without_o any_o ambigiutie_n i_o must_v blame_v myself_o if_o for_o the_o word_n of_o man_n i_o stray_v from_o his_o floke_n which_o be_v the_o church_n since_o principal_o he_o admonish_v i_o say_v my_o sheep_n hear_v my_o voice_n now_o which_o be_v this_o voice_n of_o the_o pastor_n wherein_o saint_n augustine_n will_v have_v we_o seek_v for_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n but_o that_o which_o express_v not_o the_o doctrine_n contest_v between_o he_o and_o his_o adversary_n which_o be_v that_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o baptism_n give_v by_o heretic_n but_o the_o prerogative_n of_o eminency_n perpetuity_n universality_n and_o other_o external_a and_o sensible_a mark_n and_o condition_n promise_v to_o the_o church_n 4_o if_o the_o holy_a scripture_n say_v saint_n augustine_n have_v design_v the_o 〈◊〉_d only_o in_o africa_n and_o in_o a_o little_a medley_n of_o man_n dwell_v in_o the_o rock_n and_o mountain_n near_o rome_n and_o in_o the_o house_n and_o territory_n of_o a_o spanish_a lady_n though_o whatsoever_o other_o pamphlet_n may_v be_v produce_v there_o be_v none_o but_o the_o donatist_n that_o have_v the_o church_n if_o the_o
for_o first_o the_o word_n ecclesia_fw-la church_n be_v derive_v from_o a_o verb_n which_o signify_v to_o call_v and_o not_o to_o predestine_v from_o whence_o s._n paul_n confirm_v the_o use_n of_o this_o 1._o etymology_n inscribe_v his_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n to_o the_o saint_n call_v and_o in_o 4._o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephes._n he_o say_v one_o body_n and_o one_o spirit_n as_o you_o be_v call_v in_o 3_o one_o hope_n of_o your_o vocation_n and_o in_o the_o epist_n to_o the_o coloss._n let_v the_o peace_n of_o christ_n rule_n in_o your_o heart_n by_o which_o you_o be_v call_v in_o one-selfe_n body_n and_o second_o the_o church_n be_v a_o society_n and_o there_o be_v this_o difference_n between_o a_o simple_a multitude_n and_o a_o society_n that_o the_o society_n add_v to_o the_o part_n of_o the_o multitude_n a_o condition_n and_o a_o certain_a character_n as_o it_o be_v in_o virtue_n whereof_o they_o may_v communicate_v together_o now_o predestination_n as_o it_o be_v simple_a predestination_n put_v nothing_o into_o the_o person_n of_o the_o predestinate_a and_o be_v not_o make_v in_o they_o but_o in_o god_n only_o and_o by_o consequent_a do_v not_o make_v they_o actual_o part_n of_o the_o church_n our_o predestination_n say_v s._n 150._o august_n be_v not_o make_v in_o we_o but_o in_o god_n the_o three_o other_o thing_n be_v make_v in_o we_o 2._o vocation_n justification_n and_o glorification_n for_o that_o that_o be_v allege_v out_o of_o saint_n paul_n that_o god_n know_v those_o that_o be_v he_o and_o have_v mark_v they_o with_o his_o signet_n must_v be_v understand_v that_o he_o have_v mark_v the_o predestinate_a in_o himself_o that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o his_o eternal_a determination_n and_o not_o in_o they_o as_o a_o architect_n who_o design_n in_o his_o spirit_n certain_a stone_n that_o he_o will_v employ_v in_o his_o build_n mark_n they_o not_o by_o this_o mental_a designation_n in_o they_o but_o in_o himself_o and_o make_v they_o not_o by_o this_o simple_a determination_n actual_a part_n of_o his_o build_n i_o mean_v to_o be_v brief_a that_o the_o union_n that_o constitute_n man_n in_o the_o church_n be_v in_o they_o now_o the_o union_n that_o the_o predestinate_a have_v in_o god_n as_o they_o be_v simple_o predestinate_a be_v not_o in_o they_o but_o in_o god_n alone_o and_o so_o it_o be_v not_o the_o union_n of_o predestination_n but_o that_o of_o vocation_n that_o constitute_n man_n in_o the_o church_n 1_o three_o s._n paul_n teach_v we_o that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o by_o analogy_n to_o a_o organical_a body_n god_n say_v he_o constitute_v he_o head_n 1._o over_o all_o the_o church_n which_o be_v his_o body_n and_o again_o i_o accomplish_v that_o which_o want_v of_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n in_o my_o flesh_n for_o his_o body_n which_o be_v the_o church_n now_o it_o be_v of_o the_o essence_n of_o a_o organical_a body_n as_o it_o be_v organical_a to_o be_v compose_v of_o 12._o diverse_a office_n member_n and_o part_n if_o all_o the_o member_n say_v s._n paul_n be_v one_o member_n where_o shall_v the_o body_n be_v and_o by_o this_o reason_n the_o schoolman_n prove_v that_o the_o heaven_n be_v not_o animate_v or_o live_a body_n because_o they_o be_v not_o organical_a body_n and_o they_o prove_v they_o be_v not_o organical_a body_n because_o they_o be_v not_o make_v up_o of_o heterogeneal_a and_o different_a part_n in_o composition_n and_o complexion_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v of_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o church_n to_o have_v distinction_n of_o member_n organ_n and_o office_n be_v the_o church_n do_v not_o arise_v from_o the_o hide_a and_o eternal_a predestination_n for_o then_o the_o not_o predestinate_a can_v not_o be_v minister_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n but_o from_o external_a and_o temporal_a vocation_n and_o by_o consequent_a it_o be_v in_o the_o external_a visible_a and_o temporal_a vocation_n and_o not_o in_o predestination_n which_o be_v internal_a to_o god_n hide_a and_o eternal_a that_o the_o be_v and_o essential_a form_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v fowrthly_a the_o same_o saint_n paul_n say_v that_o god_n have_v temper_v the_o honour_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d member_n that_o there_o may_v be_v no_o schism_n in_o the_o body_n now_o the_o predestinate_a be_v not_o capable_a of_o schism_n as_o they_o be_v predestinat_a but_o as_o they_o be_v call_v so_o it_o be_v not_o predestination_n but_o vocation_n that_o frame_v the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n five_o he_o affirm_v the_o church_n to_o be_v our_o mother_n the_o superior_a jerusalem_n say_v 4._o he_o that_o be_v 〈◊〉_d say_v jerusalem_fw-la take_v not_o accord_v to_o the_o lowliness_n of_o the_o legal_a 〈◊〉_d but_o according_a to_o the_o height_n of_o the_o evangelicall_a sense_n be_v free_a 4._o which_o be_v our_o mother_n and_o he_o add_v that_o it_o be_v of_o she_o that_o 〈◊〉_d write_v rejoice_v thou_o barren_a woman_n that_o bring_v not_o forth_o child_n now_o the_o church_n do_v not_o engender_v we_o by_o predestination_n for_o god_n alone_o be_v the_o author_n of_o predestination_n and_o not_o the_o church_n but_o by_o vocation_n and_o consequent_o it_o be_v vocation_n and_o not_o predestination_n that_o constitute_n the_o church_n in_o the_o state_n of_o a_o church_n &_o mother_n of_o the_o faithful_a moreover_o the_o knowledge_n of_o be_v child_n to_o the_o mother_n be_v before_o the_o knowledge_n of_o be_v child_n to_o the_o father_n by_o the_o 12._o interposition_n of_o the_o mother_n authority_n say_v saint_n aug_n we_o be_v persuade_v of_o the_o true_a father_n for_o that_o that_o aristotle_n write_v 2._o that_o in_o certain_a part_n of_o the_o upper_a 〈◊〉_d where_o woman_n be_v common_a they_o discern_v the_o child_n by_o the_o resemblance_n they_o have_v to_o their_o father_n be_v good_a for_o those_o people_n where_o that_o similitude_n have_v place_n but_o we_o in_o who_o nature_n the_o image_n of_o god_n be_v so_o deface_v by_o the_o spott_n of_o original_a sin_n as_o we_o can_v no_o more_o be_v know_v to_o be_v his_o child_n by_o virtue_n of_o natural_a similitude_n only_o there_o be_v no_o other_o mean_n for_o we_o to_o pretend_v to_o this_o quality_n but_o that_o we_o be_v regenerate_v by_o he_o in_o our_o spiritual_a mother_n which_o be_v the_o church_n his_o only_a spouse_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n the_o ancient_n be_v so_o careful_a to_o say_v that_o 〈◊〉_d he_o shall_v not_o have_v god_n for_o his_o father_n that_o deny_v the_o church_n for_o his_o mother_n 〈◊〉_d and_o that_o if_o any_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n he_o shall_v be_v exclude_v out_o of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o child_n and_o to_o exhort_v the_o christian_n to_o do_v like_o the_o 〈◊〉_d xanthian_o in_o take_v the_o surname_n of_o their_o mother_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o title_n of_o catholic_a 32._o we_o receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v saint_n augustine_n if_o we_o lo_o the_o church_n if_o we_o be_v knit_v in_o one_o body_n by_o charity_n if_o we_o rejoice_v in_o the_o catholic_a name_n and_o faith_n now_o the_o certainty_n of_o be_v child_n to_o the_o church_n can_v serve_v we_o for_o a_o mean_n and_o path_n way_n to_o come_v to_o the_o persuasion_n of_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n if_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v in_o the_o hide_a and_o invisible_a secret_n of_o predestination_n for_o by_o this_o definition_n contrariwise_o we_o must_v be_v assure_v to_o be_v child_n of_o god_n and_o comprehend_v in_o the_o rolle_n of_o the_o predestinate_a before_o we_o can_v be_v assure_v that_o we_o be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o church_n so_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o consist_v not_o in_o the_o hide_a and_o invisiblie_o condition_n of_o predestination_n but_o in_o the_o external_a and_o visible_a condition_n of_o vocation_n also_o we_o see_v that_o our_o lord_n who_o be_v the_o godfather_n of_o this_o society_n and_o give_v it_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n in_o that_o sense_n that_o she_o ought_v to_o bear_v it_o have_v never_o use_v that_o name_n neither_o he_o nor_o his_o apostle_n but_o to_o design_n a_o visible_a society_n constitute_v by_o external_a and_o temporal_a vocation_n 16._o for_o when_o he_o say_v upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o she_o and_o i_o will_v give_v thou_o the_o key_n of_o the_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n this_o word_n in_o the_o future_a tense_n i_o will_v build_v show_v he_o speak_v of_o a_o church_n constitute_v not_o by_o prestination_n which_o be_v establish_v from_o all_o eternity_n but_o by_o external_a and_o temporal_a vocation_n and_o the_o word_n key_n which_o signify_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o ministry_n confirm_v it_o
the_o scripture_n in_o that_o they_o be_v with_o i_o we_o both_o celebrate_v the_o martyr_n feast_n in_o that_o they_o be_v with_o i_o we_o both_o frequent_v the_o solemnity_n of_o easter_n in_o that_o they_o be_v with_o i_o but_o they_o be_v not_o with_o i_o in_o all_o thing_n in_o schism_n they_o be_v divide_v from_o i_o in_o heresy_n they_o be_v divide_v from_o i_o in_o many_o thing_n with_o i_o and_o in_o few_o divide_v from_o i_o but_o because_o of_o these_o few_o thing_n wherein_o they_o be_v divide_v from_o i_o the_o many_o thing_n wherein_o they_o be_v with_o i_o profit_v they_o nothing_o and_o so_o it_o be_v unprofitable_a to_o those_o society_n whereof_o his_o majesty_n speak_v to_o obtain_v the_o name_n of_o church_n that_o they_o be_v unite_v in_o most_o point_n necessary_a for_o salvation_n if_o they_o be_v not_o unite_v in_o all_o and_o particular_o in_o the_o knowledge_n and_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n and_o consequent_o not_o suppose_v she_o to_o be_v visible_a the_o fowrth_a battle_n be_v that_o the_o universal_a distinction_n of_o thing_n necessary_a or_o not_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n can_v be_v assure_o make_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o every_o particular_a person_n but_o it_o depend_v of_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n for_o there_o be_v no_o sect_n but_o believe_v that_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o hold_v 22._o be_v only_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o that_o all_o which_o other_o hold_v over_o and_o above_o be_v either_o pernicious_a or_o superfluous_a pelagius_n and_o celestius_fw-la say_v saint_n aug._n desire_v fraudulent_o to_o avoid_v the_o hateful_a name_n of_o 22._o heresy_n affirm_v that_o the_o question_n of_o original_a sin_n may_v be_v dispute_v without_o danger_n of_o say_v and_o saint_n augustine_n contrariwise_o cry_v out_o that_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o foundation_n of_o faith_n we_o may_v say_v he_o endure_v a_o disputant_n which_o 〈◊〉_d in_o other_o question_n not_o yet_o diligent_o examine_v not_o yet_o establish_v by_o the_o whole_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n their_o error_n may_v be_v bear_v with_o but_o it_o must_v not_o pass_v so_o far_o as_o to_o attempt_v to_o shake_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o luther_n 〈◊〉_d speak_v of_o the_o controversy_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n under_o both_o kind_n and_o of_o the_o oral_a manducation_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n zuinglius_fw-la and_o oecolampadius_n say_v he_o allege_v that_o the_o question_n between_o they_o and_o we_o be_v a_o light_a matter_n and_o a_o little_a difference_n not_o worthy_a that_o by_o occasion_n thereof_o 〈◊〉_d christian_a charity_n shall_v be_v break_v but_o luther_o contrariwise_o cry_v out_o eternal_o curse_v be_v this_o concord_n and_o this_o charity_n because_o it_o do_v not_o only_o miserable_o 〈◊〉_d rend_v the_o church_n but_o after_o the_o devil_n fashion_n mock_n she_o and_o again_o i_o take_v to_o witness_n god_n and_o man_n that_o i_o agree_v not_o with_o the_o sacramentary_n that_o be_v with_o the_o zwinglians_n and_o caluinist_n nor_o ever_o do_v agree_v with_o they_o nor_o by_o the_o help_n of_o god_n 〈◊〉_d will_v agree_v with_o they_o and_o that_o i_o desire_v my_o hand_n may_v be_v clean_o from_o the_o blood_n of_o all_o those_o who_o soul_n by_o this_o poison_n they_o have_v turn_v from_o christ_n and_o 〈◊〉_d slay_v and_o a_o little_a after_o we_o will_v avoid_v they_o we_o will_v resist_v and_o condemn_v they_o to_o the_o last_o breath_n as_o idolator_n corrupter_n of_o god_n word_n blasphemer_n and_o seducer_n so_o that_o before_o we_o can_v be_v assure_v of_o entire_a unity_n in_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n we_o must_v hear_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n and_o consequent_o suppose_v she_o to_o be_v visible_a the_o five_o battle_n be_v that_o it_o be_v not_o evough_o for_o the_o constitution_n of_o a_o church_n that_o the_o person_n where_o of_o it_o consist_v shall_v be_v unite_v among_o themselves_o in_o matter_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n if_o they_o be_v not_o also_o divide_v from_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o all_o other_o society_n which_o hold_v thing_n repugnant_a to_o salvation_n for_o it_o suffice_v that_o we_o be_v unite_v with_o any_o congregation_n which_o believe_v any_o one_o point_n repugnant_a to_o salvation_n although_o we_o be_v well_o persuade_v in_o all_o the_o rest_n nay_o and_o even_o in_o that_o alsoe_o to_o be_v exclude_v from_o the_o participation_n of_o the_o church_n for_o whosoever_o communicate_v in_o matter_n of_o religion_n with_o any_o society_n be_v answerable_a for_o all_o the_o point_n under_o the_o obligation_n whereof_o he_o receive_v man_n to_o his_o communion_n from_o whence_o it_o arise_v that_o a_o multitude_n of_o man_n of_o diverse_a external_a communion_n such_o as_o his_o majesty_n hereafter_o propound_v as_o a_o number_n of_o man_n of_o the_o roman_a communion_n a_o number_n of_o man_n of_o the_o greek_a communion_n and_o a_o number_n of_o man_n of_o the_o ethiopian_a communion_n can_v constitute_v a_o common_a church_n for_o as_o much_o as_o though_o they_o be_v unite_v in_o the_o belief_n of_o most_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n nevertheless_o there_o be_v thing_n repugnant_a to_o salvation_n wherein_o some_o of_o they_o be_v unite_v by_o the_o bond_n of_o their_o external_a communion_n with_o the_o body_n of_o their_o sect_n which_o external_a union_n though_o the_o internal_a go_v not_o with_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o deprive_v they_o from_o the_o participation_n of_o the_o church_n the_o six_o battle_n be_v that_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n which_o enter_v into_o the_o essential_a definition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o simple_o the_o unity_n of_o internal_a faith_n but_o the_o unity_n of_o external_a faith_n for_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n which_o concur_v to_o the_o formal_a constitution_n of_o the_o church_n be_v that_o which_o serve_v for_o a_o foundation_n to_o the_o commerce_n of_o ecclesiastical_a charity_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o mean_n whereof_o the_o member_n of_o the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n may_v acknowledge_v and_o embrace_v one_o a_o other_o as_o brother_n and_o member_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o body_n now_o this_o be_v the_o unity_n of_o exteruall_a and_o profess_a faith_n and_o not_o that_o of_o hide_a and_o internal_a which_o serve_v for_o nothing_o neither_o for_o 〈◊〉_d nor_o for_o salvation_n if_o it_o be_v not_o make_v manifest_a and_o external_a for_o our_o lord_n cry_v out_o he_o that_o will_v confess_v i_o before_o man_n i_o will_v confess_v he_o 10._o before_o god_n my_o father_n and_o saint_n paul_n we_o make_v confession_n with_o our_o mouth_n to_o 10_o salvation_n and_o saint_n agust_n we_o can_v be_v save_v unless_o labour_v also_o for_o 1._o the_o salvation_n of_o other_o we_o profess_v with_o our_o mouth_n the_o same_o faith_n which_o we_o be_v be_v in_o our_o hearten_v and_o again_o peradventure_o say_v he_o some_o one_o may_v say_v there_o be_v 1._o other_o sheep_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o i_o be_o not_o acquaint_v with_o but_o god_n have_v care_n of_o they_o but_o he_o be_v too_o absurd_a in_o human_a sense_n that_o can_v imagine_v such_o thing_n and_o final_o the_o seven_o battle_n be_v that_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n even_o external_a and_o profess_a 〈◊〉_d not_o for_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o church_n if_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o visible_a and_o sacramental_a communion_n with_o the_o original_a body_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o universal_a society_n of_o the_o true_a pastor_n be_v not_o add_v to_o it_o you_o be_v with_o we_o 〈◊〉_d saint_n augustine_n to_o the_o donatist_n 48._o in_o baptism_n in_o 〈◊〉_d creed_n in_o the_o other_o sacrament_n of_o our_o lord_n but_o in_o the_o spirit_n of_o unity_n in_o the_o bond_n of_o peace_n and_o final_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n you_o be_v not_o with_o us._n 3._o and_o saint_n jerom_n there_o be_v this_o difference_n between_o schism_n and_o heresy_n that_o heresy_n hold_v a_o false_a doctrine_n and_o schism_n for_o episcopal_a dissension_n equal_o separate_v man_n from_o the_o church_n of_o other_o invisible_a union_n chap._n xi_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n they_o be_v unite_v by_o the_o conjunction_n of_o spirit_n and_o by_o the_o office_n of_o true_a charity_n and_o above_o all_o by_o that_o of_o mutual_a prayer_n they_o be_v final_o join_v by_o the_o communion_n of_o one_o selfesame_a hope_n and_o by_o the_o expectation_n of_o one_o promise_a inheritance_n the_o reply_n neither_o can_v there_o be_v a_o true_a communion_n of_o spirit_n where_o the_o visible_a and_o sacramental_a communion_n of_o body_n be_v exclude_v that_o be_v to_o 〈◊〉_d where_o the_o party_n do_v no_o admit_v one_o a_o other_o to_o the_o communion_n and_o participation_n os_fw-la the_o
presumption_n above_o their_o fellow_n of_o who_o predestination_n they_o have_v not_o the_o like_a certainty_n and_o make_v they_o less_o diligent_a to_o stand_v upon_o their_o guard_n and_o to_o practice_v this_o commandment_n of_o our_o lord_n watch_n and_o pray_v for_o fear_v lest_o 21_o you_o enter_v into_o temptation_n and_o therefore_o as_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o roman_a harp_n sing_v god_n by_o his_o wisdom_n from_o wan_n nature_n frail_a 29._o the_o whole_a success_n of_o future_a thing_n do_v veil_n the_o fowrth_n that_o s._n august_a the_o great_a doctor_n in_o the_o point_n of_o predestination_n that_o have_v be_v since_o the_o apostle_n yea_o the_o organ_n and_o the_o voice_n 13._o of_o the_o primitive_a church_n in_o this_o questiom_n teach_v we_o that_o this_o belief_n be_v 12_o full_a of_o presumption_n and_o prejudicial_a to_o salvation_n although_o say_v he_o that_o the_o just_a be_v assure_v of_o thereward_n os_fw-la 〈◊〉_d perseverance_n yet_o they_o be_v incertain_a of_o their_o perseverance_n for_o who_o be_v he_o 〈◊〉_d man_n that_o know_v he_o shall_v persevere_v in_o the_o work_n and_o progress_n of_o justice_n to_o the_o end_n if_o he_o be_v not_o make_v certain_a thereof_o by_o some_o revelation_n from_o he_o who_o by_o a_o just_a and_o secret_a judgement_n instruct_v not_o all_o 13_o but_o deceive_v none_o and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n who_o be_v he_o among_o the_o faithful_a that_o will_v presume_v during_o this_o mortal_a life_n to_o be_v of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o predestinate_a for_o it_o be_v needful_a that_o that_o be_v conceal_v in_o this_o world_n and_o a_o little_a after_o many_o like_a thing_n be_v say_v for_o the_o profit_n of_o this_o secret_a lest_o peradventure_o some_o may_v be_v puff_v up_o and_o that_o even_o those_o that_o run_v well_o may_v fear_v while_o it_o be_v uncertain_a whither_o they_o shall_v arrive_v and_o again_o such_o presumption_n be_v not_o profitable_a in_o this_o place_n of_o temptation_n where_o the_o infirmity_n be_v so_o great_a as_o assurance_n may_v beget_v pride_n and_o thus_o much_o be_v say_v in_o regard_n of_o 〈◊〉_d it_o rest_v now_o to_o solve_v the_o objection_n of_o the_o place_n of_o scripture_n that_o the_o adversaries_n of_o the_o church_n allege_v against_o this_o doctrine_n they_o say_v they_o 8._o that_o saint_n paul_n write_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n give_v testimony_n to_o our_o spirit_n or_o accord_v to_o the_o greek_n help_v our_o spirit_n to_o testify_v to_o we_o that_o we_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o if_o child_n heir_n it_o be_v true_a but_o they_o tell_v we_o not_o that_o he_o add_v present_o after_o this_o conditional_a clause_n if_o we_o go_v forward_o in_o our_o suffering_n they_o say_v he_o write_v i_o be_o certain_a or_o accord_v to_o the_o greek_a i_o be_o persuade_v 〈◊〉_d that_o neither_o death_n nor_o life_n etc_o can_v separate_v we_o from_o the_o charity_n of_o christ._n it_o be_v true_a but_o they_o tell_v we_o not_o that_o he_o speak_v there_o of_o all_o the_o predestinate_a in_o general_a into_o who_o number_n he_o putt_v himself_o and_o those_o to_o who_o he_o write_v by_o a_o figure_n which_o the_o grammarian_n call_v syllepsis_n and_o accord_v to_o the_o rule_n not_o of_o faith_n but_o of_o charity_n which_o will_v that_o in_o all_o thing_n conceal_v from_o we_o we_o shall_v judge_v in_o the_o better_a part_n they_o say_v he_o write_v the_o vocation_n and_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n be_v without_o repentance_n 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v true_a but_o there_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o general_a call_n of_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n make_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v of_o he_o say_v god_n have_v not_o 〈◊〉_d because_o yet_o one_o day_n he_o will_v recall_v their_o nation_n into_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n and_o even_o those_o that_o stretch_v this_o passage_n by_o analogy_n to_o the_o call_n of_o particular_a person_n either_o explicate_v it_o of_o vocation_n accord_v to_o predestination_n which_o be_v as_o much_o unknown_a as_o predestination_n itself_o or_o they_o intend_v that_o the_o gift_n and_o vocation_n of_o god_n be_v without_o tepentance_n on_o his_o part_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o god_n never_o withdraw_v himself_o from_o we_o unless_o we_o withdraw_v ourselves_o from_o he_o and_o therefore_o as_o saint_n paul_n say_v 1._o the_o vocation_n and_o the_o joust_n of_o god_n be_v without_o repentance_n so_o saint_n peter_n say_v take_v pain_n to_o secure_v your_o vocation_n and_o election_n by_o good_a work_n 1._o they_o say_v he_o write_v we_o have_v the_o pledge_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o our_o heart_n it_o be_v true_a but_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o our_o assurance_n to_o obtain_v the_o inheritance_n of_o life_n eternal_a that_o we_o have_v this_o pledge_n if_o we_o be_v not_o as_o well_o assure_v not_o to_o loose_v it_o a_o thing_n that_o saint_n paul_n be_v so_o far_o from_o assuringe_v we_o that_o contrary_o he_o cry_v out_o quench_v not_o the_o spirit_n they_o say_v saint_n john_n write_v perfect_a charity_n drive_v awaieseare_v it_o be_v true_a 1._o 4._o but_o beside_o that_o saint_n john_n speak_v there_o of_o perfect_a charity_n which_o every_o particular_a man_n ought_v to_o desire_v but_o not_o presume_v he_o have_v it_o for_o fear_n of_o 〈◊〉_d loosinge_v it_o in_o loosinge_v humility_n the_o fear_n that_o saint_n john_n pretende_v 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v exclude_v by_o this_o excellent_a charity_n be_v as_o sanit_n augustine_n 9_o say_v 〈◊〉_d fear_n that_o be_v the_o fear_n of_o loosinge_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n for_o fear_v of_o the_o pain_n of_o eternal_a fire_n and_o not_o the_o filial_a fear_n which_o be_v the_o fear_n of_o looseinge_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n for_o the_o love_n of_o god_n himself_o and_o for_o fear_n of_o be_v deprive_v and_o separate_v from_o his_o presence_n and_o therefore_o as_o s._n 2._o john_n say_v in_o the_o place_n cite_v by_o they_o perfect_a charity_n cast_v out_o fear_n so_o he_o say_v in_o a_o other_o place_n thou_o have_v lose_v thy_o first_o charity_n remember_v from_o whence_o 〈◊〉_d be_v salien_a and_o do_v thy_o first_o work_n and_o again_o hold_v that_o thou_o have_v least_o thy_o 〈◊〉_d be_v take_v from_o thou_o and_o from_o this_o be_v nothing_o derogatory_n that_o which_o they_o object_n that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o this_o certainty_n make_v man_n despair_v of_o their_o salvation_n for_o between_o the_o certainty_n of_o salvation_n and_o despair_n there_o be_v a_o middle_a way_n which_o be_v hope_n that_o while_o it_o last_v as_o it_o ought_v always_o to_o last_o in_o a_o christian_a man_n be_v incompatible_a with_o despair_n and_o sussize_v to_o comfort_v we_o and_o hinder_v we_o if_o we_o persevere_v in_o it_o from_o be_v confound_v and_o although_o it_o imprint_v not_o in_o we_o a_o infallible_a certainty_n of_o our_o salvation_n for_o then_o it_o be_v theological_a say_v and_o no_o more_o hope_n yet_o it_o cause_v in_o we_o moral_a faith_n which_o we_o call_v confidence_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o likelyhoode_n &_o conjecture_n that_o the_o good_a motion_n wherewith_o god_n inspire_v we_o give_v we_o of_o our_o 22._o predestination_n learn_v in_o part_n say_v saint_n augustine_n condiscite_fw-la as_o s._n paul_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d from_o the_o goodness_n and_o straightness_n of_o your_o course_n that_o you_o belong_v ibid._n to_o the_o predestination_n of_o divine_a grace_n and_o again_o you_o they_o alsoe_o ought_v to_o hope_n from_o the_o father_n of_o light_n from_o who_o descend_v every_o excellent_a gift_n and_o every_o perfect_a present_a the_o perseverance_n to_o obey_v and_o ask_v it_o of_o he_o with_o daily_a prayer_n and_o do_v so_o confide_v not_o to_o be_v exclude_v from_o the_o predestination_n of_o his_o people_n since_o it_o ibid._n be_v himself_o that_o give_v we_o grace_n to_o do_v it_o and_o a_o little_a after_o of_o life_n eternal_a say_v he_o which_o god_n who_o be_v no_o liar_n have_v 〈◊〉_d before_o all_o time_n to_o the_o child_n of_o promise_n none_o can_v be_v assure_v till_o this_o life_n be_v finish_v but_o he_o will_v make_v we_o persevere_v in_o he_o to_o who_o we_o say_v every_o day_n lead_v we_o not_o into_o temptation_n that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o it_o arise_v from_o the_o protestation_n of_o the_o precede_a period_n but_o we_o ought_v to_o hope_v that_o he_o will_v make_v we_o persevere_v in_o he_o to_o who_o we_o say_v every_o day_n lead_v we_o not_o into_o temptation_n of_o the_o inequality_n of_o these_o two_o phrase_n to_o communicate_v with_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o to_o communicate_v with_o some_o member_n of_o the_o church_n depart_v from_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n chap._n xiii_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n but_o the_o king_n add_v that_o this_o very_a church_n
palestina_n these_o be_v all_o complaint_n which_o still_o remain_v within_o the_o limit_n of_o their_o manner_n and_o neither_o touch_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n nor_o the_o succession_n of_o saint_n peter_n nor_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o apostolical_a sea_n nor_o the_o very_a person_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o indeed_o how_o can_v saint_n jerome_n apply_v these_o word_n of_o the_o revelation_n go_v out_o of_o babylon_n to_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n for_o any_o thing_n concern_v faith_n and_o religion_n he_o that_o cry_v out_o in_o his_o apology_n against_o ruffinus_n 1_o which_o faith_n be_v it_o that_o he_o call_v he_o that_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n hold_v or_o that_o that_o be_v contain_v in_o origen_n book_n if_o he_o answer_v that_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n hold_v than_o we_o be_v catholic_n and_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o theophilus_n patriarche_v 68_o of_o alexandria_n know_v that_o we_o have_v nothing_o in_o great_a recommendation_n then_o to_o conserve_v the_o statute_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o to_o transgress_v the_o bound_n of_o our_o father_n and_o always_o to_o remember_v the_o roman_a faith_n praise_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o apostle_n whereof_o the_o alexandrian_a church_n do_v glory_n to_o partake_v and_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o demetrias_n when_o thou_o be_v little_a and_o that_o the_o bishop_n anastasius_n of_o 8._o 〈◊〉_d and_o happy_a memory_n gowern_v the_o roman_a church_n a_o cruel_a tempest_n of_o 〈◊〉_d rise_v out_o of_o the_o eastern_a part_n attempt_v to_o pollute_v and_o corrupt_v the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o that_o faith_n which_o have_v be_v commend_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o this_o 〈◊〉_d pope_n anastasius_n scotfree_a in_o a_o most_o plentiful_a poverty_n and_o in_o a_o apostolical_a care_n break_v the_o pestilent_a head_n and_o stop_v the_o hiss_a mouth_n of_o 〈◊〉_d hydra_n and_o because_o i_o fear_v yea_o i_o have_v hear_v say_v that_o the_o bud_v of_o this_o venomous_a plant_n do_v still_o live_v and_o springe_n up_o in_o some_o i_o think_v it_o my_o 〈◊〉_d to_o admonish_v thou_o in_o a_o devout_a zeal_n of_o charity_n that_o thou_o keep_v fast_o the_o faith_n of_o saint_n innocent_a his_o son_n and_o successor_n in_o the_o apostolical_a chair_n and_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o pope_n damasus_n i_o be_o chain_v in_o communion_n with_o 57_o thy_o blessedness_n that_o be_v with_o peter_n chair_n i_o know_v the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o that_o rock_n if_o any_o eat_v the_o lamb_n out_o of_o that_o house_n he_o be_v profane_a and_o a_o little_a after_o i_o know_v not_o vitalis_n i_o reject_v meletius_n i_o be_o ignorant_a of_o paulinus_n whosoever_o gather_v not_o with_o thou_o scatter_v that_o be_v to_o say_v whosoever_o be_v not_o of_o christ_n be_v of_o antichrist_n far_o then_o be_v he_o from_o holdinge_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o babylon_n and_o the_o pope_n for_o antichrist_n since_o he_o hold_v whosoever_o do_v not_o communicate_v with_o the_o pope_n for_o antichrist_n the_o three_o exposition_n be_v of_o they_o who_o interpret_v the_o allegorical_a babylon_n to_o be_v the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o turk_n who_o with_o its_o false_a prophet_n mahomet_n have_v possess_v all_o the_o city_n and_o particular_o those_o of_o the_o seven_o church_n of_o asia_n to_o which_o s._n john_n address_v his_o revelation_n and_o which_o have_v give_v up_o her_o soul_n to_o the_o perish_a beast_n that_o be_v to_o say_v have_v again_o take_v the_o office_n and_o rank_n of_o the_o pagan_a emperor_n blasphmer_n and_o persecutor_n of_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o have_v usurp_v the_o seat_n whither_o their_o succession_n have_v be_v transfer_v to_o wit_n constantinople_n and_o who_o be_v clothe_v with_o purple_a that_o be_v have_v the_o imperial_a power_n and_o authority_n who_o symbol_n in_o saint_n johns_n time_n be_v purple_a and_o which_o be_v seat_v be_v it_o literal_o upon_o seven_o mountain_n for_o constantinople_n have_v seven_o mountain_n as_o old_a rome_n have_v for_o modern_a rome_n have_v nine_o or_o be_v it_o accord_v to_o the_o allegorical_a interpretation_n of_o saint_n john_n upon_o seven_o king_n that_o be_v to_o say_v upon_o the_o seven_o empire_n that_o follow_v the_o impiety_n of_o mahomett_n and_o in_o brief_a which_o have_v so_o many_o other_o affinity_n with_o the_o babylon_n in_o the_o revelation_n as_o oecolamp_n and_o bullinger_n be_v constrain_v to_o give_v she_o two_o seat_n and_o con●●●●u●e_v two_o antichrist_n one_o in_o the_o west_n and_o a_o other_o in_o the_o east_n now_o 〈◊〉_d which_o of_o these_o exposition_n answer_v the_o precise_a intention_n of_o the_o author_n or_o 〈◊〉_d whether_o the_o perfect_a accomplishment_n of_o these_o thing_n be_v yet_o to_o come_v and_o shall_v be_v understand_v of_o a_o society_n which_o shall_v not_o arise_v till_o after_o the_o gospel_n have_v be_v actual_o preach_v to_o all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o world_n as_o all_o ancient_a writer_n be_v agree_v that_o the_o monarchy_n of_o antichrist_n which_o the_o protestant_n esteene_n to_o be_v one_o thing_n with_o the_o babylon_n of_o the_o revelation_n shall_v not_o come_v till_o after_o that_o time_n it_o be_v not_o here_o our_o purpose_n to_o examine_v but_o in_o sum_n that_o that_o babylon_n where_o of_o the_o revelation_n speak_v can_v be_v serious_o take_v for_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n the_o antithesis_fw-la that_o saint_n john_n make_v of_o babylon_n and_o jerusalem_n which_o teach_v we_o that_o as_o the_o jerusalem_n describe_v by_o the_o same_o revelation_n be_v not_o a_o local_a city_n so_o babylon_n describe_v by_o the_o same_o revelation_n be_v not_o a_o local_a and_o corporal_a city_n take_v from_o we_o all_o colour_n to_o believe_v it_o and_o therefore_o arethas_n who_o be_v a_o graecian_n 18._o and_o a_o schismatic_n as_o he_o be_v hold_v to_o be_v have_v have_v more_o interest_n to_o interpret_v this_o passage_n of_o rome_n resolve_v in_o the_o end_n that_o it_o can_v be_v understand_v neither_o of_o rome_n nor_o of_o constantinople_n but_o of_o the_o state_n of_o this_o corruptible_a world_n it_o appear_v say_v he_o undoubtlie_o by_o this_o place_n that_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v here_o foretell_v shall_v neither_o be_v understand_v of_o babylon_n nor_o of_o old_a nor_o new_a rome_n that_o be_v constantinople_n nor_o of_o any_o other_o city_n but_o of_o all_o this_o corruptible_a world_n and_o that_o she_o may_v be_v take_v for_o a_o church_n which_o in_o the_o begin_v be_v a_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o since_o grow_v false_a and_o adulterate_a bear_v nevertheless_o still_o the_o title_n of_o a_o church_n the_o figure_n of_o babylon_n which_o be_v from_o the_o begin_v found_v by_o nimrod_n a_o pagan_a and_o infidel_n and_o after_o always_o persevere_v in_o paganism_n and_o in_o the_o open_a profession_n of_o infidelity_n till_o the_o fall_n of_o her_o empire_n can_v bear_v it_o contrariwise_o that_o which_o saint_n john_n say_v 13_o that_o all_o those_o who_o name_n be_v not_o write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n have_v worship_v the_o beast_n upon_o which_o the_o harlott_n sit_v seem_v to_o insinuate_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o society_n of_o all_o the_o reprobate_n of_o what_o soever_o sect_n religion_n and_o profession_n they_o have_v be_v as_o well_o jew_n gentile_n heretic_n schismatickes_n as_o evil_a catholic_n and_o not_o of_o any_o determinate_a communion_n yet_o we_o avow_v nevertheless_o that_o the_o father_n have_v sometime_n turn_v the_o word_n of_o isaiah_n and_o jeremy_n from_o whence_o those_o word_n of_o the_o revelation_n be_v take_v to_o make_v use_n of_o they_o against_o the_o particular_a sect_n of_o the_o arrian_n 〈◊〉_d as_o when_o osius_n and_o after_o he_o s._n athanas_n say_v the_o scripture_n cry_v out_o depart_z depart_v go_v out_o from_o she_o and_o touch_v not_o her_o uncleanness_n withdraw_v you_o from_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o separate_z yourselve_n from_o they_o you_o that_o carry_v the_o vessel_n of_o our_o lord_n but_o beside_o that_o they_o have_v never_o pretend_v that_o this_o precept_n shall_v be_v extend_v to_o all_o the_o multitude_n of_o christian_n and_o that_o there_o may_v come_v a_o time_n wherein_o there_o be_v no_o external_a communion_n visible_a and_o eminent_a out_o of_o which_o it_o shall_v be_v unlawful_a to_o go_v forth_o which_o be_v that_o which_o be_v in_o question_n there_o be_v great_a difference_n between_o the_o conceit_n &_o allusion_n that_o the_o father_n make_v upon_o the_o allegorical_a exposition_n of_o the_o passage_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o proper_a and_o direct_a understand_v of_o the_o same_o passage_n which_o be_v that_o only_a from_o whence_o we_o may_v argue_v serious_o and_o therefore_o when_o the_o donatist_n in_o the_o conference_n of_o carthage_n will_v have_v make_v use_n of_o the_o same_o word_n against_o the_o
apostasy_n to_o wit_n whether_o he_o mean_v the_o revolt_n of_o the_o people_n from_o the_o roman_a empire_n or_o the_o revolt_n of_o 〈◊〉_d christian_n from_o the_o religion_n of_o christ_n to_o that_o of_o mahomet_n or_o the_o revolt_n of_o the_o jew_n from_o under_o all_o the_o temporal_a principality_n within_o who_o estate_n they_o be_v disperse_v to_o reunite_v themselves_o in_o a_o new_a monarchy_n under_o their_o pretend_a messiah_n that_o be_v to_o say_v under_o antichrist_n as_o little_o will_v i_o stand_v to_o examine_v whether_o this_o temple_n of_o god_n wherein_o the_o son_n of_o perdition_n shall_v sit_v be_v to_o be_v understand_v by_o the_o material_a temple_n of_o jerusalem_n when_o antichrist_n shall_v have_v cause_v it_o to_o be_v re-edify_v as_o saint_n ireneus_n cont_n haeres_fw-la lib._n 5._o cap._n 30._o protest_v in_o these_o word_n when_o antichrist_n shall_v have_v lay_v desolate_a all_o thing_n here_o in_o this_o world_n and_o shall_v have_v reign_v three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a and_o shall_v be_v set_v in_o the_o temple_n at_o jerusalem_n than_o the_o lord_n shall_v come_v from_o heaven_n and_o as_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v gather_v from_o the_o relation_n of_o the_o speech_n of_o saint_n paul_n to_o those_o word_n of_o daniel_n speak_v of_o the_o jewish_a temple_n and_o cite_v by_o our_o lord_n upon_o the_o speech_n of_o the_o local_a temple_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o abomination_n 24_o of_o desolation_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o temple_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o ancient_a writer_n 〈◊〉_d note_v that_o julian_n the_o apostata_fw-la one_o of_o the_o figure_n of_o antichrist_n will_v have_v attempt_v to_o re-edify_v it_o or_o whether_o it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v by_o the_o jewish_a nation_n who_o god_n have_v first_o choose_v for_o his_o live_a temple_n in_o which_o 2_o antichrist_n shall_v place_v his_o throne_n follow_v this_o prophecy_n of_o our_o lord_n to_o 15._o the_o jew_n i_o be_o come_v in_o the_o name_n of_o my_o father_n and_o you_o have_v not_o receive_v i_o if_o a_o other_o come_v in_o his_o own_o name_n you_o will_v receive_v he_o or_o whether_o it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o nation_n heretofore_o christian_a in_o who_o temple_n now_o turn_v into_o mosquea_v now_o there_o mahomet_n the_o forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n sit_v and_o that_o one_o day_n shall_v join_v with_o the_o jew_n to_o receive_v antichrist_n it_o be_v sufficinet_n that_o all_o the_o father_n be_v agree_v upon_o two_o thing_n the_o one_o that_o antichrist_n 〈◊〉_d shall_v be_v the_o pretend_a christ_n and_o messiah_n of_o the_o jew_n antichrist_n say_v saint_n hilary_n shall_v be_v receive_v by_o the_o jew_n and_o saint_n cyrill_n of_o 15._o jerusalem_n say_v he_o shall_v deceive_v the_o jew_n as_o be_v the_o christ_n expect_v by_o they_o and_o saint_n jerom_n we_o know_v that_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v the_o christ_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o s._n 16._o chrysostome_n christ_n argue_v the_o imposture_n of_o the_o jew_n by_o the_o expectation_n of_o antichrist_n in_o that_o they_o not_o receive_v he_o that_o qualify_v himself_o as_o send_v from_o god_n 44._o and_o he_o that_o shall_v not_o acknowledge_v god_n but_o glorify_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o sovereign_a god_n they_o will_v adore_v and_o saint_n augustine_n christ_n by_o these_o word_n if_o a_o 29._o other_o come_v in_o his_o own_o name_n you_o will_v receive_v he_o signify_v that_o the_o jew_n shall_v receive_v 105._o antichrist_n and_o again_o the_o jew_n shall_v fall_v into_o his_o net_n of_o who_o our_o lord_n have_v say_v i_o be_o come_v in_o my_o father_n name_n and_o you_o have_v not_o receive_v i_o a_o other_o shall_v come_v in_o his_o own_o name_n and_o you_o shall_v receive_v he_o and_o of_o who_o the_o apostle_n write_v that_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o son_n of_o perdition_n shall_v be_v reveal_v who_o shall_v 3._o oppose_v and_o exalte_n himself_o above_o all_o that_o shall_v be_v call_v god_n and_o s._n cyrill_n of_o alexandria_n speak_v to_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o person_n of_o our_o lord_n you_o shall_v receive_v for_o as_o god_n i_o know_v all_o thing_n he_o that_o shall_v come_v under_o a_o self_n antich_n title_n and_o theodoret_n the_o jew_n which_o have_v crucify_v our_o lord_n because_o he_o call_v himself_o the_o son_n of_o god_n shall_v give_v credit_n to_o antichrist_n that_o shall_v call_v himself_o h_o the_o great_a god_n from_o whence_o it_o appear_v that_o neither_o antichrist_n shall_v take_v the_o title_n of_o a_o christian_a nor_o his_o faction_n the_o title_n of_o a_o church_n although_o they_o possess_v many_o people_n and_o nation_n which_o have_v before_o possess_v the_o name_n of_o a_o church_n since_o all_o the_o father_n agree_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v recein_v by_o the_o jew_n the_o other_o thing_n wherein_o the_o father_n agree_v be_v that_o this_o apostasy_n shall_v bring_v no_o interruption_n to_o the_o course_n and_o visible_a succession_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v it_o shall_v not_o hinder_v but_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v always_o a_o christian_a society_n illustrious_a and_o eminent_a above_o all_o false_a and_o pretend_a church_n from_o 70._o who_o communion_n it_o shall_v be_v forbid_v to_o depart_v as_o saint_n augustine_n declare_v in_o these_o word_n if_o the_o church_n shall_v not_o be_v here_o till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n why_o do_v christ_n say_v i_o be_o with_o you_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n speakeinge_v of_o the_o very_a comeinge_n of_o antichrist_n who_o reign_n he_o deem_v shall_v be_v but_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a let_v none_o imagine_v say_v he_o that_o that_o little_a while_n that_o the_o devil_n 8._o shall_v be_v unbounde_v there_o shall_v be_v no_o church_n upon_o the_o earth_n and_o short_o after_o disputinge_v whether_o while_o that_o short_a space_n of_o time_n last_v the_o devil_n shall_v be_v so_o unbound_v as_o that_o he_o shall_v hinder_v any_o from_o entere_v into_o the_o church_n either_o child_n by_o baptism_n or_o man_n by_o conversion_n but_o ibidem_fw-la say_v he_o we_o shall_v rather_o believe_v that_o even_o then_o there_o will_v not_o want_v people_n both_o to_o go_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o come_v into_o the_o church_n for_o certain_o both_o father_n will_v be_v so_o courageous_a as_o to_o give_v baptism_n to_o their_o child_n and_o those_o that_o then_o begin_v first_o to_o believe_v will_v be_v so_o constant_a as_o they_o will_v conquer_v this_o strong_a one_o even_o although_o he_o be_v unbound_v whereby_o he_o show_v plain_o that_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o a_o church_n hide_a and_o unknown_a but_o of_o a_o church_n visible_a and_o expose_v to_o the_o eye_n and_o knowledge_n of_o man_n the_o sowrth_a objection_n be_v that_o the_o woman_n that_o have_v bring_v forth_o he_o that_o aught_o to_o rule_v the_o nation_n flee_v into_o the_o wilderness_n and_o again_o that_o two_o wing_n of_o a_o 12._o great_a eagle_n be_v give_v to_o the_o woman_n to_o fly_v into_o the_o wilderness_n for_o these_o two_o retreat_n into_o the_o wilderness_n be_v but_o one_o retreat_n repeat_v by_o two_o several_a description_n between_o the_o which_o be_v insert_v the_o fall_n of_o the_o devil_n to_o show_v the_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o revenge_n that_o he_o will_v have_v exercise_v upon_o the_o woman_n from_o this_o retreat_n than_o they_o conclude_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v then_o be_v invisible_a but_o beside_o that_o the_o same_o answer_n already_o propound_v against_o the_o argument_n which_o be_v draw_v from_o the_o allegorical_a exposition_n of_o the_o revelation_n be_v alsoe_o of_o force_n against_o this_o allegation_n what_o shall_v hinder_v we_o from_o interpretinge_v this_o passage_n with_o saint_n augv_n 4._o of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n who_o bring_v forth_o he_o that_o aught_o to_o rule_v the_o nation_n and_o who_o be_v describe_v crown_v with_o star_n because_o she_o be_v descend_v 37._o from_o the_o race_n of_o the_o twelve_o patriarch_n who_o in_o josephs_n dream_n be_v sigure_v by_o ste_v star_n and_o who_o be_v represent_v environ_v by_o the_o sun_n because_o according_a to_o the_o translation_n of_o the_o seventie_o which_o be_v that_o the_o apostle_n have_v follow_v the_o psalmist_n sing_v he_o have_v pitch_v his_o tabernacle_n 18._o in_o the_o sun_n and_o who_o shall_v hinder_v we_o from_o say_v the_o wilderness_n whither_o she_o fly_v be_v heaven_n into_o which_o she_o be_v assume_v after_o her_o death_n which_o the_o grecian_n call_v wilderness_n because_o it_o be_v exempt_a from_o all_o generation_n wherefore_o pindarus_n call_v the_o heaven_n a_o desert_n or_o wilderness_n in_o these_o verse_n if_o thou_o of_o combat_n honour_n mean_v to_o singe_v seek_v not_o when_o day_n on_o the_o horizon_n stay_v a_o
schismatickes_n but_o alsoe_o heretic_n thou_o be_v say_v he_o to_o gaudentius_n both_o a_o schismatic_n by_o sacrilegious_a dissension_n and_o a_o heretic_n 3._o by_o sacrilegious_a doctrine_n but_o the_o principal_a difference_n that_o we_o observe_v be_v that_o all_o call_v those_o that_o have_v begin_v with_o dissension_n in_o faith_n and_o to_o who_o schism_n have_v but_o the_o place_n of_o a_o accessary_n heretic_n and_o those_o that_o have_v begin_v with_o schism_n and_o to_o who_o heresy_n be_v come_v accessory_o after_o the_o schism_n as_o the_o fever_n after_o the_o wound_n schismatickes_n of_o the_o agreement_n of_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n with_o the_o modern_a chap._n xviii_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n and_o here_o most_o illustrious_a cardinal_n his_o majesty_n require_v from_o you_o that_o you_o will_v represent_v to_o yourself_o how_o great_a difference_n there_o be_v between_o saint_n augustins_n time_n and_o this_o of_o we_o how_o the_o face_n and_o all_o the_o exterior_a form_n of_o the_o church_n to_o say_v nothing_o of_o the_o interior_a be_v change_v the_o reply_n this_o be_v the_o request_n that_o i_o will_v myself_o most_o humble_o make_v to_o his_o majesty_n to_o wit_n to_o set_v before_o his_o eye_n the_o estate_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o saint_n augustine_n and_o of_o the_o four_o first_o counsel_n follow_v a_o church_n that_o believe_v a_o the_o true_a and_o real_a presence_n and_o the_o oral_a manducation_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n under_o the_o kind_n and_o within_o the_o sacramental_a kind_n as_o zuinglius_fw-la the_o principal_a patriarch_n of_o the_o sacramentary_n acknowledge_v himself_o in_o these_o word_n euch._n from_o the_o time_n of_o saint_n augustine_n that_o be_v 1200._o year_n ago_o the_o opinion_n of_o corporal_a flesh_n have_v already_o get_v the_o mastery_n a_o church_n that_o in_o this_o quality_n 5._o adore_v the_o eucharist_n not_o only_o with_o thought_n and_o inward_a devotion_n but_o with_o outward_a gesture_n and_o adoration_n actual_o real_o and_o substantial_o the_o true_a and_o proper_a body_n of_o christ._n for_o i_o will_v not_o speak_v now_o of_o 24._o transubstantiation_n for_o which_o i_o reserve_v a_o treatise_n apart_o a_o church_n that_o believe_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n 9_o even_o beside_o the_o use_n 8._o and_o for_o this_o cause_n keep_v it_o after_o consecration_n 〈◊〉_d for_o domestical_a communion_n 7._o to_o give_v to_o sick_a person_n 〈◊〉_d to_o carry_v upon_o the_o sea_n 5_o to_o send_v into_o far_a province_n a_o church_n that_o believe_v kind_n that_o the_o communion_n under_o both_o kind_n be_v not_o necessary_a for_o the_o integrity_n of_o participation_n but_o that_o all_o the_o body_n and_o all_o the_o blood_n be_v take_v in_o either_o kind_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n allege_a in_o domestical_a communion_n in_o communion_n for_o child_n in_o communion_n for_o sick_a person_n in_o communion_n by_o sea_n in_o communion_n of_o penitentes_fw-la at_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n in_o communion_n send_v into_o far_a province_n they_o distribute_v it_o under_o one_o kind_n a_o church_n that_o believe_v that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v 63._o a_o true_a full_a and_o entire_a sacrifice_n 〈◊〉_d it_o alone_o succeedinge_v all_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o law_n 32._o the_o new_a oblation_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n 21._o the_o external_a worship_n of_o latria_fw-la of_o the_o christian_n and_o not_o only_o a_o eucharistiall_a sacrifice_n but_o alsoe_o a_o 8._o sacrifice_n propitiatory_a by_o application_n of_o that_o of_o the_o cross_n and_o in_o this_o quality_n offer_v it_o as_o well_o for_o the_o absent_a as_o for_o the_o present_a aswell_o for_o the_o communicantes_fw-la as_o for_o the_o non-communicantes_a as_o well_o for_o the_o live_n 41._o as_o for_o the_o dead_a a_o church_n that_o for_o the_o oblation_n of_o this_o sacrifice_n use_v altar_n both_o of_o wood_n and_o baptis_fw-la stone_n sup_n erect_v and_o dedicate_v to_o god_n in_o memory_n of_o the_o martyr_n and_o consecrate_v they_o by_o certain_a form_n of_o word_n and_o ceremony_n and_o among_o other_o by_o the_o in_o shrivinge_n their_o relic_n a_o church_n wherein_o the_o faithful_a make_v voyage_n and_o pilgrimage_n martyr_n to_o the_o body_n of_o the_o say_a martyr_n to_o be_v supra_fw-la associate_v to_o their_o merit_n and_o help_v by_o their_o intercession_n pray_v the_o holy_a martyr_n 10._o to_o pray_v to_o god_n for_o they_o 88_o celebrate_v their_o feast_n 17._o reverence_v their_o relic_n vigil_n make_v use_v of_o they_o to_o exorcise_v evil_a spirit_n 〈◊〉_d kiss_v they_o 8._o cause_v they_o to_o be_v touch_v with_o flower_n vigil_n carry_v they_o in_o clothes_n of_o silk_n and_o in_o vessel_n of_o gold_n 26_o prostrate_v themselves_o before_o their_o shrine_n vigil_n offer_a sacrifice_n to_o god_n upon_o their_o tomb_n 26._o touch_v the_o grate_n of_o the_o place_n where_o their_o relic_n be_v keep_v vigil_n take_v and_o esteem_v the_o dust_n from_o under_o their_o relickarye_n and_o go_v to_o pray_v to_o the_o martyr_n not_o only_o for_o spiritual_a health_n 〈◊〉_d but_o for_o the_o health_n and_o temporal_a prosperity_n of_o their_o family_n theod._n carry_v their_o child_n yea_o their_o sick_a cattle_n to_o be_v heal_v and_o when_o they_o have_v receive_v some_o help_n from_o god_n by_o the_o intercession_n of_o the_o say_a martyr_n super_fw-la hang_v up_o in_o the_o temple_n and_o upon_o the_o altar_n erect_v to_o their_o memory_n for_o tribute_n and_o memorial_n of_o the_o obtayninge_v of_o their_o vow_n image_n of_o gold_n and_o silver_n of_o those_o part_n of_o their_o body_n that_o have_v be_v heal_v and_o when_o the_o godly_a and_o learned_a bishop_n of_o the_o ancient_a time_n report_v these_o thing_n they_o celebrate_v and_o exalt_v they_o 6._o as_o so_o many_o beam_n flash_n and_o triumph_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o christ._n a_o church_n which_o hold_v 6._o the_o apostolical_a tradition_n not_o write_v but_o consign_v viva_fw-la voce_fw-mi and_o by_o the_o visible_a and_o ocular_a practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o their_o successor_n to_o be_v equal_a to_o the_o apostolical_a write_n and_o hold_v for_o apostolical_a tradion_n all_o the_o self_n same_o thing_n that_o we_o acknowledge_v and_o embrace_v in_o the_o quality_n of_o apostolical_a tradition_n a_o church_n that_o offer_v prayer_n both_o private_a and_o public_a 9_o for_o the_o dead_a to_o the_o end_n to_o game_n ease_n and_o rest_n for_o they_o and_o to_o obtain_v that_o god_n will_v use_v they_o more_o merciful_o than_o their_o sin_n deserve_v and_o hold_v this_o custom_n for_o a_o thing_n 〈◊〉_d necessary_a for_o the_o refreshinge_v of_o their_o soul_n 3_o and_o for_o a_o doctrine_n of_o apostolical_a tradition_n and_o place_v 53_o those_o that_o observe_v it_o not_o in_o the_o cataloge_n of_o heretic_n a_o church_n that_o hold_v the_o fast_o of_o the_o 40._o day_n of_o lent_n for_o a_o custom_n 54_o not_o free_a and_o voluntary_a but_o necessary_a and_o of_o apostolical_a tradition_n anaceph_n and_o reckon_v among_o heretic_n those_o that_o observe_v it_o not_o and_o during_o the_o time_n of_o lent_n as_o in_o a_o general_a mourninge_v of_o christian_n 52._o forbadd_a the_o celebration_n of_o wedding_n and_o the_o solemnisation_n of_o marriage_n a_o church_n that_o out_o of_o pentecost_n hold_v the_o fast_a of_o all_o the_o friday_n in_o the_o year_n in_o memory_n of_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n except_o christmas_n day_n fall_v upon_o one_o compend_n which_o she_o except_v namely_o as_o a_o apostolical_a tradition_n for_o i_o speak_v not_o of_o wednesday_n supply_v in_o the_o west_n by_o satturdaies_n a_o church_n that_o hold_v the_o other_o interdiction_n make_v to_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n to_o marry_v after_o their_o promotion_n for_o a_o thing_n necessary_a and_o of_o apostolical_a tradition_n a_o church_n that_o hold_v 61._o marriage_n after_o the_o vow_n of_o virginity_n a_o sin_n and_o that_o by_o apostolical_a tradition_n 1_o and_o repute_v religious_a man_n and_o religious_a weeman_n that_o marry_v after_o the_o solemn_a vow_n of_o single_a life_n not_o only_o for_o adulterer_n but_o for_o incestuous_a person_n a_o church_n that_o hold_v the_o l_o minglinge_v of_o water_n with_o wine_n in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o eucharist_n for_o a_o thing_n necessary_a and_o of_o divine_a and_o apostolical_a tradition_n a_o church_n that_o hold_v the_o 40_o exorcism_n exsufflation_n and_o renunciation_n which_o be_v make_v in_o baptism_n for_o sacred_a ceremony_n and_o of_o apostolical_a tradition_n a_o church_n that_o beside_o baptism_n and_o the_o eucharist_n which_o be_v the_o two_o initiatinge-sacramentes_a of_o christian_a religion_n hold_v 4._o confirmation_n make_v with_o the_o chrism_n and_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n 〈◊〉_d and_o allow_v only_o to_o bishop_n the_o power_n
to_o confer_v it_o 〈◊〉_d marriage_n for_o a_o true_a and_o proper_a sacrament_n 〈◊〉_d penance_n for_o a_o true_a and_o proper_a sacrament_n 〈◊〉_d and_o vocal_a confession_n to_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n for_o one_o of_o the_o condition_n 24._o necessary_a to_o this_o sacrament_n 8_o order_n for_o a_o true_a and_o proper_a sacrament_n and_o extreme_a onction_n for_o a_o true_a and_o proper_a sacrament_n which_o be_v the_o seven_o sacrament_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n acknowledge_v and_o 7._o the_o greek_a communion_n alsoe_o make_v profession_n to_o embrace_v with_o us._n a_o church_n which_o in_o the_o ceremony_n of_o baptism_n use_v 70._o oil_n 5._o salt_n bapt_v wax_n light_n 101_o exorcism_n 8._o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n 1_o the_o word_n epheta_n and_o other_o thing_n that_o accompany_v it_o to_o testify_v by_o oil_n that_o in_o baptism_n we_o be_v make_v christian_n that_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o unction_n of_o christ_n by_o salt_n that_o god_n contract_v with_o we_o in_o baptism_n a_o alliance_n for_o ever_o follow_v the_o stile_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o call_v eternal_a alliance_n alliance_n of_o salt_n by_o the_o light_n that_o christ_n be_v the_o light_n that_o enlighten_v all_o man_n commeinge_v into_o the_o world_n 205._o by_o exorcism_n that_o baptism_n put_v we_o out_o of_o the_o devil_n possession_n 8_o by_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n that_o it_o be_v the_o death_n of_o christ_n that_o give_v strength_n to_o all_o sacrament_n 1._o by_o the_o word_n epheta_n that_o god_n accomplish_v spiritual_o in_o we_o by_o baptism_n what_o he_o wrought_v corporal_o in_o the_o deaf_a and_o dumb_a man_n a_o church_n that_o esteem_a baptism_n for_o person_n of_o full_a age_n necessary_a with_o a_o conditional_a necessity_n 15._o and_o for_o child_n necessary_a with_o a_o absolute_a necessity_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n permit_v bapt_a lay_v man_n to_o baptise_v in_o danger_n of_o death_n a_o church_n that_o use_v holy_a water_n consecrate_v by_o certain_a word_n and_o ceremony_n and_o make_v use_v of_o it_o 27._o both_o for_o baptism_n 30_o and_o against_o enchantment_n 23._o and_o to_o make_v exorcism_n and_o conjuration_n against_o evil_a spirit_n fron_n whence_o it_o be_v that_o 71._o s._n gregory_n the_o great_a who_o though_o he_o be_v after_o the_o first_o four_o counsel_n yet_o not_o to_o be_v except_v against_o by_o english_a man_n who_o take_v the_o original_n of_o their_o mission_n from_o he_o ordain_v when_o englad_n return_v back_o from_o paganism_n to_o christian_a religion_n that_o the_o temple_n shall_v not_o be_v demolish_v but_o expiate_v by_o the_o sprinkle_n of_o holy_a water_n a_o church_n that_o in_o the_o oeconomy_n of_o ecclesiastical_a ministry_n hold_v diverse_a degree_n 3._o the_o bishop_n the_o priest_n the_o deacon_n the_o acolite_a the_o exorcist_n the_o reader_n and_o the_o porter_n and_o consecrate_v and_o bless_v they_o with_o diverse_a form_n and_o ceremony_n and_o in_o the_o order_n episcopal_a acknowledge_v diverse_a seat_n of_o iurisdictino_fw-la of_o positive_a right_n to_o wit_n archbishop_n primate_fw-la patriarch_n leon_n and_o one_o supereminent_a by_o divine_a law_n which_o be_v the_o pope_n without_o who_o nothing_o can_v be_v decide_v appertain_v to_o the_o universal_a church_n &_o the_o want_n of_o who_o presence_n either_o by_o himself_o or_o by_o his_o legate_n 10_o or_o his_o confirmation_n make_v all_o counsel_n pretend_v to_o be_v universal_a unlawful_a a_o church_n which_o hold_v a_o 11._o succession_n of_o bishop_n not_o interrupt_v since_o the_o first_o mission_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o a_o essential_a condition_n of_o she_o &_o repute_v those_o who_o have_v it_o not_o or_o that_o communicate_v with_o those_o that_o have_v it_o not_o for_o schismatic_o and_o cull_v pable_z of_o the_o same_o curse_n with_o core_n dathan_n and_o 〈◊〉_d a_o church_n that_o hold_v the_o distinction_n of_o bishop_n and_o priest_n and_o namely_o in_o the_o act_n of_o ordination_n for_o a_o thing_n of_o divine_a law_n fine_a and_o apostolical_a tradition_n 53._o and_o condemn_v as_o heretic_n those_o that_o hold_v it_o not_o a_o church_n 46._o that_o hold_v free_a will_n for_o a_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n &_o reveal_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 76._o that_o hold_v that_o faith_n only_o without_o evangelicall_a work_n be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o salvation_n impo_n that_o wicked_a man_n persevere_v to_o the_o end_n be_v reprobate_n but_o not_o predestinate_a to_o evil_a 13._o that_o the_o certainty_n that_o particular_a man_n presume_v to_o have_v of_o their_o predestination_n be_v a_o rash_a boldness_n a_o church_n wherein_o their_o service_n be_v say_v throughout_o the_o east_n in_o greek_a and_o through_o the_o west_n aswell_o in_o africa_n as_o in_o europe_n 〈◊〉_d in_o latin_a although_o that_o in_o none_o of_o the_o province_n neither_o of_o europe_n nor_o africa_n except_o in_o italy_n &_o in_o the_o city_n where_o the_o roman_a colony_n reside_v the_o latin_a be_v understand_v by_o the_o simple_a people_n but_o only_o by_o the_o learned_a in_o brief_a a_o church_n that_o use_v either_o in_o gender_n or_o in_o species_n either_o inform_v or_o in_o analogy_n the_o very_a same_o ceremony_n which_o be_v the_o word_n well_o know_v the_o all_o man_n which_o the_o catholic_n use_v universal_o at_o this_o 〈◊〉_d 88_o observe_v the_o distinctino_fw-it of_o the_o feast_n and_o ordinary_a day_n the_o distinction_n 27_o of_o ecclesiastical_a and_o lay_v habit_n 1._o the_o reverence_n of_o sacred_a vessel_n the_o custom_n 4._o of_o shave_v 1._o and_o unction_n for_o the_o collation_n of_o order_n the_o ceremony_n of_o 5._o wash_v their_o hand_n at_o the_o altar_n before_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o mystery_n 19_o the_o kiss_n of_o peace_n before_o the_o 〈◊〉_d ibid._n pronounce_v a_o part_n of_o the_o service_n at_o the_o altar_n with_o a_o low_a voice_n and_o wheard_n 8._o make_v procession_n with_o the_o relic_n of_o the_o martyr_n accompany_v the_o dead_a to_o their_o 〈◊〉_d with_o 2._o wax_n taper_n in_o sign_n of_o joy_n and_o future_a certainty_n of_o their_o resurrection_n have_v the_o picture_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o saînt_n both_o 3_o out_o of_o church_n and_o theod_n in_o church_n and_o cassian_n upon_o the_o very_a altar_n of_o martyr_n not_o to_o adore_v they_o as_o adoration_n signify_v di_o nine_o worship_n but_o to_o reverence_v by_o they_o the_o soldier_n and_o champion_n of_o christ_n milit_fw-la use_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n in_o all_o their_o conversation_n 2._o imprint_v it_o on_o the_o forehead_n of_o their_o catechumenist_n 6._o paint_v it_o on_o the_o portal_n of_o all_o the_o house_n of_o the_o faithful_a hil._n give_v the_o blessing_n to_o the_o people_n with_o their_o hand_n by_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n 〈◊〉_d employ_v it_o to_o drive_v away_o evil_a spirit_n 11._o propose_v in_o jerusalem_fw-la the_o very_a cross_n to_o be_v adore_v on_o good_a friday_n 〈◊〉_d use_v incense_n in_o their_o synax_n not_o particular_o incense_v of_o arabia_n but_o indifferent_o odoriferous_a gum_n for_o they_o hold_v not_o incense_v for_o sacrifice_v as_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n but_o for_o a_o simple_a ceremony_n design_v to_o represent_v the_o effect_n of_o prayer_n describe_v by_o these_o word_n of_o david_n let_v my_o prayer_n arise_v even_o as_o incense_v into_o thy_o presence_n and_o 〈◊〉_d by_o these_o of_o the_o revelation_n the_o smoke_n of_o the_o incense_n of_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o saint_n ascend_v from_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o angel_n before_o god_n and_o final_o a_o church_n which_o hold_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v the_o infallible_a promise_n that_o she_o shall_v be_v 〈◊〉_d perpetual_o visible_a and_o eminent_a in_o her_o communion_n perpetual_o pure_a and_o uncorrupted_a in_o her_o doctrine_n and_o in_o her_o sacrament_n and_o perpetual_o bind_v and_o continue_v in_o the_o succession_n of_o her_o ministry_n and_o that_o 6._o to_o she_o only_o belong_v the_o keep_n of_o the_o apostolical_a tradition_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o decision_n of_o controversy_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o out_o of_o the_o succession_n 16._o of_o her_o communion_n 38_o of_o her_o doctrine_n 37._o and_o of_o her_o ministry_n there_o be_v neither_o church_n nor_o salvation_n behold_v what_o the_o excellent_a king_n when_o it_o shall_v please_v he_o to_o consider_v it_o at_o sufficient_a leisure_n shall_v find_v the_o catholic_a church_n to_o have_v be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o saint_n aug._n and_o of_o the_o 4_o first_o council_n let_v his_o majesty_n see_v whether_o by_o these_o feature_n he_o can_v know_v the_o face_n of_o caluines_n church_n or_o of_o we_o of_o the_o conformity_n or_o inconformitie_n of_o the_o sense_n wherein_o the_o word_n catholic_a have_v be_v common_a to_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n and_o to_o the_o modern_a
many_o call_v it_o in_o question_n yet_o as_o for_o he_o 2_o 〈◊〉_d reject_v it_o not_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n surname_v 〈◊〉_d hold_v long_o after_o condemn_v it_o and_o photius_n the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n yet_o 113._o late_a say_v it_o can_v hardly_o be_v justify_v from_o arrianisme_n which_o make_v it_o to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o same_o write_n which_o bear_v that_o name_n in_o saint_n epiphanius_n 〈◊〉_d or_o that_o it_o have_v since_o be_v salsify_v by_o the_o arrian_n neither_o do_v that_o book_n 〈◊〉_d either_o express_o or_o equivalent_o that_o all_o bishop_n be_v in_o a_o sort_n ecumenical_a 14._o he_o say_v no_o more_o but_o this_o speakeinge_v collective_o to_o all_o bishop_n and_o not_o distributive_o to_o every_o bishop_n we_o write_v these_o thing_n for_o confirmation_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o you_o to_o who_o the_o episcopat_v be_v commit_v over_o all_o but_o if_o the_o have_v say_v it_o what_o can_v follow_v of_o that_o do_v not_o saint_n augustine_n say_v that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d all_o charge_n be_v common_a to_o all_o bishop_n and_o for_o all_o that_o do_v he_o forbear_v to_o protest_v in_o the_o same_o place_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v supereminent_a in_o a_o more_o high_a 〈◊〉_d as_o 〈◊〉_d say_v he_o cease_v not_o to_o roar_v about_o the_o pasture_n of_o our_o lord_n 〈◊〉_d and_o to_o seek_v every_o side_n for_o inletts_a to_o snatch_v away_o the_o sheep_n buy_v at_o so_o high_a a_o 〈◊〉_d and_o that_o to_o we_o all_o which_o exercise_n the_o office_n of_o bishop_n the_o pastor_n all_o charge_n be_v common_a although_o thou_o be_v 〈◊〉_d in_o a_o high_a degree_n and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n that_o 162_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n there_o have_v always_o flourish_v the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o apostolical_a chair_n of_o the_o comparison_n of_o the_o pope_n with_o other_o bishop_n chapt_n xxv_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n but_o then_o the_o ordinary_a 〈◊〉_d show_v that_o it_o be_v very_o true_a and_o a_o thousand_o example_n of_o history_n may_v yet_o easy_o demonstrate_v it_o the_o reply_n and_o wherefore_o then_o that_o we_o may_v begin_v this_o information_n in_o the_o 3._o age_n of_o saint_n 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v the_o first_o age_n after_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o end_v it_o in_o that_o of_o saint_n 〈◊〉_d the_o great_a who_o calvin_n will_v have_v to_o be_v the_o 〈◊〉_d true_a and_o lawful_a bishop_n of_o rome_n when_o saint_n ireneus_n dispute_v against_o the_o valentinian_o do_v he_o cry_v with_o the_o roman_a church_n because_o of_o a_o more_o powerful_a principality_n that_o be_v because_o of_o the_o principality_n of_o the_o apostolical_a sea_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d shall_v agree_v for_o that_o by_o this_o more_o powerful_a principality_n saint_n ireneus_n mean_v not_o the_o 〈◊〉_d principality_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n but_o a_o other_o more_o powerful_a principality_n to_o 〈◊〉_d the_o spiritual_a principality_n of_o the_o apostolical_a sea_n we_o have_v 〈◊〉_d both_o from_o the_o same_o saint_n ireneus_n who_o in_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d period_n call_v the_o roman_a church_n the_o great_a and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d rome_n 〈◊〉_d the_o two_o most_o glorious_a apostle_n 〈◊〉_d and_o paul_n and_o from_o saint_n augustine_n who_o say_v in_o the_o roman_a 〈◊〉_d have_v 〈◊〉_d always_o flourish_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o apostolical_a seat_n and_o from_o saint_n prosper_n saint_n 〈◊〉_d second_o soul_n who_o write_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 6._o of_o the_o apostolical_a 〈◊〉_d have_v add_v more_o greatness_n to_o rome_n by_o the_o tribunal_n of_o religion_n then_o by_o that_o of_o the_o empire_n and_o why_o then_o when_o victor_n have_v excommunicate_v the_o church_n of_o asia_n the_o lesser_a upon_o the_o question_n of_o easter_n day_n which_o they_o observe_v not_o according_a to_o the_o universal_a tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o according_a to_o a_o local_a and_o particular_a tradition_n which_o have_v be_v institute_v for_o a_o time_n in_o their_o province_n do_v not_o the_o same_o saint_n ireneus_n reproach_n to_o he_o that_o he_o can_v not_o do_v it_o and_o that_o he_o have_v no_o more_o power_n to_o cast_v they_o out_o of_o the_o church_n than_o the_o other_o bishop_n only_o admonish_v he_o as_o it_o shall_v appear_v hereafter_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o for_o so_o small_a a_o matter_n cut_v of_o so_o many_o and_o so_o great_a 42._o church_n he_o exhort_v he_o say_v eusebius_n not_o to_o cut_v of_o all_o the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o hold_v the_o tradition_n of_o this_o ancient_a custom_n and_o ruffinus_n translatinge_v ibid._n eusebius_n he_o reprehend_v he_o say_v he_o to_o have_v do_v 〈◊〉_d to_o cut_v from_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o body_n so_o many_o and_o so_o great_a church_n for_o as_o for_o the_o slander_n wherewith_o eusebius_n and_o ruffinus_n heretical_a author_n the_o one_o a_o arrian_n and_o the_o other_o a_o origenist_n both_o enemy_n to_o the_o roman_a 42._o church_n do_v poison_n this_o history_n they_o shall_v be_v answer_v hereafter_o and_o it_o shall_v be_v show_v that_o the_o censure_n of_o victor_n be_v so_o just_a that_o it_o be_v after_o follow_v by_o the_o ecumenical_a counsel_n of_o nicaea_n and_o ephesus_n and_o why_o then_o when_o tertullian_n priest_n of_o carthage_n in_o africa_n be_v fall_v into_o the_o heresy_n or_o rather_o frenzy_n of_o montanus_n do_v he_o write_v that_o praxeas_n 〈◊〉_d have_v enforce_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o do_v before_o acknowledge_v the_o prophecy_n of_o montanus_n prisca_n and_o maximilla_n and_o by_o this_o acknowledgement_n bring_v peace_n to_o the_o church_n of_o asia_n and_o phrigia_n to_o revoke_v his_o letter_n of_o peace_n already_o publish_v and_o cease_v to_o 〈◊〉_d the_o spiritual_a gift_n persuadinge_n he_o to_o believe_v false_a thing_n of_o these_o prophet_n and_o of_o their_o church_n and_o oppose_v to_o he_o the_o authority_n of_o his_o predecessor_n for_o the_o montanist_n of_o asia_n and_o phrigia_n have_v be_v excommunicate_v by_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n and_o metropolitan_o of_o their_o province_n what_o 16_o right_o can_v the_o pope_n have_v to_o receive_v they_o into_o his_o communion_n and_o to_o grante_v they_o peace_n if_o he_o be_v not_o head_n and_o superintendent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o principal_o according_a to_o the_o ancient_a ecclesiastical_a discipline_n which_o hold_v that_o no_o bishop_n except_o he_o be_v superior_a can_v receive_v to_o his_o communion_n those_o that_o have_v be_v execmmunicate_v by_o their_o 〈◊〉_d own_o catholic_a bishop_n and_o why_o then_o when_o the_o same_o tertullian_a declaim_v against_o the_o decree_n of_o pope_n zepherinus_n which_o ordain_v that_o adulterer_n have_v do_v penance_n 〈◊〉_d be_v receive_v into_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n do_v he_o call_v he_o though_o which_o a_o 〈◊〉_d and_o heretical_a scorn_n the_o great_a high_a priest_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n and_o the_o good_a 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o bless_a pope_n i_o hear_v say_v he_o that_o a_o edict_n have_v be_v propound_v 1._o and_o certain_o peremptory_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o great_a high_a priest_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n say_v i_o pardon_v the_o crime_n of_o adultery_n and_o 〈◊〉_d to_o those_o that_o have_v perform_v their_o penance_n and_o again_o thou_o do_v sweeten_v thy_o sermon_n with_o 15._o all_o the_o allurement_n of_o mercy_n that_o thou_o can_v good_a shepherd_n and_o bless_a pope_n and_o in_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o sheep_n thou_o seek_v thy_o goat_n and_o why_o then_o when_o the_o bless_a 52._o martyr_n cornelius_n have_v be_v create_v pope_n do_v saint_n cyprian_n say_v that_o the_o emperor_n decius_n bear_v with_o more_o patience_n to_o see_v a_o competitor_n arise_v in_o the_o 〈◊〉_d then_o to_o see_v a_o high_a priest_n of_o god_n constitute_v at_o rome_n or_o according_a to_o pamel_n the_o old_a and_o best_a copy_n they_o to_o see_v a_o high_a priest_n constitute_v his_o rival_n in_o rome_n allude_v to_o the_o two_o title_n that_o the_o pagan_a emperor_n assume_v the_o one_o of_o emperor_n and_o the_o other_o of_o high_a priest_n and_o compare_v the_o concurrence_n that_o the_o emperor_n receive_v in_o the_o quality_n of_o emperor_n hy_o the_o creation_n of_o a_o rival_n in_o his_o empire_n with_o the_o concurrence_n that_o he_o receive_v in_o the_o quality_n of_o high_a priest_n by_o the_o creation_n of_o a_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o wherefore_o do_v he_o call_v the_o 〈◊〉_d church_n the_o chair_n of_o peter_n and_o the_o principal_a church_n 55._o and_o the_o original_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d all_o unity_n they_o dare_v say_v he_o sail_v to_o rome_n and_o carry_v letter_n from_o profane_a and_o schismatical_a person_n to_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n and_o to_o the_o principal_a church_n from_o whence_o the_o sacerdot_n all_o unity_n
although_o the_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n forbid_v to_o rule_v the_o church_n without_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n 8._o and_o likewise_o zozomenus_n a_o greek_a author_n alsoe_o and_o of_o the_o same_o time_n with_o socrates_n julius_n say_v he_o reprehend_v they_o that_o they_o have_v secret_o and_o privy_o 9_o alter_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o for_o that_o against_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n they_o have_v not_o call_v he_o to_o the_o synod_n for_o there_o be_v a_o sacerdot_n all_o law_n which_o import_v that_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v without_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v invalid_a and_o why_o then_o when_o eusebius_n of_o nicomedia_n usurper_n of_o the_o bishopric_n of_o constantinople_n and_o firebrand_n of_o the_o arrian_n faction_n and_o the_o other_o arrian_n his_o complice_n see_v that_o the_o deposition_n of_o saint_n athanasius_n that_o they_o have_v pack_v in_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n be_v argue_v of_o nullity_n because_o the_o pope_n authority_n do_v not_o appear_v therein_o do_v they_o advise_v themselves_o to_o repair_v this_o defect_n to_o prevent_v the_o pope_n and_o to_o pray_v he_o to_o call_v the_o 11._o cause_n to_o his_o tribunal_n eusebius_n say_v socrates_n have_v do_v in_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n what_o he_o list_v send_v a_o ambassador_n to_o julius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n require_v he_o to_o be_v judge_n in_o the_o affair_n of_o athanas_n and_o to_o call_v the_o cause_n before_o he_o and_o this_o not_o after_o the_o voyage_n of_o s._n athanas_n to_o rome_n as_o socrates_n and_o sozomene_n and_o the_o protestant_n with_o they_o pretend_v but_o before_o as_o julius_n recite_v by_o s._n athanasius_n &_o saint_n athanasius_n himself_o and_o theodoret_n do_v writness_n athanasius_n say_v julius_n be_v 〈◊〉_d not_o come_v to_o rome_n of_o his_o own_o motion_n but_o have_v be_v call_v and_o have_v receive_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d from_o us._n and_o saint_n athanasius_n eusebius_n and_o his_o party_n write_v to_o rome_n that_o be_v to_o 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o pope_n they_o write_v alsoe_o to_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n and_o constant_a &_o c._n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o constantine_n emperor_n of_o the_o gaul_n who_o residence_n be_v at_o trever_n and_o to_o constant_a emperor_n of_o itali_fw-la and_o africa_n who_o residence_n be_v at_o millen_n but_o the_o emperor_n reject_v they_o and_o as_o for_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n he_o answer_v that_o we_o shall_v keep_v a_o council_n where_o we_o will_v and_o 2._o in_o a_o other_o place_n the_o eusebian_n write_v to_o julius_n and_o thinkinge_v to_o terrify_v we_o demand_v of_o he_o that_o he_o will_v call_v a_o council_n and_o that_o himself_o if_o he_o will_v shall_v be_v the_o judge_n thereof_o that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o demand_v either_o that_o the_o pope_n will_v keep_v a_o council_n out_o of_o rome_n in_o which_o the_o cause_n may_v be_v judge_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o legate_n or_o that_o he_o shall_v judge_v it_o himself_o 2._o at_o rome_n if_o he_o please_v and_o a_o while_n after_o but_o when_o they_o hear_v the_o news_n of_o our_o arrivull_a at_o rome_n they_o be_v trouble_v not_o expect_v our_o come_n thither_o and_o theodoret_n assoon_o as_o athanasius_n receive_v the_o citatior_fw-la from_o 4._o julius_n he_o transport_v himself_o in_o diligence_n to_o rome_n and_o why_o then_o when_o the_o same_o julius_n object_v to_o the_o arrian_n the_o enterprise_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n do_v he_o reproach_n they_o that_o against_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n they_o have_v depose_v saint_n athanasius_n in_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n without_o attend_v first_o for_o a_o decision_n from_o rome_n be_v you_o ignorant_a say_v pope_n julius_n in_o the_o second_o answer_n to_o the_o arrian_n 2._o recite_v by_o saint_n athanasius_n that_o the_o custom_n be_v that_o we_o shall_v be_v first_o write_v to_o and_o that_o from_o hence_o the_o just_a decision_n of_o thing_n shall_v proceed_v and_o therefore_o if_o there_o be_v any_o suspicion_n conceive_v against_o your_o bishop_n there_o you_o must_v have_v write_v to_o this_o church_n a_o manifest_a argument_n that_o the_o request_n that_o the_o arrian_n a_o while_n after_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n have_v make_v to_o the_o pope_n to_o fragm_n call_v the_o cause_n of_o athanasius_n before_o he_o and_o to_o call_v a_o council_n to_o 36._o judge_v it_o or_o to_o judge_v it_o himself_o if_o he_o will_v be_v no_o new_a attribution_n of_o jurisdiction_n to_o the_o pope_n as_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o church_n imagine_v but_o a_o truce_n of_o their_o rebellion_n to_o the_o pope_n jurisdiction_n for_o how_o can_v the_o pope_n have_v reproach_v to_o the_o arrian_n that_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n against_o the_o ancient_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n have_v depose_v saint_n athanasius_n without_o stayinge_v for_o a_o decision_n from_o rome_n if_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o have_v right_a to_o judge_v the_o cause_n of_o saint_n athanasius_n but_o since_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n and_o how_o can_v the_o arrian_n themselves_o have_v insert_v 15._o year_n after_o these_o word_n in_o the_o false_a letter_n that_o they_o inforce_v pope_n liberius_n to_o write_v against_o saint_n athanasius_n i_o have_v follow_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o ancient_n send_v on_o my_o behalf_n lucius_n paul_n and_o aehanus_fw-la priest_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n into_o alexandria_n to_o athanasius_n to_o cause_v he_o to_o come_v to_o rome_n that_o we_o may_v ordain_v himself_o be_v present_a upon_o his_o person_n what_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n exact_v if_o this_o right_n have_v be_v from_o the_o new_a attribution_n of_o the_o arrian_n and_o not_o from_o the_o ancient_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o even_o from_o that_o that_o julius_n new_o come_v from_o speak_v of_o for_o the_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o bless_a peter_n i_o do_v signify_v they_o to_o you_o but_o let_v we_o again_o go_v forward_o with_o our_o interrogatory_n and_o why_o then_o when_o the_o article_n of_o the_o eusebian_n against_o s._n athanasius_n be_v bring_v to_o rome_n do_v the_o pope_n upon_o the_o accusation_n of_o one_o of_o the_o party_n as_o the_o common_a judge_n adjourn_v or_o give_v they_o both_o a_o day_n and_o that_o follow_v 4._o the_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n julius_n say_v theodoret_n follow_v the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n commannd_v the_o eusebian_n to_o present_v themselves_o at_o rome_n and_o give_v assignation_n to_o the_o divine_a athanasius_n to_o appear_v in_o judgement_n and_o why_o then_o when_o those_o great_a prelate_n athanasius_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n paul_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n marcellus_n primate_n of_o 〈◊〉_d in_o galatia_n asclepas_n bishop_n of_o gaza_n in_o palestina_n lucius_n bishop_n of_o andrinopolis_n in_o thrace_n who_o have_v be_v accuse_v of_o diverse_a crime_n some_o secular_a as_o athanasius_n of_o the_o crime_n of_o manslanghter_n and_o rape_n and_o other_o ecclesiastical_a as_o the_o same_o athanasius_n to_o have_v cause_v a_o chalice_n to_o be_v break_v and_o asclepas_n to_o have_v overthrow_v a_o altar_n and_o have_v be_v depose_v from_o their_o seat_n by_o diverse_a counsel_n of_o thrace_n and_o of_o asia_n and_o have_v be_v hear_v at_o rome_n do_v the_o 15._o author_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n say_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n restore_v they_o forasmuch_o as_o to_o he_o because_o of_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o sea_n the_o care_n ibid._n of_o all_o thing_n appartain_v julius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n say_v socrates_n because_o 15_o of_o the_o privilege_n of_o his_o church_n arm_v they_o with_o courageous_a letter_n and_o send_v they_o back_o into_o the_o east_n and_o restore_v to_o each_o of_o they_o his_o place_n 〈◊〉_d rebukeinge_v those_o that_o have_v 〈◊〉_d depose_v they_o and_o sozomene_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v examine_v their_o 8._o complaint_n and_o find_v that_o they_o agree_v touchinge_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d receive_v they_o into_o his_o communion_n as_o conformable_a and_o of_o the_o same_o belief_n and_o because_o that_o to_o he_o for_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o sea_n the_o care_n of_o all_o thing_n belong_v he_o rester_v to_o every_o one_o of_o they_o his_o church_n for_o as_o for_o the_o out_o ragious_a letter_n that_o those_o 50._o of_o the_o east_n that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o it_o shall_v appear_v hereafter_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o patriarckship_n of_o antioch_n and_o their_o complice_n who_o be_v arrian_n write_v against_o julius_n in_o hate_n because_o he_o have_v break_v their_o council_n and_o restore_v saint_n athanasius_n i_o mean_v to_o confute_v they_o particular_o in_o a_o other_o place_n it_o shall_v suffice_v now_o that_o i_o say_v two_o thing_n one_o
of_o alexandria_n ibid_fw-la do_v saint_n ambrose_n write_v to_o he_o that_o he_o shall_v after_o he_o have_v judge_v it_o procure_v his_o judgement_n to_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n certain_o say_v he_o we_o conceive_v that_o you_o shall_v relate_v the_o affair_n to_o our_o holy_a brother_n the_o bishop_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o we_o presume_v that_o you_o will_v make_v no_o judgement_n that_o can_v displease_v he_o and_o a_o little_a after_o to_o the_o end_n that_o we_o have_v receive_v the_o tenor_n of_o your_o act_n when_o we_o shall_v see_v that_o you_o have_v judge_v so_o as_o the_o roman_a church_n will_v undouted_o approve_v it_o we_o may_v reap_v with_o joy_n the_o fruit_n of_o your_o examination_n and_o why_o then_o when_o it_o appear_v that_o evagrius_n successor_n to_o paulinus_n have_v be_v evil_o ordain_v for_o as_o much_o as_o paulinus_n only_o have_v impose_v his_o hand_n upon_o he_o and_o that_o flavianus_n by_o this_o occasion_n remain_v without_o a_o competitor_n do_v theophilus_n send_v a_o legation_n to_o rome_n to_o put_v flavianus_n again_o into_o the_o pope_n grace_n and_o flavianus_n a_o other_o to_o obtain_v the_o 15._o restitution_n of_o communion_n with_o the_o pope_n theophilus_n say_v socrates_n have_v send_v the_o priest_n i_o sidoru_v appease_v damasus_n you_o must_v read_v anastasius_n that_o be_v offend_v and_o represent_v to_o he_o that_o it_o be_v profitable_a for_o the_o concord_n of_o the_o people_n to_o forget_v the_o fault_n of_o flavianus_n and_o so_o the_o communion_n be_v restore_v to_o flavianus_n the_o faction_n of_o the_o people_n of_o antioch_n a_o while_n after_o that_o be_v to_o say_v under_o pope_n innocent_a the_o first_o be_v reconcile_v and_o sozomene_n speak_v of_o saint_n john_n chsostome_n archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n who_o have_v a_o little_a before_o be_v a_o priest_n of_o flavianus_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n affect_v he_o john_n say_v 3._o he_o pray_v theophilus_n to_o labour_v with_o he_o and_o to_o help_v he_o to_o make_v the_o bishop_n os_fw-la of_o rome_n to_o be_v propitious_a to_o flavianus_n and_o to_o this_o end_n there_o be_v depute_v acacius_n bishop_n of_o beroe_n and_o isidorus_n and_o theodoret_n although_o for_o his_o partiality_n he_o be_v not_o altogether_o to_o be_v credit_v in_o this_o cause_n speak_v of_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_fw-la his_o voyage_n to_o rome_n the_o emperor_n say_v he_o exhort_v 23_o they_o to_o extinguish_v this_o unprofitable_a contention_n for_o you_o must_v read_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o represent_v to_o they_o that_o paulinus_n be_v already_o dead_a 24._o and_o that_o euagrius_n come_v not_o by_o lawful_a mean_n to_o the_o prelacye_n and_o a_o little_a after_o then_o upon_o the_o exhortation_n of_o the_o emperor_n those_o of_o the_o west_n promise_v to_o lay_v aside_o all_o 23._o bitterness_n and_o to_o receive_v the_o ambassador_n that_o flavianus_n shall_v send_v which_o the_o divine_a flavianus_n have_v learn_v he_o send_v to_o rome_n a_o legation_n of_o most_o famous_a bishop_n and_o priest_n and_o deacon_n of_o antioch_n for_o all_o which_o the_o chief_a be_v acacius_n bishop_n of_o 〈◊〉_d in_o syria_n renown_v through_o all_o part_n of_o sea_n and_o land_n but_o here_o be_v too_o much_o of_o this_o history_n let_v we_o pass_v on_o to_o the_o rest_n and_o why_o then_o when_o saint_n ambrose_n archbishop_n of_o milan_n a_o city_n where_o the_o emperor_n of_o the_o west_n make_v their_o residence_n speak_v of_o his_o brother_n satyrus_n do_v he_o say_v that_o when_o he_o have_v escape_v shipwreck_n and_o be_v cast_v upon_o the_o isle_n of_o sardinia_n he_o inquire_v of_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o 〈◊〉_d place_n whether_o he_o agree_v with_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o himself_o add_v with_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o why_o then_o when_o he_o excuse_v the_o custom_n of_o wash_v of_o foot_n which_o be_v practise_v in_o the_o church_n of_o milan_n although_o it_o be_v not_o use_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v he_o cry_v we_o follow_v in_o 〈◊〉_d all_o thing_n the_o type_n and_o the_o form_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o again_o the_o same_o peter_n be_v our_o warrant_n for_o this_o observation_n who_o have_v be_v bishop_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o why_o then_o when_o he_o or_o the_o author_n that_o be_v of_o his_o time_n of_o the_o commentary_n that_o be_v attribute_v to_o he_o upon_o the_o first_o fpistle_n to_o timothy_n explain_v these_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o converse_v in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n do_v he_o write_v 〈◊〉_d that_o pope_n damasus_n be_v the_o rector_n of_o the_o church_n although_o say_v he_o the_o whole_a world_n belong_v to_o god_n nevertheless_o the_o church_n be_v call_v the_o house_n of_o god_n of_o which_o at_o this_o day_n damasus_n be_v the_o tector_n and_o why_o then_o when_o optatus_n milevitanus_fw-la that_o be_v bishop_n of_o 〈◊〉_d in_o africa_n who_o saint_n austin_n call_v a_o bishop_n of_o reverend_a memory_n and_o who_o fulgentius_n honour_v with_o the_o title_n of_o a_o saint_n dispute_v thou_o against_o the_o donatist_n do_v he_o say_v to_o parmenian_a a_o donatist_n bishop_n 2._o can_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o thou_o know_v that_o the_o episcopal_a chair_n be_v first_o set_v up_o in_o rome_n for_o peter_n in_o which_o seat_n wassett_n the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o apostle_n peter_n whereof_o also_o he_o have_v be_v call_v cephas_n so_o say_v he_o to_o allude_v to_o the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o signify_v he_o head_n &_o ressemble_v the_o hebrow_n cephas_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o stone_n from_o whence_o this_o apostle_n be_v name_v to_o the_o end_n that_o in_o this_o only_a chair_n unity_n shall_v be_v preserve_v to_o all_o lest_o the_o other_o apostle_n may_v attribute_v to_o themselves_o each_o one_o his_o particular_a chair_n but_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v a_o schismatic_n and_o a_o sinner_n that_o will_v against_o the_o only_a chair_n set_v up_o a_o other_o and_o for_o what_o cause_n after_o he_o have_v cite_v the_o catalogue_n of_o pope_n from_o saint_n peter_n even_o to_o his_o time_n do_v he_o infer_v from_o thence_o the_o donatist_n can_v have_v no_o chair_n and_o consequent_o no_o church_n since_o they_o have_v no_o communion_n with_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n give_v we_o say_v he_o a_o account_n of_o the_o original_n of_o ibid._n your_o chair_n you_o that_o will_v attribute_v to_o yourselves_o the_o holy_a church_n but_o you_o 〈◊〉_d quoth_v he_o that_o you_o have_v alsoe_o some_o part_n at_o rome_n but_o this_o be_v a_o branch_n of_o your_o error_n sprunge_v out_o of_o a_o lie_n and_o not_o from_o the_o root_n of_o truth_n for_o in_o the_o end_n if_o macrobius_n be_v inquire_v of_o so_o be_v the_o name_n of_o the_o false_a bishop_n that_o the_o donatist_n keep_v at_o rome_n where_o he_o sit_v there_o can_v he_o answer_v in_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n which_o 〈◊〉_d he_o know_v not_o so_o much_o as_o by_o sight_n and_o a_o while_n after_o from_o whence_o be_v it_o then_o that_o you_o attempt_v to_o usurp_v to_o yourselves_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n you_o that_o fight_v against_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n by_o your_o bold_a and_o sacrilegious_a presumption_n and_o why_o then_o when_o saint_n austin_n a_o african_a as_o well_o as_o he_o press_v the_o same_o donatist_n do_v he_o say_v to_o they_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n there_o have_v always_o 162._o flourish_v the_o principality_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o again_o reckon_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d even_o since_o the_o seat_n of_o peter_n and_o in_o this_o order_n of_o the_o father_n see_v who_o have_v succeed_v one_o a_o other_o this_o be_v the_o rock_n that_o the_o proud_a gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v never_o overcome_v and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n consider_v the_o pope_n as_o successor_n of_o 65._o saint_n peter_n according_a to_o the_o other_o interpretation_n to_o wit_n according_a 〈◊〉_d to_o that_o of_o the_o figure_n of_o the_o church_n in_o this_o order_n of_o father_n say_v he_o that_o be_v to_o say_v from_o saint_n peter_n to_o pope_n athanasius_n there_o be_v not_o one_o donatist_n and_o in_o his_o disputation_n against_o the_o manichee_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n i_o be_o detain_v by_o the_o successiion_n of_o prelate_n from_o the_o seat_n of_o peter_n to_o who_o our_o lord_n give_v his_o sheep_n to_o feed_v after_o his_o resurrection_n unto_o the_o present_a bishop_n seat_n and_o why_o then_o when_o the_o empress_n eudoxia_n wife_n to_o arcadius_n emperor_n of_o the_o east_n see_v her_o husband_n will_v cause_v theophilus_n to_o be_v degrade_v from_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o alexandria_n but_o delay_v because_o say_v the_o emperor_n vit_fw-mi
council_n of_o sardica_n excommunicate_v 〈◊〉_d pope_n julius_n because_o he_o have_v admit_v saint_n athanasius_n into_o his_o communion_n the_o second_o that_o saint_n hilary_n proclaim_v anathema_n against_o pope_n liberius_n because_o he_o have_v receive_v the_o arian_n into_o his_o communion_n and_o the_o three_o dioscorus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n in_o the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n excommunicate_v the_o pope_n saint_n leo_n the_o first_o because_o he_o have_v condemn_v the_o heresy_n of_o eutyches_n and_o from_o hence_o they_o 〈◊〉_d conclude_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o then_o the_o centre_n and_o original_a of_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n since_o that_o as_o the_o pope_n excommunicate_v the_o other_o patriarch_n archbishop_n and_o bishop_n so_o the_o other_o reciprocal_o excommunicate_v he_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v best_o to_o block_n up_o their_o objection_n before_o we_o pass_v further_o to_o the_o first_o then_o of_o these_o objection_n which_o be_v that_o stephen_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n excommunicate_v pope_n julius_n because_o he_o have_v receive_v saint_n athanasius_n into_o his_o communication_n we_o bring_v three_o answer_n the_o first_o answer_n be_v that_o it_o be_v not_o stephen_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n that_o make_v this_o excommunication_n but_o it_o be_v all_o the_o bishop_n assemble_v at_o the_o false_a council_n of_o sardica_n which_o pretend_v to_o be_v the_o true_a and_o whole_a ecumenical_a 16._o council_n of_o sardica_n forasmuch_o as_o they_o say_v the_o three_o hundred_o catholic_a bishop_n which_o constitute_v the_o true_a council_n of_o sardica_n be_v fall_v into_o the_o communion_n of_o marcellus_n who_o they_o hold_v a_o heretic_n of_o the_o heresy_n of_o sabellius_n and_o of_o paulus_n samosatenus_fw-la and_o therefore_o imagine_v that_o the_o true_a and_o inty_a authority_n of_o the_o ecumenical_a council_n of_o sardica_n be_v devolue_v to_o they_o now_o there_o be_v greatdifference_n between_o say_v that_o a_o council_n that_o pretende_v to_o be_v ecumenical_a and_o conceive_v itself_o to_o represent_v the_o universal_a body_n of_o ihe_a church_n shall_v undertake_v to_o excommunicate_v a_o pope_n that_o they_o suppose_v to_o have_v fall_v into_o heresy_n and_o that_o a_o particular_a bishop_n archbishop_n or_o patriarch_n shall_v undertake_v it_o the_o second_o that_o the_o false_a council_n of_o sardica_n which_o commit_v this_o 〈◊〉_d presumption_n be_v a_o arian_n council_n and_o who_o entreprise_n consequent_o can_v be_v draw_v into_o example_n nor_o make_v any_o precedent_n against_o the_o discipline_n 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o church_n for_o what_o marvel_n be_v it_o that_o the_o arian_n who_o tread_v under_o foot_n the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o invisible_a head_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v likewise_o tread_v under_o foot_n the_o authority_n of_o his_o principal_a lieutenant_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o pope_n who_o be_v the_o visible_a head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o three_o that_o in_o the_o same_o time_n that_o the_o false_a council_n of_o sardica_n spit_n in_o the_o face_n of_o heaven_n and_o excommunicate_v not_o only_o the_o pope_n but_o 〈◊〉_d sus-christ_n himself_o and_o all_o his_o church_n in_o reject_v the_o communion_n 16._o of_o they_o that_o hold_v he_o to_o be_v consubstantial_a with_o the_o father_n the_o true_a council_n of_o sardica_n compound_v of_o more_o than_o three_o hundred_o catholic_a bishop_n acknowledge_v the_o pope_n for_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o write_v 48._o to_o he_o it_o seem_v very_o good_a and_o convenient_a that_o the_o prelate_n of_o all_o the_o province_n shall_v refer_v the_o affair_n to_o their_o head_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a of_o peter_n to_o the_o second_o objection_n which_o be_v that_o after_o that_o liberius_n be_v cast_v out_o from_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n by_o the_o arian_n and_o overcome_v with_o the_o endure_v a_o far_a banishment_n and_o many_o corporal_a persecution_n &_o vexation_n sorgott_v himself_o so_o far_o as_o to_o subscribe_v the_o condemnation_n of_o saint_n athanasius_n and_o to_o receive_v the_o arrian_n into_o his_o communion_n saint_n hilary_n recite_v the_o epistle_n of_o the_o same_o liberius_n insertes_fw-la these_o clause_n this_o be_v the_o arrian_n treachery_n this_o i_o have_v note_v i_o that_o be_o no_o apostata_fw-la and_o again_o anathema_n for_o my_o part_n to_o thou_o o_o liberius_n &_o to_o thy_o complice_n and_o a_o while_n after_o anathema_n to_o thou_o the_o second_o &_o three_o time_n o_o wicked_a liberius_n we_o bring_v four_o answer_n the_o first_o answer_n be_v that_o though_o it_o be_v certain_a and_o not_o to_o be_v doubt_v that_o this_o be_v write_v by_o a_o ancient_a author_n and_o of_o saint_n hillary_n time_n as_o beside_o the_o antiquity_n of_o the_o manuscripte_n which_o be_v to_o be_v sound_a in_o sundry_a library_n it_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o manner_n of_o that_o stile_n which_o full_o agree_v with_o that_o of_o saint_n hillary_n age_n and_o by_o many_o thing_n which_o be_v there_o recite_v which_o can_v not_o have_v be_v know_v but_o by_o the_o author_n of_o saint_n hillary_n age_n nevertheless_o it_o be_v not_o equal_o certain_a that_o it_o be_v saint_n hillary_n contrariwise_o there_o be_v four_o conjecture_n which_o seem_v to_o intimate_v that_o either_o it_o shall_v be_v hillary_n the_o luciserian_a deacon_n of_o the_o same_o time_n with_o saint_n hilary_n or_o some_o other_o author_n of_o the_o same_o sect_n and_o age_n which_o have_v suppose_v it_o and_o make_v it_o pass_v under_o the_o name_n of_o saint_n hilary_n or_o that_o the_o parenthesis_n which_o be_v insert_v into_o liberius_n his_o epistle_n that_o he_o cite_v which_o also_o be_v insert_v in_o form_n of_o note_n and_o mark_v with_o sign_n of_o a_o cross_n at_o the_o head_n and_o environ_v with_o semye-circle_n and_o write_v in_o a_o other_o character_n be_v not_o saint_n hillary_n but_o some_o exemplariste_n of_o that_o age_n the_o first_o conjecture_n be_v that_o these_o parenthesis_n condemn_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sirmium_n which_o demophilus_n cause_v liberius_n to_o sign_n that_o be_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o first_o council_n of_o sirmium_n which_o do_v not_o err_v but_o in_o the_o omission_n of_o the_o word_n homoousion_n for_o demophilus_n as_o the_o illustrious_a cardinal_n 357._o baronius_n have_v observe_v abhor_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o second_o which_o deny_v both_o homoousion_n and_o homoeusion_n and_o call_v it_o a_o arrian_n treachery_n syn._n where_o saint_n hillary_n contrariwise_o to_o spare_v and_o husband_n the_o demi_a arrian_n which_o hold_v the_o first_o confession_n and_o to_o oblige_v they_o to_o bandy_v against_o ibid_fw-la the_o complete_a arrian_n which_o hold_v the_o second_o style_v in_o his_o work_n of_o the_o synod_n the_o faith_n of_o the_o first_o council_n of_o sirmium_n or_o rather_o the_o first_o faith_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sirmium_n orthodoxal_a and_o catholic_a and_o say_v speak_v of_o the_o bishop_n eleusius_n bishop_n of_o cyrica_fw-la and_o of_o the_o other_o demi_a arrian_n which_o embrace_v it_o except_o the_o bishop_n eleusius_n and_o a_o few_o other_o with_o he_o the_o ten_o asian_a province_n wherein_o i_o dwell_v for_o the_o more_o part_n do_v not_o know_v god_n true_o and_o it_o will_v not_o serve_v for_o a_o antidote_n for_o this_o that_o mounseur_fw-fr de_fw-fr feure_z who_o hilar._n publish_v that_o work_n say_v that_o the_o arrian_n yet_o make_v another_o profession_n of_o faith_n compose_v at_o sirmium_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o emperor_n in_o the_o year_n 2._o of_o the_o council_n of_o arimini_fw-la where_o they_o abolish_v the_o word_n substance_n for_o this_o last_o confession_n of_o faith_n be_v make_v after_o liberius_n his_o fall_n and_o not_o before_o as_o some_o have_v think_v not_o consider_v that_o liberius_n suffer_v two_o banishement_n confound_v by_o socrates_n but_o distinguish_v by_o sozomene_n the_o one_o when_o he_o be_v confine_v into_o beroe_n in_o thrace_n which_o begin_v according_a to_o amianus_n marcellinus_n account_n and_o that_o of_o sulpitius_n severus_n the_o year_n wherein_o arbitio_n and_o lollianus_n be_v consul_n that_o be_v four_o year_n before_o the_o consulate_a of_o eusebius_n and_o hypatius_n under_o which_o the_o council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v hold_v and_o last_v according_a to_o saint_n athanasius_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 17._o two_o year_n and_o the_o other_o by_o which_o he_o be_v simple_o cast_v out_o of_o rome_n which_o sell_v out_o after_o the_o council_n of_o arimini_fw-la because_o liberius_n refuse_v to_o consent_v to_o it_o they_o report_v say_v sozomene_n speak_v of_o those_o who_o describe_v more_o true_o the_o history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o arimini_fw-la that_o the_o arrian_n constain_v 18._o the_o bishop_n to_o sign_n their_o confession_n and_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n many_o which_o resist_v it_o and_o in_o the_o first_o place_n liberius_n bishop_n
that_o the_o arrian_n 14._o spread_v the_o rumour_n that_o liberius_n have_v condemn_v consubstantiality_n the_o arrian_n say_v he_o spread_v the_o rumour_n that_o liberius_n have_v condemn_v the_o word_n consubstantial_a nevertheless_o for_o as_o much_o as_o saint_n jerom_n speake_v of_o liberius_n his_o exile_n write_v liberius_n bishop_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n on_o have_v be_v send_v into_o exile_n for_o the_o faith_n all_o the_o clerk_n swear_v they_o will_v receive_v no_o other_o but_o felix_n have_v be_v substitute_v in_o the_o priest_n hood_n by_o the_o arrian_n many_o perjure_a themselves_o and_o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o year_n be_v cast_v forth_o because_o liberius_n overcome_v with_o the_o wearynesse_n of_o his_o banishement_n and_o sign_v the_o heretical_a impictie_n enter_v into_o rome_n in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o conqueror_n and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n fortunatianus_n bishop_n of_o aquilea_n be_v in_o 〈◊〉_d this_o repute_a detestable_a that_o he_o first_o solicit_v liberius_n who_o be_v go_v into_o banishment_n for_o the_o faith_n and_o incline_v he_o and_o induce_v he_o to_o sign_n the_o heresy_n we_o follow_v the_o opinion_n of_o those_o that_o hold_v that_o during_o the_o time_n interpose_v between_o the_o return_n of_o liberius_n and_o the_o death_n of_o felix_n liberius_n remain_v fall_v from_o the_o popedom_n and_o that_o felix_n be_v then_o true_a pope_n for_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o the_o clerk_n which_o be_v cast_v forth_o with_o felix_n because_o say_v saint_n jerom_n liberius_n have_v sign_v the_o heretical_a impiety_n be_v 〈◊〉_d into_o rome_n like_o a_o conqueror_n be_v the_o orthodoxal_a and_o catholic_a clerk_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n who_o do_v material_o perjure_v themselves_o because_o they_o abandon_v liberius_n but_o not_o formal_o because_o liberius_n first_o abandon_v himself_o and_o in_o the_o three_o time_n which_o begin_v after_o the_o death_n of_o felix_n which_o if_o 〈◊〉_d we_o believe_v sozomene_n follow_v soon_o after_o the_o return_n of_o liberius_n liberius_n not_o only_o abjure_v that_o which_o the_o arrian_n have_v constrain_v he_o to_o do_v but_o make_v himself_o so_o constant_a a_o protector_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o cause_n and_o so_o despise_v all_o the_o persecution_n of_o the_o emperor_n as_o the_o roman_a church_n after_o the_o death_n of_o felix_n and_o all_o the_o other_o church_n of_o the_o catholic_a communion_n with_o she_o do_v receive_v and_o acknowledge_v he_o with_o a_o acknowledgement_n equivalent_a to_o rehabilitation_n for_o pope_n in_o which_o appear_v two_o act_n of_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n with_o have_v appear_v in_o saint_n peter_n fall_n one_o that_o as_o saint_n peter_n in_o the_o rise_n from_o his_o fall_n confirm_v his_o brother_n so_o liberius_n in_o rise_v from_o his_o confirm_v all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n show_v they_o the_o way_n rather_o to_o suffer_v a_o thousand_o persecution_n then_o to_o sign_n the_o council_n of_o arimini_fw-la and_o the_o other_o that_o as_o the_o father_n note_v that_o god_n permit_v saint_n peter_n to_o fall_v that_o he_o may_v learn_v by_o his_o own_o example_n to_o use_v mercy_n to_o those_o that_o shall_v fall_v and_o not_o to_o use_v that_o rigour_n to_o they_o that_o the_o novatian_n will_v afterward_o have_v introduce_v so_o god_n permit_v that_o liberius_n shall_v fall_v into_o the_o communion_n of_o heretic_n to_o the_o end_n that_o be_v restore_v he_o may_v learn_v by_o his_o own_o example_n and_o serve_v himself_o for_o a_o example_n to_o other_o not_o to_o shut_v the_o gate_n of_o episcopal_a communion_n from_o those_o bishop_n that_o shall_v fall_v into_o the_o same_o fault_n when_o they_o shall_v come_v to_o repentance_n and_o not_o to_o use_v that_o rigour_n towards_o they_o that_o afterward_o the_o luciferian_o will_v have_v introduce_v now_o it_o be_v in_o this_o mean_a while_n to_o wit_n when_o the_o roman_a church_n abjure_v liberius_n because_o he_o have_v receive_v the_o arrian_n into_o his_o communion_n and_o cease_v to_o acknowledge_v he_o for_o pope_n and_o have_v reduce_v themselves_o into_o the_o obedience_n of_o felix_n that_o saint_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o be_v abovesaid_a these_o parenthesis_n be_v his_o adhering_a to_o the_o roman_a church_n abjure_v he_o also_o and_o anathematise_v he_o not_o with_o a_o judiciary_n but_o with_o a_o applicatory_a and_o abiuratory_a anathema_n and_o by_o consequence_n the_o objection_n which_o be_v draw_v from_o it_o be_v not_o only_o unprofitable_a but_o impertinent_a for_o what_o marvel_n be_v it_o if_o in_o this_o mean_a while_n to_o wit_n when_o the_o roman_a church_n herself_o abjure_v liberius_n and_o withdraw_v herself_o from_o his_o obedience_n and_o cease_v to_o acknowledge_v he_o for_o pope_n and_o take_v felix_n his_o part_n saint_n hilary_n adhere_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v abjure_v he_o and_o anathematise_v he_o also_o not_o with_o a_o judiciary_n anathema_n but_o with_o a_o executory_a and_o abnegatory_a 〈◊〉_d and_o take_v likewise_o the_o part_n of_o fellix_fw-la to_o who_o the_o orthodoxal_a clerk_n and_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n have_v range_v themselves_o the_o great_a and_o admirable_a damasus_n who_o be_v after_o successor_n to_o liberius_n in_o the_o popedom_n and_o who_o the_o greek_n call_v the_o diamond_n of_o faith_n have_v not_o he_o be_v one_o of_o those_o that_o have_v withdraw_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o liberius_n and_o have_v transfer_v themselves_o to_o that_o of_o felix_n and_o so_o what_o wonder_n be_v it_o if_o liberius_n venet_n own_o successor_n and_o all_o the_o true_a roman_a church_n with_o he_o have_v cease_v to_o acknowledge_v liberius_n for_o pope_n and_o have_v abandon_v and_o anathematise_v he_o that_o be_v to_o say_v with_o a_o executory_a and_o abiuratory_a anathema_n and_o have_v acknowledge_v felix_n his_o competitor_n for_o true_a and_o law_n full_a pope_n s._n hilary_n also_o in_o their_o imitation_n cease_v to_o account_n liberius_n for_o pope_n and_o anathematise_v he_o not_o with_o a_o judiciary_n but_o with_o a_o executory_a and_o abiuratory_a anathema_n in_o withdraw_a himself_o from_o his_o communion_n and_o pass_v to_o that_o of_o felix_n and_o final_o the_o fowrth_n and_o last_o answer_n be_v that_o as_o in_o time_n offchisme_n and_o duplicity_n of_o pope_n s._n hilary_n follow_v the_o orthodoxal_a and_o catholic_a part_n of_o the_o clergy_n of_o rome_n adhere_v to_o felix_n and_o anathematise_v liberius_n so_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o pope_n the_o same_o s._n hilary_n testify_v that_o all_o catholic_n acknowledge_v the_o pope_n for_o head_n of_o the_o church_n for_o he_o report_v the_o epistle_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n wherein_o 15._o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o council_n write_v these_o word_n to_o pope_n julius_n liberius_n predecessor_n it_o shall_v be_v esteem_v very_o good_a and_o convenient_a if_o from_o all_o province_n the_o bishop_n shall_v refer_v the_o affair_n to_o their_o head_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a of_o peter_n and_o thus_o much_o of_o the_o second_o objection_n there_o remain_v three_o to_o the_o three_o objection_n then_o which_o be_v that_o dioscorus_n in_o the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n do_v not_o content_v himself_o to_o excommunicate_a 〈◊〉_d the_o archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n but_o go_v so_o far_o as_o to_o excommunicate_a pope_n leo_n who_o upeld_v he_o we_o answer_v three_o thing_n first_o that_o it_o be_v not_o under_o his_o own_o name_n that_o dioscorus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n decree_v this_o excommunication_n 1._o but_o under_o the_o name_n of_o all_o the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n which_o have_v be_v call_v in_o the_o quality_n of_o a_o ecumenical_a council_n and_o which_o entitle_v itself_o a_o ecumenical_a council_n by_o mean_n whereof_o this_o instance_n touch_v not_o the_o question_n whether_o another_o bishop_n archbishop_n or_o patriarch_n may_v excommunicate_v the_o pope_n but_o whether_o a_o council_n ecumenical_a pretend_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v fall_v into_o heresy_n may_v excommunicate_v he_o the_o second_o that_o dioscorus_n be_v depose_v for_o this_o presumption_n in_o the_o pap._n council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o deprive_v for_o all_o eternity_n not_o only_o of_o the_o title_n of_o patriarch_n but_o also_o of_o the_o title_n of_o christian_a and_o catbolicke_a in_o such_o sort_n as_o this_o example_n be_v so_o far_o from_o make_v against_o the_o pope_n as_o it_o fall_v upon_o their_o head_n that_o allege_v it_o and_o the_o three_o that_o there_o be_v so_o great_a difference_n between_o the_o enterprise_n of_o excommunicate_v the_o other_o bishop_n archbishop_n &_o patriarch_n and_o presumption_n of_o excommunicate_v the_o pope_n as_o although_o dioscorus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n be_v a_o archhereticke_n and_o that_o he_o have_v approve_v in_o a_o full_a council_n the_o heresy_n of_o eutiche_n and_o
condemn_v the_o orthodoxal_a doctrine_n and_o have_v excommunicate_v and_o not_o only_o excommunicate_v but_o put_v to_o death_n flavianus_n archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n who_o maintain_v the_o true_a faith_n nevertheless_o these_o thing_n be_v not_o set_v among_o the_o principal_a cause_n of_o his_o deposition_n but_o the_o presumption_n that_o he_o have_v commit_v in_o undertake_v he_o and_o his_o false_a council_n to_o excommunicate_v the_o pope_n and_o the_o contempt_n that_o he_o have_v add_v to_o it_o in_o not_o come_v to_o yield_v reason_n for_o this_o presumption_n to_o the_o council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 18._o dioscorus_n say_v anatolius_n archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n speak_v to_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n have_v not_o be_v depose_v for_o the_o faith_n but_o because_o 5._o he_o have_v excommunicate_v my_o lord_n the_o archbishop_n leo_n and_o that_o have_v be_v thrice_o cite_v he_o will_v not_o appear_v and_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n in_o the_o leon._n epistle_n to_o pope_n leo_n say_v after_o all_o these_o thing_n he_o have_v extend_v his_o 〈◊〉_d even_o against_o he_o to_o who_o the_o guard_n of_o the_o vine_n be_v commit_v by_o your_o saviour_n that_o be_v to_o say_v against_o thy_o holiness_n and_o have_v mediate_v a_o excommunication_n against_o he_o that_o strive_v to_o unite_v the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n or_o according_a to_o the_o other_o 〈◊〉_d against_o thou_o who_o make_v haste_v to_o unite_v the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v against_o thou_o that_o hold_v the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n in_o unity_n for_o with_o the_o greek_n it_o be_v a_o common_a phrase_n to_o say_v to_o haste_v themselves_o to_o do_v some_o thing_n in_o steed_n of_o say_v to_o do_v some_o thing_n as_o when_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n 〈◊〉_d write_v to_o pope_n john_n surname_v mercury_n we_o have_v make_v haste_n to_o submit_v and_o 〈◊〉_d all_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o east_n country_n to_o your_o sea_n instead_o of_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d all_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o east_n to_o your_o sea_n and_o as_o when_o the_o council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d say_v anthymus_n make_v haste_n to_o cast_v we_o into_o a_o worse_a tempest_n instead_o of_o say_v anthymus_n have_v cast_v we_o into_o a_o worse_a tempest_n card_n perron_n reply_v to_o the_o king_n of_o great_a brittany_n the_o second_o book_n chap._n i._n of_o counsel_n the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n to_o this_o be_v add_v always_o and_o as_o often_o as_o they_o be_v needful_a counsel_n true_o ecumenical_a and_o not_o as_o we_o see_v they_o have_v be_v often_o since_o ecumenical_a by_o name_n but_o indeed_o assemble_v only_o out_o of_o some_o province_n of_o europe_n the_o reply_n and_o even_o this_o also_o very_a often_o when_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o they_o as_o the_o council_n of_o arimini_fw-la compound_v of_o more_o than_o 400._o 12._o bishop_n the_o second_o council_n of_o ephefus_fw-la call_v from_o all_o the_o region_n of_o the_o world_n but_o assemble_v by_o heretical_a emperor_n or_o govern_v by_o the_o abettor_n of_o heretic_n and_o from_o the_o unlawful_a celebration_n whereof_o the_o one_o hold_v without_o the_o pope_n authority_n and_o the_o other_o against_o 22._o it_o the_o success_n teach_v we_o that_o as_o much_o as_o counsel_n be_v profitable_a when_o the_o temporal_a authority_n second_v the_o ecclesiastical_a as_o much_o be_v they_o pernicious_a 1._o when_o temporal_a authority_n undertake_v to_o perform_v the_o office_n of_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n joint_o that_o as_o in_o human_a body_n the_o multitude_n of_o medicine_n be_v not_o a_o sign_n of_o health_n so_o in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a body_n the_o multitude_n of_o counsel_n be_v not_o a_o sign_n of_o well_o be_v witness_v the_o complaint_n of_o s._n gregory_n nazianz._n upon_o the_o multitude_n of_o counsel_n hold_v 42._o after_o that_o of_o nicaea_n of_o which_o he_o say_v that_o he_o never_o see_v good_a come_v of_o they_o that_o be_v to_o wit_n as_o much_o because_o when_o the_o heretical_a emperor_n meddle_v with_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n the_o ambition_n to_o please_v they_o which_o be_v creep_v in_o among_o the_o bishop_n thwart_v the_o judgment_n of_o the_o synod_n as_o because_o the_o hold_v subsequent_a counsel_n upon_o the_o same_o matter_n of_o those_o precede_v they_o be_v to_o wound_v and_o to_o weaken_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o precede_a counsel_n and_o then_o how_o can_v the_o celebration_n of_o counsel_n have_v be_v a_o mean_n to_o make_v man_n assure_v of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o true_a church_n if_o general_a counsel_n lawful_o assemble_v that_o be_v according_a to_o the_o external_a solemn_a and_o usual_a way_n may_v err_v in_o faith_n as_o the_o protestant_n pretend_v and_o have_v not_o the_o infallible_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o that_o a_o particular_a man_n esteem_v his_o opinion_n agreeable_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o that_o of_o the_o council_n differ_v from_o it_o might_n yea_o ought_v to_o prefer_v his_o judgement_n before_o that_o of_o the_o council_n for_o whereas_o his_o majesty_n say_v that_o the_o counsel_n hold_v in_o the_o last_o age_n have_v be_v ecumenical_a in_o name_n but_o in_o effect_n assemble_v only_o from_o some_o province_n of_o europe_n he_o may_v observe_v if_o he_o please_v that_o there_o be_v two_o sort_n of_o ecumenical_a counsel_n the_o one_o ecumenical_a indeed_o the_o other_o ecumenical_a in_o right_n i_o call_v those_o counsel_n ecumenical_a in_o deed_n which_o have_v be_v assemble_v from_o all_o part_n wherein_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o episcopal_a character_n be_v preserve_v whether_o those_o part_n have_v remain_v within_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n or_o whether_o they_o have_v be_v cut_n of_o from_o it_o i_o call_v those_o counsel_n ecumenical_a in_o right_n which_o be_v compound_v only_o of_o those_o part_n which_o have_v remain_v within_o the_o body_n and_o society_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o who_o only_o as_o such_o belong_v the_o right_a to_o judge_v 〈◊〉_d in_o matter_n of_o faith_n as_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n at_o the_o which_o there_o assist_v not_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o patriarkeshipp_n of_o antioch_n because_o they_o be_v arrian_n and_o the_o second_o council_n of_o nicaea_n at_o which_o the_o cophte_n that_o be_v the_o natural_a egyptian_n and_o ethiopian_n assist_v not_o because_o they_o be_v eutychian_o now_o both_o these_o kind_n of_o counsel_n be_v of_o equal_a authority_n as_o concern_v certainty_n in_o decision_n of_o religion_n for_o all_o the_o body_n of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v there_o representative_o both_o in_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v there_o equal_o infallible_a but_o in_o regard_n of_o evidence_n the_o authority_n of_o ecumenical_a counsel_n in_o deed_n be_v more_o powerful_a and_o eminent_a in_o the_o behalf_n of_o those_o man_n which_o be_v divide_v from_o the_o church_n then_o that_o of_o ecumenical_a counsel_n in_o right_a for_o in_o counsel_n ecumenical_a in_o right_n there_o be_v none_o but_o catholic_n that_o be_v assure_v that_o all_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n be_v there_o assemble_v whereas_o in_o counsel_n ecumenical_a in_o deed_n each_o of_o the_o party_n contest_v be_v of_o agreement_n that_o all_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n be_v there_o represent_v and_o the_o medley_n of_o heretical_a or_o schismatical_a bishop_n that_o be_v provide_v with_o the_o only_a succession_n of_o the_o episcopal_a character_n but_o cut_v of_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n hinder_v not_o but_o that_o in_o such_o counsel_n the_o holy_a ghost_n may_v work_v by_o the_o common_a note_n of_o the_o assembly_n because_o the_o true_a church_n receive_v those_o bishop_n there_o for_o the_o effect_n then_o present_a into_o her_o charity_n and_o into_o her_o communion_n while_o they_o be_v join_v with_o she_o to_o the_o end_n to_o seek_v mean_n to_o assemblish_v unity_n she_o re-enables_a and_o restore_v to_o they_o for_o the_o time_n of_o the_o assembly_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o exercise_n and_o of_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o their_o order_n whereof_o before_o there_o remain_v to_o they_o nothing_o but_o the_o character_n to_o say_v then_o that_o some_o of_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o latter_a age_n have_v not_o be_v ecumenical_a because_o the_o greek_n or_o ethiopian_n do_v not_o assist_v there_o be_v not_o a_o valuable_a exception_n unless_o it_o first_o appear_v that_o the_o greek_n or_o ethiopian_n be_v true_a and_o lawful_a part_n of_o the_o church_n and_o have_v not_o be_v just_o cut_v off_o and_o divide_v from_o the_o catholic_a communion_n for_o it_o suffice_v to_o make_v a_o council_n general_a and_o universal_a in_o right_n that_o all_o the_o part_n that_o remain_v actual_a within_o the_o body_n &_o
the_o city_n of_o rome_n beside_o that_o she_o be_v head_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o west_n a_o thing_n which_o be_v common_a to_o she_o with_o the_o two_o other_o city_n of_o alexandria_n and_o antioch_n each_o in_o the_o behalf_n of_o their_o ancient_a territory_n have_v yet_o this_o condition_n more_o above_o the_o rest_n that_o she_o be_v also_o the_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a body_n of_o the_o empire_n so_o the_o final_a and_o absolute_a sea_n of_o s._n peter_n which_o he_o constitute_v at_o rome_n beside_o the_o patriarchall_a jurisdiction_n and_o as_o correspondent_a to_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o west_n in_o which_o it_o agree_v with_o the_o other_o patriarchall_a chair_n have_v yet_o more_o the_o degree_n of_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o patriarch_n in_o which_o he_o be_v superior_a to_o the_o other_o patriarchall_a throne_n and_o when_o there_o be_v question_n of_o thing_n that_o go_v beyond_o the_o patriarchall_a jurisdiction_n that_o be_v of_o great_a cause_n and_o which_o concern_v the_o universal_a church_n as_o be_v cause_n of_o faith_n or_o of_o the_o general_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n or_o those_o of_o the_o final_a deposition_n of_o bishop_n or_o those_o of_o judge_v the_o very_a person_n of_o the_o patriarch_n exercise_v ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n over_o they_o &_o judge_v both_o of_o their_o judgement_n &_o of_o their_o person_n for_o s._n peter_n have_v purpose_v to_o follow_v in_o the_o distribution_n of_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n the_o order_n already_o establish_v in_o the_o distribution_n of_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n it_o must_v follow_v that_o the_o same_o proportion_n that_o be_v between_o the_o seat_n of_o rome_n &_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o other_o two_o empire_n in_o case_n of_o politic_a &_o secular_a jurisdiction_n must_v likewise_o be_v maintain_v between_o the_o sea_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o those_o of_o the_o other_o patriarch_n in_o case_n of_o ecclesiastical_a &_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n &_o that_o for_o two_o cause_n the_o one_o occasional_a &_o remote_a to_o wit_n the_o secular_a dignity_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n which_o have_v move_v s._n peter_n to_o set_v the_o spiritual_a sovereignty_n of_o the_o church_n in_o that_o place_n where_o already_o the_o temporal_a sovereignty_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n be_v settle_v &_o the_o other_o near_o formal_a &_o immediate_a to_o wit_n the_o spiritual_a dignity_n of_o s._n peter_n for_o the_o eminency_n whereof_o it_o be_v fit_a that_o he_o that_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o episcopal_a society_n shall_v establish_v his_o final_a &_o absolute_a throne_n &_o plant_v the_o stock_n of_o his_o direct_a succession_n in_o that_o place_n where_o the_o stock_n &_o principal_a seat_n of_o the_o human_a &_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n be_v already_o plant_v as_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n and_o valentinian_n 〈◊〉_d note_n in_o these_o word_n the_o primacy_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a have_v be_v establish_v both_o by_o the_o merit_n of_o peter_n who_o be_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o episcopal_a society_n and_o by_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o city_n and_o by_o the_o sacred_a authority_n of_o the_o synod_n now_o there_o be_v this_o difference_n between_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o other_o prefecture_n in_o matter_n of_o secular_a &_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n that_o not_o only_o the_o emperor_n of_o the_o roman_a commonwealth_n command_v the_o prefect_n and_o president_n of_o the_o other_o seat_n but_o also_o that_o the_o city_n perfect_a of_o rome_n beside_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o his_o ordinary_a territory_n which_o be_v limit_v in_o regard_n of_o judgement_n in_o the_o first_o instance_n to_o a_o certain_a number_n of_o province_n have_v yet_o as_o head_n of_o the_o senate_n and_o vicar_n to_o the_o emperor_n the_o right_a of_o examine_v by_o appeal_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o the_o province_n of_o the_o fmpire_n for_o when_o augustus_n and_o the_o emperor_n follow_v establish_a or_o reestablisht_a the_o office_n of_o perfect_a of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n they_o give_v he_o power_n to_o judge_v of_o the_o appeal_n of_o all_o the_o province_n notit_fw-la of_o the_o roman_a circle_n as_o the_o interpreter_n of_o the_o notice_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o even_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v acknowledge_v allege_v be_v it_o well_o be_v it_o evil_n these_o word_n of_o maecenas_n report_v in_o dion_n that_o the_o perfect_a of_o 52._o the_o city_n shall_v judge_v of_o the_o appeal_n and_o provocation_n of_o all_o the_o magistrate_n above_o mention_v and_o those_o of_o statius_n address_v to_o the_o city_n perfect_a under_o domitian_n jnque_fw-la sinum_fw-la quae_fw-la saepe_fw-la tuumfora_fw-la turbida_fw-la quaestu_fw-la confugiunt_fw-la legesque_fw-la urbesque_fw-la ubicunque_fw-la togatae_fw-la 1._o 〈◊〉_d longinquis_fw-la implorant_fw-la iura_fw-la querelis_fw-la and_o those_o of_o a_o epistle_n from_o the_o senate_n to_o the_o judge_n of_o carthage_n report_v floria._n by_o vopiscus_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o emperor_n tacitus_n all_o appeal_n shall_v belong_v to_o the_o city_n perfect_a which_o shall_v yet_o proceed_v from_o the_o 〈◊〉_d and_o ordinary_a judge_n and_o these_o of_o a_o other_o epistle_n of_o the_o senate_n to_o the_o judge_n of_o treve_n ib._n and_o to_o the_o antiochian_o aquileyans_n milaneses_n alexandrian_n thessalonian_n corinthian_n and_o athenian_n the_o right_n of_o appeal_n have_v be_v universallie_o decree_v to_o the_o prefecture_n of_o the_o city_n and_o these_o of_o a_o epistle_n of_o tiberianus_n the_o appeal_n 13._o from_o all_o the_o power_n and_o from_o all_o the_o dignity_n be_v return_v to_o the_o city_n perfect_a and_o these_o from_o a_o law_n of_o constantine_n to_o julian_n the_o city_n perfect_a we_o will_v not_o that_o the_o judge_n from_o who_o the_o appeal_n shall_v remit_v the_o cause_n to_o our_o clemency_n but_o they_o shall_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o sacred_a auditory_a of_o thy_o gravity_n to_o who_o we_o have_v commit_v our_o vicarship_n which_o be_v after_o abolish_v by_o the_o translation_n of_o the_o appeal_n to_o the_o pretoriall_a prefect_n from_o whence_o we_o have_v a_o law_n of_o 27._o constantius_n in_o the_o theodosian-code_n which_o ordain_v the_o perfect_a of_o the_o pretory_n of_o italy_n to_o examine_v the_o appeal_n from_o sicily_n from_o sardinia_n from_o calabria_n from_o prussia_n and_o from_o the_o province_n now_o call_v lombardy_n and_o add_v for_o the_o city_n perfect_a inform_v by_o our_o answer_n have_v be_v advertise_v to_o depart_v from_o it_o by_o mean_n whereof_o as_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n beside_o that_o she_o be_v head_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o west_n leave_v not_o to_o have_v dominion_n over_o the_o head_n of_o the_o two_o other_o empire_n or_o to_o reduce_v the_o matter_n into_o more_o strict_a term_n as_o the_o perfect_a of_o rome_n in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o the_o empire_n beside_o the_o ordinary_a jurisdiction_n that_o he_o have_v over_o the_o province_n of_o his_o territory_n yet_o leave_v not_o as_o vicar_n to_o the_o emperor_n and_o head_n of_o the_o senate_n to_o judge_v of_o the_o appeal_n os_fw-la all_o other_o province_n so_o the_o pope_n beside_o the_o jurisdiction_n he_o have_v in_o quality_n of_o patriarch_n of_o the_o west_n over_o the_o province_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n os_fw-la the_o west_n yet_o lest_o not_o as_o head_n os_fw-la the_o church_n and_o successor_n of_o saint_n pftfr_n and_o principal_a vicar_n of_o christ_n to_o have_v the_o supereminence_n and_o general_a superintendence_n over_o all_o the_o other_o province_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n say_v saint_n ireneus_n because_o of_o a_o more_o mighty_a principality_n 3._o that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o have_v above_o appear_v because_o of_o a_o principalitien_n over_o mighty_a than_o the_o temporal_a it_o be_v necessary_a that_o all_o church_n shall_v agree_v and_o saint_n cyprian_n the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o chair_n os_fw-la pepper_n 52._o and_o the_o principal_a and_o original_n of_o the_o socerdotall_a unity_n and_o saint_n athanasius_n they_o have_v have_v no_o reverend_a esteem_n that_o rome_n be_v the_o sea_n apostolic_a 〈◊〉_d and_o metropolitan_a of_o romania_n and_o saint_n gregory_n nazianzen_n the_o 〈◊〉_d ancient_a rome_n tread_v right_o in_o the_o faith_n hold_v all_o the_o west_n bind_v by_o the_o healthful_a word_n as_o it_o be_v convenient_a for_o she_o to_o do_v that_o rule_v all_o the_o world_n and_o saint_n jerom_n a_o priest_n of_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n and_o disciple_n of_o s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n write_v to_o pope_n damasus_n i_o know_v the_o church_n be_v found_v upon_o that_o 57_o stone_n whosoever_o eat_v the_o lamb_n out_o of_o that_o house_n be_v profane_a and_o a_o little_a after_o i_o know_v not_o vitalis_n i_o be_o ignorant_a of_o miletius_n i_o reject_v paulinus_n whosoever_o gather_v 162._o not_o with_o
oppress_v &_o enclose_v as_o the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v constrain_v to_o hide_v themselves_o in_o cave_n and_o place_n under_o ground_n to_o avoid_v the_o persecution_n &_o tyranny_n of_o the_o infidel_n joint_o that_o we_o say_v not_o that_o s._n peter_n remain_v always_o fix_v and_o tie_v to_o rome_n while_o he_o be_v bishop_n thereof_o but_o that_o he_o go_v from_o time_n to_o time_n plant_v the_o gospel_n in_o the_o lesser_a city_n and_o place_v bishop_n over_o they_o and_o that_o during_o these_o voyage_n he_o administer_v the_o roman_a church_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o linus_n and_o cletus_n who_o he_o have_v there_o establish_v for_o his_o coadjutor_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n for_o which_o if_o we_o believe_v russinus_n they_o be_v sometime_o clem._n reckon_v in_o the_o order_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n before_o s._n clement_n and_o sometime_o after_o he_o and_o whereas_o the_o jew_n pray_v s._n paul_n when_o he_o 28._o come_v to_o rome_n to_o inform_v they_o of_o the_o sect_n of_o the_o christian_n which_o they_o 6._o object_n to_o we_o they_o will_v not_o have_v do_v if_o saint_n peter_n have_v already_o be_v bishop_n there_o we_o answer_v that_o they_o pray_v s._n paul_n to_o inform_v they_o 8._o not_o of_o the_o sect_n of_o the_o christian_n but_o of_o the_o opinion_n that_o he_o who_o they_o repute_v to_o be_v great_o verse_v in_o the_o jewish_a doctrine_n have_v of_o they_o otherwise_o how_o can_v s._n paul_n say_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n above_o four_o year_n before_o his_o arrival_n at_o rome_n your_o faith_n be_v declare_v through_o the_o whole_a world_n 1._o to_o the_o six_o objection_n which_o be_v that_o s._n luke_n who_o have_v write_v the_o history_n of_o the_o apostle_n speak_v not_o of_o the_o voyage_n of_o s._n peter_n to_o rome_n we_o answer_v s._n luke_n purpose_v to_o write_v particular_o the_o act_n of_o saint_n paul_n his_o master_n and_o not_o these_o of_o the_o other_o apostle_n for_o except_v that_o which_o pass_v between_o the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o the_o conversion_n of_o saint_n paul_n where_o he_o treat_v the_o history_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o common_a to_o make_v it_o serve_v for_o a_o foundation_n to_o the_o particular_a relation_n of_o the_o act_n of_o s._n paul_n and_o except_v the_o discourse_n of_o the_o conversion_n of_o cornelius_n which_o he_o add_v there_o for_o as_o much_o as_o this_o conversion_n be_v the_o overture_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o the_o gentile_n for_o who_o vocation_n s._n paul_n have_v be_v call_v s._n luke_n do_v not_o after_o that_o to_o the_o end_n of_o his_o book_n make_v mention_n of_o any_o other_o apostle_n unless_o in_o as_o much_o as_o he_o be_v in_o the_o place_n where_o s._n paul_n be_v and_o yet_o he_o omitt_v the_o voyage_n of_o saint_n paul_n to_o jerusalem_n to_o visit_v s._n peter_n &_o s._n peter_n &_o s._n paul_n meeting_n at_o antioch_n and_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o association_n give_v by_o s._n peter_n s._n james_n &_o s._n john_n to_o s._n paul_n &_o the_o voyage_n of_o the_o same_o saint_n paul_n into_o galatia_n which_o cause_v beza_n to_o say_v luke_n have_v omit_v many_o thing_n and_o principal_o s._n paul_n voyage_n to_o the_o galatian_n and_o 〈◊〉_d therefore_o so_o far_o be_v s._n jerom_n from_o make_v use_n of_o s._n luke_n silence_n to_o weaken_v the_o credit_n of_o s._n peter_n stay_n at_o rome_n as_o contrariwise_o he_o argue_v the_o stay_n of_o s._n peter_n at_o antioch_n and_o at_o rome_n to_o show_v how_o s._n luke_n have_v pass_v many_o thing_n under_o silence_n and_o take_v this_o foundation_n for_o a_o certain_a and_o 2_o undoubted_a principle_n of_o history_n final_o say_v s._n jerom_n we_o have_v learn_v that_o peter_n be_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n and_o that_o from_o thence_o be_v be_v transfer_v to_o tome_n which_o luke_n have_v utter_o omit_v to_o the_o seven_o objection_n which_o be_v that_o s._n paul_n speak_v of_o the_o interview_n between_o s._n peter_n and_o himself_o both_o at_o jerusalem_n and_o antioch_n but_o speak_v of_o no_o meeting_n between_o s._n peter_n and_o he_o at_o rome_n which_o be_v the_o 8._o famous_a city_n of_o the_o world_n we_o answer_v that_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o galatians_n which_o be_v the_o only_a place_n where_o s._n paul_n speak_v of_o the_o enterview_n between_o s._n peter_n and_o he_o to_o dissipate_v the_o reproach_n that_o they_o that_o will_v seduce_v the_o 〈◊〉_d lay_v upon_o he_o that_o he_o have_v not_o be_v institute_v apostle_n by_o christ_n but_o by_o s._n peter_n &_o by_o the_o other_o apostle_n who_o give_v he_o their_o right_a hand_n for_o association_n be_v write_v if_o we_o believe_v s._n chrysostome_n before_o rom._n the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n and_o then_o we_o must_v not_o think_v it_o strange_a that_o s._n paul_n touch_v nothing_o there_o of_o the_o interview_n of_o s._n peter_n &_o he_o at_o rome_n since_o it_o be_v write_v before_o the_o voyage_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o rome_n to_o the_o eight_o objection_n which_o be_v that_o s._n john_n make_v mention_n of_o the_o kind_n of_o death_n of_o s._n peter_n but_o make_v no_o mention_n of_o the_o place_n of_o his_o 8._o death_n we_o answer_v two_o thing_n the_o one_o that_o s._n john_n make_v mention_n of_o the_o kind_n of_o s._n peter_n death_n &_o not_o of_o of_o the_o place_n where_o because_o the_o kind_n and_o not_o the_o place_n of_o the_o death_n of_o s._n peter_n belong_v to_o the_o explication_n of_o this_o prophecy_n of_o our_o lord_n when_o thou_o shall_v be_v old_a thou_o shall_v stretch_v forth_o thy_o 〈◊〉_d hand_n and_o the_o other_o that_o so_o far_o be_v this_o clause_n of_o s._n john_n from_o weaken_v the_o belief_n of_o s._n peter_n death_n at_o rome_n that_o it_o full_o confirm_v and_o authorise_v it_o for_o s._n john_n have_v write_v his_o gospel_n many_o year_n after_o the_o martyrdom_n of_o s._n peee_a and_o have_v explain_v and_o prove_v this_o 〈◊〉_d os_fw-la our_o lord_n thou_o shall_v stretch_v forth_o thy_o hand_n by_o the_o kind_n of_o s._n peter_n death_n without_o specify_v it_o particular_o it_o must_v be_v that_o when_o s._n john_n 〈◊〉_d his_o gospel_n the_o kind_n of_o s._n peter_n death_n be_v know_v and_o evident_a to_o all_o part_n of_o the_o church_n now_o the_o kind_n of_o s._n peter_n death_n can_v not_o be_v know_v to_o all_o part_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o place_n of_o his_o death_n must_v likewise_o be_v know_v to_o they_o nor_o can_v the_o place_n of_o s._n peter_n death_n be_v know_v to_o all_o the_o church_n &_o be_v any_o other_o then_o rome_n for_o how_o can_v it_o cor_n háppen_v that_o not_o only_o all_o the_o ancient_a author_n yea_o those_o that_o write_v in_o the_o next_o age_n after_o s._n john_n as_o 25._o s._n dionysius_n of_o corinth_n 3._o s._n ireneus_n 25._o caius_n praescrip_n tertullian_n &_o infinite_a other_o but_o the_o very_a stone_n also_o &_o the_o inscription_n of_o the_o sepulcher_n of_o s._n peter_n &_o s._n paul_n which_o be_v yet_o preserve_v and_o public_o show_v at_o rome_n in_o the_o time_n of_o caius_n shall_v witness_v with_o a_o common_a voice_n that_o saint_n peter_n have_v be_v martyre_v at_o rome_n &_o that_o no_o other_o church_n but_o the_o roman_a do_v ever_o glory_n in_o his_o relic_n and_o his_o martyrdom_n if_o from_o the_o time_n wherein_o s._n john_n write_v his_o gospel_n the_o place_n of_o s._n pfter_n death_n have_v be_v know_v to_o all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o church_n &_o have_v be_v any_o other_o then_o rome_n and_o therefore_o what_o remain_v in_o all_o the_o text_n object_v to_o we_o from_o scripture_n which_o agree_v not_o perfect_o with_o the_o chronology_n of_o the_o church_n concern_v the_o history_n of_o s._n peter_n saint_n paul_n affirm_v that_o three_o year_n after_o his_o conversion_n he_o travel_v to_o jeru_n 1_o salem_fw-la to_o visit_v s._n peter_n consent_v not_o that_o exact_o with_o our_o computation_n which_o reckon_v the_o conversion_n of_o s._n paul_n the_o first_o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n &_o the_o voyage_n of_o s._n peter_n to_o antioch_n the_o five_o s._n luke_n report_v that_o s._n paul_n be_v come_v to_o jerusalem_n for_o the_o distribution_n of_o the_o alm_n during_o the_o famine_n which_o begin_v the_o eleaventh_o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n find_v s._n peter_n there_o prisoner_n do_v not_o that_o whole_o agree_v 12._o with_o our_o chronologie_n which_o suppose_v that_o the_o episcopal_a seat_n of_o saint_n peter_n at_o antioch_n be_v seven_o year_n five_o complete_a &_o two_o imperfect_a the_o same_o s._n luke_n write_v that_o s._n peter_n withdraw_v himself_o
from_o jerusalem_n at_o his_o delivery_n which_o be_v the_o second_o year_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o ibid._n claudius_n go_v into_o a_o other_o place_n that_o be_v to_o say_v into_o a_o other_o place_n proper_a to_o go_v out_o of_o judea_n &_o from_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o herod_n such_o as_o be_v joppa_n where_o those_o use_v to_o embark_v that_o will_v sail_v to_o rome_n &_o into_o the_o west_n do_v not_o that_o excellent_o agree_v with_o s._n jeroms_n computation_n who_o petro._n report_v that_o s._n peter_n come_v to_o rome_n the_o second_o year_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o claudius_n for_o that_o s._n luke_n say_v only_o that_o he_o go_v into_o a_o other_o place_n &_o express_v not_o whither_o but_o leave_v he_o seven_o year_n after_o without_o mention_n it_o be_v not_o to_o abandon_v the_o history_n of_o s._n paul_n his_o master_n the_o same_o s._n luke_n testify_v that_o s._n peter_n be_v again_o at_o the_o council_n at_o jerusalem_n 15._o hold_v for_o legal_a cause_n fit_n not_o that_o just_a with_o that_o that_o suetonius_n say_v claud._n that_o claudius_n drive_v the_o jew_n from_o rome_n which_o raise_v tumult_n for_o christ_n 6_o cause_n &_o to_o that_o that_o orosius_n note_n that_o this_o banishment_n be_v in_o the_o nine_o year_n of_o claudius_n that_o be_v the_o eighteen_o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o very_a year_n of_o the_o council_n s._n john_n expound_v this_o prophecy_n 21._o of_o our_o lord_n to_o s._n peter_n thou_o shall_v stretch_v forth_o thy_o hand_n and_o aen_o other_o shall_v gird_v thou_o by_o the_o kind_n of_o s._n peter_n death_n and_o add_v that_o our_o lord_n foretell_v enigmaticallie_o the_o martyrdom_n of_o s._n peter_n say_v to_o he_o follow_v i_o do_v not_o this_o agree_v with_o that_o tertullian_n say_v speak_v of_o alia_fw-la the_o roman_a church_n happy_a church_n in_o which_o the_o apostle_n have_v shed_v all_o their_o doctrine_n with_o their_o blood_n in_o which_o peter_n be_v equal_v to_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o with_o what_o s._n ambrose_n write_v that_o s._n peter_n be_v come_v forth_o of_o rome_n to_o fly_v persecution_n our_o lord_n appear_v to_o he_o and_o say_v i_o go_v to_o rome_n to_o be_v crucify_v again_o s._n peter_n insinuate_v in_o his_o first_o epistle_n that_o he_o write_v it_o from_o babylon_n &_o many_o greek_a copy_n contrary_o date_n it_o from_o rome_n be_v not_o this_o solued_a by_o that_o that_o eusebius_n and_o s._n jerom_n say_v that_o s._n peter_n call_v rome_n allegorical_o 14._o babylon_n for_o as_o much_o as_o rome_n be_v then_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o jew_n the_o same_o as_o the_o asian_a babylon_n have_v be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o prophet_n he_o add_v the_o salutation_n of_o mark_n the_o church_n say_v he_o which_o be_v in_o babylon_n and_o mark_v my_o son_n salute_v ibid._n you_o do_v not_o that_o agree_v both_o with_o the_o use_n of_o the_o word_n marcus_n which_o be_v a_o roman_a name_n and_o not_o a_o babylonian_a and_o with_o these_o word_n of_o papias_n auditor_n of_o s._n john_n report_v by_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n mark_v be_v request_v 〈◊〉_d at_o rome_n by_o the_o brother_n write_v a_o short_a gospel_n which_o peter_n have_v read_v approve_v for_o whereas_o erasmus_n say_v that_o s._n jerom_n attribute_n the_o name_n of_o `_o babylon_n to_o rom_n in_o choler_n for_o as_o much_o as_o he_o have_v be_v evil_o entreat_v 〈◊〉_d there_o and_o will_v have_v that_o babylon_n whereof_o s._n peter_n speak_v to_o be_v the_o asirian-babylon_n these_o be_v two_o childish_a ignorances_n the_o one_o not_o to_o know_v that_o s._n jerom_n have_v already_o interpret_v that_o babylon_n whereof_o s._n peter_n 〈◊〉_d speak_v to_o be_v rome_n both_o in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o isaiah_n and_o in_o his_o catalogue_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a author_n write_v long_o before_o the_o evil_a entreaty_n 8._o that_o he_o receive_v at_o rome_n which_o happen_v under_o syricius_n and_o the_o other_o not_o to_o know_v that_o when_o s._n peter_n write_v this_o epistle_n josephus_n witness_v there_o be_v then_o no_o jew_n in_o babylon_n but_o this_o be_v enough_o of_o the_o instance_n of_o scripture_n let_v we_o proceed_v to_o those_o of_o the_o father_n which_o consist_v in_o four_o principal_a objection_n the_o first_o that_o clemens_n comanus_n write_v to_o james_n brother_n of_o our_o lord_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o death_n of_o s._n peter_n at_o rome_n a_o thing_n repugnant_a say_v the_o obiector_n to_o scripture_n which_o witness_v that_o james_n be_v martyre_v long_o before_o the_o death_n of_o peter_n the_o second_o that_o s._n jerom_n write_v that_o s._n peter_n be_v crucify_v in_o judea_n the_o three_o that_o s._n au_v affirm_v that_o the_o history_n of_o the_o battle_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o simon_n magus_n at_o 〈◊〉_d rome_n proceed_v from_o a_o opinion_n or_o as_o they_o say_v from_o a_o fabulous_a narration_n and_o the_o fowrth_n that_o in_o the_o order_n of_o peter_n successor_n some_o place_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &_o 〈◊〉_d before_o clement_n &_o some_o after_o to_o which_o they_o far_o add_v for_o the_o banquet_n and_o confecte_n after_o the_o feast_n that_o eusebius_n and_o the_o legend_n upon_o which_o they_o charge_v we_o that_o we_o find_v the_o papacy_n contradict_v one_o another_o for_o as_o much_o as_o eusebius_n say_v that_o s._n peter_n be_v crucify_v and_o the_o legend_n say_v he_o be_v behead_v to_o the_o first_o of_o these_o objection_n which_o be_v that_o clement_n write_v to_o james_n brother_n to_o our_o lord_n declare_v to_o he_o the_o martyrdom_n of_o s._n peter_n we_o answer_v three_o thing_n first_o that_o that_o epistle_n be_v apocrypha_n and_o suppose_a for_o 〈◊〉_d though_o it_o be_v translate_v from_o greek_a into_o latin_a by_o ruffinus_n &_o that_o it_o be_v cite_v by_o the_o first_o council_n of_o vaison_n which_o be_v hold_v under_o the_o emperor_n 〈◊〉_d the_o three_o contain_v many_o good_a doctrine_n nevertheless_o it_o be_v certain_a thar_z the_o greek_a original_a of_o the_o recognition_n of_o clement_n to_o which_o it_o be_v annex_v &_o relative_a be_v apocrypha_n &_o have_v be_v either_o suppose_v or_o corrupt_v by_o the_o hebionite_n the_o second_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n to_o who_o this_o epistle_n be_v address_v be_v not_o james_n the_o apostle_n brother_n to_o our_o lord_n but_o simon_n brother_n &_o successor_n in_o the_o bishopric_n to_o james_n the_o 30._o apostle_n entitle_v the_o brother_n of_o our_o lord_n who_o this_o epistle_n call_v james_n brother_n of_o our_o lord_n according_a to_o the_o custom_n the_o hebrew_n have_v to_o bear_v many_o name_n &_o sometime_o to_o inherit_v name_n one_o from_o a_o other_o as_o it_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o repugnancy_n of_o the_o time_n of_o the_o death_n of_o the_o apostle_n james_n brother_n of_o our_o lord_n which_o ruffinus_n interpreter_n &_o advocate_n for_o his_o epistle_n who_o have_v translate_v the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n of_o eusebius_n 〈◊〉_d can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a of_o &_o by_o the_o inscription_n in_o the_o which_o the_o author_n of_o the_o epistle_n entitle_v he_o to_o who_o he_o address_v it_o james_n brother_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n &_o entitle_v he_o not_o apostle_n which_o he_o can_v not_o have_v forget_v to_o do_v in_o that_o place_n if_o it_o have_v be_v the_o apostle_n james_n brother_n to_o our_o lord_n and_o the_o three_o that_o those_o that_o object_n this_o strain_v forth_o a_o gnat_n swallow_v a_o camel_n that_o be_v in_o think_v to_o tax_v the_o ignorance_n of_o other_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o chronologie_n of_o the_o father_n discover_v their_o own_o in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o apostle_n s._n james_n who_o martyrdom_n they_o say_v the_o scripture_n report_v be_v the_o apostle_n james_n brother_n of_o john_n martyre_v by_o herod_n in_o the_o twelve_o of_o the_o act_n &_o 8_o not_o the_o apostle_n james_n brother_n of_o our_o lord_n who_o be_v ten_o year_n after_o still_o in_o jerusalem_n and_o of_o who_o death_n the_o scripture_n never_o speak_v in_o any_o 22._o part_n of_o it_o the_o church_n have_v learn_v what_o she_o know_v of_o it_o not_o from_o the_o scripture_n but_o from_o josephus_n and_o from_o hegesippus_n and_o from_o clement_n alexandrinus_n &_o from_o eusebius_n &_o from_o s._n jerom_n who_o testify_v that_o james_n the_o 22._o apostle_n brother_n of_o our_o lord_n die_v under_o the_o pontificate_n of_o ananus_fw-la the_o young_a and_o in_o the_o seven_o year_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o nero._n to_o the_o second_o objection_n which_o be_v that_o s._n jerom_n write_v that_o saint_n peter_n be_v crucify_v in_o judea_n we_o answer_v that_o s._n jerom_n do_v no_o where_o write_v that_o s._n peter_n be_v crucify_v in_o
nicaea_n and_o of_o the_o three_o canon_n 16._o of_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n infer_v thereupon_o thus_o it_o appear_v from_o hence_o that_o all_o primacy_n and_o principal_a honour_n have_v always_o be_v 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n a_o thing_n that_o amaze_v i_o that_o the_o greek_a schismatickes_n and_o 〈◊〉_d among_o the_o rest_n do_v not_o perceive_v it_o for_o nilus_n 〈◊〉_d archbishop_n of_o thesalonica_n dispute_v against_o the_o pope_n say_v if_o the_o canon_n of_o 2._o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n have_v distribute_v the_o climate_n of_o the_o earth_n to_o every_o one_o of_o the_o bishops-generall_n so_o he_o call_v the_o patriarch_n and_o have_v determinate_o settle_v nothing_o upon_o the_o sea_n of_o the_o pope_n but_o have_v content_v itself_o with_o say_v that_o he_o have_v receive_v the_o primacy_n there_o have_v be_v some_o reason_n to_o esteem_v that_o all_o the_o earth_n have_v be_v under_o he_o and_o nevertheless_o not_o only_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n ordain_v that_o the_o bishop_n shall_v not_o exceed_v their_o limit_n but_o that_o 2._o according_a to_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n govern_v only_o the_o affair_n of_o egypt_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n that_o be_v of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o antioch_n only_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o east_n and_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n ordain_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o three_o palestina_n and_o to_o he_o of_o constantinople_n asia_n minor_fw-la pontus_n and_o thracia_n and_o the_o 7._o barbarous_a province_n that_o be_v to_o say_v russia_n and_o muscovia_n without_o ever_o go_v about_o either_o that_o or_o any_o other_o council_n to_o set_v out_o a_o part_n to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d bishop_n of_o rome_n nor_o prescribe_v limit_n out_o of_o which_o he_o may_v not_o exercise_v his_o authority_n but_o even_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n speak_v of_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n with_o restriction_n assign_v he_o the_o province_n of_o egypt_n libya_n and_o pentapolis_n and_o of_o the_o pope_n without_o restriction_n leave_v he_o the_o way_n free_a 6._o and_o assign_v he_o no_o limit_n nor_o any_o determinate_a number_n of_o province_n the_o custom_n say_v the_o canon_n observe_v from_o antiquity_n in_o egypt_n libya_n and_o pentapolis_n be_v to_o be_v maintain_v to_o wit_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n have_v the_o power_n of_o all_o those_o thing_n for_o as_o much_o as_o this_o be_v also_o accustom_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n by_o mean_n whereof_o it_o remain_v in_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o reader_n to_o supply_v the_o word_n over_o all_o the_o church_n and_o to_o express_v the_o canon_n in_o this_o sense_n that_o the_o custom_n observe_v from_o antiquity_n in_o egypt_n libya_n and_o pentapolis_n shall_v be_v maintain_v to_o wit_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n have_v the_o power_n of_o all_o those_o thing_n for_o as_o much_o as_o this_o be_v also_o accustom_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n over_o all_o the_o church_n for_o what_o be_v this_o 〈◊〉_d custom_n practise_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o that_o whereof_o saint_n ireneus_n 3._o speak_v when_o he_o say_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n because_o of_o a_o more_o 262._o mighty_a principality_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o all_o the_o church_n shall_v agree_v and_o saint_n austin_n when_o he_o write_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v always_o flourish_v the_o principality_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o socrates_n when_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n bare_a that_o vo_o decree_n may_v be_v make_v in_o the_o church_n without_o the_o 8._o sentence_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o sozomene_n when_o he_o note_n that_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n because_o of_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o seat_n the_o care_n of_o all_o thing_n apportain_v and_o so_o who_o see_v not_o that_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o council_n be_v net_n to_o compare_v the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n with_o the_o pope_n formal_o but_o anological_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o council_n be_v not_o to_o compare_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n over_o the_o province_n of_o egypt_n libya_n and_o pentapolis_n with_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n over_o any_o determinate_a territory_n but_o to_o compare_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n over_o the_o province_n of_o egypt_n libya_n and_o pentapolis_n with_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o in_o this_o clause_n for_o as_o much_o as_o this_o be_v also_o accustom_a to_o the_o bishopof_n rome_n there_o be_v a_o omission_n 6._o which_o shall_v be_v supply_v either_o by_o the_o extent_n of_o a_o universal_a word_n of_o particular_a restriction_n now_o that_o the_o design_n of_o the_o council_n be_v not_o to_o compare_v the_o sea_n of_o alexandria_n as_o head_n of_o the_o particular_a prefecture_n of_o egypt_n with_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n as_o head_n of_o a_o other_o particular_a prefecture_n but_o to_o compare_v the_o sea_n of_o alexandria_n as_o head_n of_o the_o particular_a prefecture_n of_o egypt_n with_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n as_o head_n of_o all_o the_o empire_n the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n which_o shall_v be_v speak_v of_o hereafter_o show_v it_o 34_o when_o it_o say_v design_v the_o temporal_a cause_n of_o the_o privilege_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o father_n yield_v the_o privilege_n to_o the_o sea_n of_o the_o ancient_a rome_n for_o as_o much_o as_o that_o city_n hold_v the_o empire_n and_o the_o confront_v of_o these_o 18._o word_n of_o socrates_n the_o ecclesiastical_a rule_n bare_a that_o no_o law_n shall_v be_v introduce_v into_o the_o church_n without_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n with_o these_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o egypt_n to_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n permit_v we_o to_o attend_v the_o 4._o ordination_n of_o our_o archbishop_n to_o the_o end_n that_o according_a to_o the_o ancient_a custom_n we_o may_v follow_v his_o sentence_n and_o again_o it_o be_v the_o custom_n in_o the_o province_n of_o the_o prefecture_n of_o egypt_n to_o do_v no_o such_o thing_n without_o the_o sentence_n and_o ordinance_n of_o the_o archbishop_n ib._n of_o alexandria_n confirm_v it_o for_o to_o say_v that_o there_o can_v be_v nothing_o establish_v in_o the_o universal_a church_n without_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o say_v there_o can_v be_v nothing_o establish_v in_o the_o province_n of_o the_o prefecture_n of_o egypt_n without_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n be_v it_o not_o to_o make_v the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n that_o in_o the_o prefecture_n of_o egypt_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v over_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o therefore_o the_o council_n say_v simple_o for_o as_o much_o as_o this_o be_v also_o accustom_a to_o the_o 6._o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o not_o specify_v where_o nor_o bring_v in_o 〈◊〉_d restriction_n what_o shall_v hinder_v we_o from_o supply_v over_o all_o the_o church_n and_o from_o answer_v that_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o council_n be_v to_o ordain_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n who_o in_o egypt_n libya_n and_o pentapolis_n be_v as_o vicar_n breed_v from_o the_o sea_n of_o saint_n peter_n who_o have_v there_o establish_v his_o second_o self_n that_o be_v to_o say_v his_o son_n and_o well-beloved_a disciple_n the_o evangelist_n saint_n mark_n shall_v have_v the_o superintendencie_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n in_o all_o these_o province_n for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o who_o 8_o as_o sozomene_n say_v because_o of_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o seat_n the_o care_n of_o all_o thing_n appertain_v have_v it_o general_o over_o all_o the_o church_n or_o if_o they_o will_v press_v we_o to_o reduce_v the_o enthymeme_n of_o the_o council_n into_o the_o form_n of_o a_o complete_a sillogisme_n what_o can_v hinder_v we_o from_o reduce_v it_o into_o this_o the_o same_o privilege_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o whole_a ibid._n church_n the_o other_o patriarch_n have_v proportionable_o every_o one_o in_o rearguard_n of_o his_o patriarkship_n now_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v this_o privilege_n that_o to_o he_o because_o of_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o sea_n the_o care_n of_o all_o thing_n pertain_v and_o that_o without_o he_o nothing_o can_v be_v decide_v of_o thing_n which_o concern_v the_o government_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n then_o ought_v to_o enjoy_v by_o proportion_n the_o same_o privilege_n in_o the_o province_n 8_o of_o his_o patriarkship_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o the_o province_n of_o egypt_n libya_n and_o pentapolis_n
to_o the_o blessedness_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a pope_n for_o as_o much_o as_o he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o most_o holy_a 6._o minister_n of_o god_n and_o by_o the_o place_n above_o cite_v of_o saint_n gregory_n the_o great_a which_o witness_n that_o the_o pope_n confirm_v even_o then_o that_o be_v to_o say_v fifty_o year_n after_o julian_n the_o former_a the_o election_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o first_o justinianea_n and_o send_v he_o the_o archiepiscopall_a mantle_n and_o the_o revocation_n of_o the_o vicarship_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o judge_v by_o appeal_n of_o the_o cause_n of_o his_o bishop_n &_o chastice_v he_o himself_o when_o he_o have_v misjudge_v but_o in_o sum_n whatsoever_o the_o sense_n of_o this_o addition_n of_o russinus_n be_v it_o import_v little_a to_o know_v it_o for_o have_v be_v excommunicate_v for_o his_o error_n in_o say_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o roman_a church_n who_o doubt_v but_o if_o he_o can_v insert_v into_o his_o translation_n any_o thing_n to_o the_o pope_n prejudice_n he_o have_v do_v it_o it_o 〈◊〉_d before_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n which_o will_v that_o to_o every_o church_n the_o prerogative_n thereof_o be_v preserve_v the_o roman_a church_n be_v 6._o she_o whereof_o s._n ireneus_n cry_v out_o to_o this_o church_n because_o of_o a_o more_o mighty_a principality_n that_o be_v to_o say_v because_o of_o a_o principality_n more_o mighty_a than_o 3._o the_o temporal_a it_o be_v necessary_a that_o all_o the_o church_n shall_v agree_v it_o be_v she_o that_o 〈◊〉_d s._n cyprian_n call_v the_o chair_n of_o peter_n and_o the_o principal_a church_n from_o whence_o the_o 〈◊〉_d all_o unity_n proceed_v it_o be_v she_o of_o who_o s._n jerom_n write_v i_o 〈◊〉_d know_v the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o this_o stone_n whosoever_o eat_v the_o lamb_n out_o of_o this_o house_n be_v profane_a it_o be_v she_o of_o who_o s._n austin_n say_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v always_o 〈◊〉_d the_o principality_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a it_o suffice_v that_o before_o 162._o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n which_o ordain_v that_o the_o ancient_a custom_n shall_v remain_v entire_a the_o law_n ecclesiastical_a sorbad_v to_o canonize_v church_n that_o be_v to_o 〈◊〉_d to_o make_v canon_n touch_v the_o generality_n of_o church_n without_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a custom_n bare_a that_o the_o final_a deposition_n of_o bishop_n can_v not_o be_v proceed_v to_o without_o attend_v the_o decision_n from_o rome_n and_o that_o from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o emperor_n gallienus_n that_o be_v to_o say_v more_o than_o sixty_o year_n before_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n the_o churchman_n of_o egypt_n desire_v to_o accuse_v dionysius_n bishop_n 2._o of_o alexandria_n their_o patriarch_n go_v up_o say_v saint_n athanasius_n patriarch_n of_o the_o same_o sea_n of_o alexandria_n to_o rome_n and_o accuse_v he_o before_o 〈◊〉_d bishop_n of_o rome_n it_o suffice_v that_o present_o after_o the_o same_o council_n 〈◊〉_d of_o nicaea_n when_o s._n athanasius_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n paul_n bishop_n of_o constantivople_n marcellus_n primate_n of_o galatia_n asclepas_n bishop_n of_o gaza_n in_o palestina_n have_v be_v depose_v by_o diverse_a counsel_n of_o the_o east_n julius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n restore_v to_o every_o one_o his_o church_n because_o to_o he_o say_v sozomene_n for_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o sea_n the_o care_n of_o all_o thing_n appertain_v it_o suffice_v 〈◊〉_d that_o after_o the_o death_n of_o athanasius_n pope_n damasus_n confirm_v the_o ordination_n of_o peter_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n successor_n to_o the_o same_o saint_n athanasius_n and_o restore_v he_o to_o his_o sea_n of_o alexandria_n it_o suffice_v that_o in_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n hold_v for_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o council_n of_o 12._o 〈◊〉_d &_o whereat_o assist_v beside_o more_o than_o three_o hundred_o other_o bishop_n the_o same_o osius_n that_o be_v precedent_n at_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n the_o same_o saint_n athanasius_n which_o have_v help_v to_o frame_v the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n the_o same_o protogenes_n bishop_n of_o sardica_n which_o be_v at_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n the_o episcopal_a appeal_n to_o the_o pope_n be_v authorize_v by_o a_o write_a law_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o all_o the_o province_n exhort_v to_o refer_v the_o affair_n to_o their_o head_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o the_o sea_n of_o the_o apostle_n peter_n it_o suffice_v that_o in_o the_o council_n of_o lampsacus_n in_o asia_n the_o macedonian_n purpose_v to_o return_n to_o the_o catholic_a church_n send_v their_o legate_n from_o asia_n to_o rome_n to_o protest_v obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n &_o to_o oblige_v themselves_o to_o come_v up_o to_o his_o tribunal_n or_o to_o the_o judge_n delegated_a by_o he_o in_o all_o cause_n that_o shall_v be_v attempt_v against_o they_o it_o suffice_v that_o in_o the_o council_n of_o tyana_n in_o cappadocia_n eustachius_n bishop_n of_o sebastia_n in_o armenia_n who_o have_v be_v depose_v by_o the_o council_n of_o melitina_n the_o metropolitan_a city_n of_o 70._o armenia_n bring_v letter_n of_o restitution_n from_o pope_n liberius_n be_v receive_v without_o form_n of_o process_n and_o have_v place_n as_o a_o bishop_n in_o the_o council_n it_o 8._o 〈◊〉_d that_o when_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n have_v cause_v s._n athanas_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n to_o be_v depose_v in_o a_o council_n of_o more_o than_o three_o hundred_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n and_o west_n he_o think_v he_o have_v not_o satisfy_v his_o desire_n if_o the_o thing_n say_v amianus_n marcellinus_n be_v not_o confirm_v by_o the_o authority_n 15._o whereof_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o eternal_a city_n be_v superior_n it_o suffice_v that_o when_o the_o same_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n which_o be_v now_o in_o question_n be_v renew_v in_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n the_o other_o patriarch_n and_o primat_n 2._o be_v forbid_v to_o meddle_v beyond_o their_o division_n let_v the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n say_v the_o synod_n govern_v only_o what_o belong_v to_o egypt_n and_o let_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o antioch_n admister_n only_o to_o the_o east_n where_o never_o council_n interdict_v the_o pope_n from_o meddle_v in_o matter_n which_o be_v out_o of_o his_o patriarkship_n contrariwise_o the_o pope_n in_o important_a occasion_n have_v always_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o east_n &_o judge_v by_o appeal_v the_o cause_n of_o other_o patriarkship_n the_o catholic_a counsel_n of_o the_o east_n themselves_o yield_v to_o be_v solicitor_n &_o executor_n of_o his_o sentence_n &_o opposite_o never_o any_o of_o the_o other_o patriarch_v once_o attempt_v to_o examine_v the_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o west_n and_o of_o the_o patriarchall_a division_n of_o the_o pope_n it_o suffice_v that_o in_o the_o 92._o milevitan_a council_n hold_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o asrica_n and_o by_o s._n austin_n among_o other_o it_o be_v affirm_v that_o the_o pope_n authority_n be_v of_o divine_a right_n 24._o and_o draw_v from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o then_o not_o to_o be_v restrain_v to_o the_o simple_a patriarkship_n of_o rome_n but_o universal_a and_o such_o as_o the_o law_n of_o the_o emperor_n valentinian_n the_o three_o describe_v it_o when_o it_o call_v the_o pope_n the_o rector_n of_o the_o universality_n of_o church_n and_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n when_o 7._o he_o write_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o most_o holy_a minister_n of_o god_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o patara_n in_o lycia_n one_o of_o the_o province_n in_o asia_n when_o he_o say_v to_o the_o same_o emperor_n justinian_n that_o there_o be_v many_o king_n and_o prince_n in_o 22._o the_o world_n but_o there_o be_v no_o one_o of_o they_o that_o be_v over_o all_o the_o earth_n as_o the_o pope_n be_v over_o the_o church_n of_o all_o the_o world_n it_o suffice_v that_o in_o the_o general_a council_n of_o ephesus_n when_o the_o father_n have_v execute_v the_o sentence_n of_o deposition_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v pronounce_v at_o rome_n against_o nestorius_n when_o they_o shall_v cael._n have_v pass_v to_o the_o cause_n of_o john_n patriark_n of_o antioch_n the_o council_n reserve_v the_o judgement_n thereof_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o according_a to_o the_o ancient_a custom_n and_o tradition_n apostolical_a it_o suffice_v that_o in_o the_o false_a council_n 4._o of_o ephesus_n after_o dioscorus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o his_o pretend_a general_a council_n have_v depose_v flavianus_n archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n and_o theodoret_n bishop_n of_o sire_n flavianus_n say_v the_o emperor_n valentinian_n ibid._n
eustathius_n he_o begin_v the_o twenty_o chapter_n 20._o of_o his_o second_o book_n with_o these_o word_n in_o this_o time_n marcus_n have_v for_o a_o short_a space_n hold_v the_o bishop_n sea_n of_o rome_n after_o sylvester_n julius_n take_v the_o government_n of_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n and_o maximus_n after_o macarius_n of_o that_o of_o jerusalem_n from_o whence_o it_o appear_v manifest_o either_o that_o the_o word_n julius_n which_o be_v in_o the_o precedent_a book_n where_o sozomene_n say_v speak_v of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n julius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n because_o of_o his_o age_n be_v not_o there_o be_v a_o note_n which_o slip_v out_o of_o the_o margin_n into_o the_o text_n and_o that_o sozomene_n have_v simple_o say_v as_o eusebius_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n because_o of_o his_o 7._o age_n be_v not_o there_o or_o that_o instead_o of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d we_o must_v read_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v to_o say_v ancient_a or_o venerable_a but_o because_o we_o have_v handle_v this_o matter_n more_o at_o large_a elsewhere_o to_o wit_n in_o the_o preface_n compose_v by_o we_o at_o rome_n but_o publish_v without_o our_o name_n before_o gelasius_n of_o cyzica_n we_o 1._o will_v here_o content_v ourselves_o to_o remit_v the_o reader_n to_o that_o and_o the_o while_o we_o will_v examine_v the_o place_n of_o sozomene_n sozomene_n then_o say_v 〈◊〉_d write_v at_o this_o council_n assist_v of_o the_o sea_n 16._o apostolic_a macarius_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n eustathius_n bishop_n of_o antioch_n alexander_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n and_o as_o for_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n he_o be_v not_o there_o because_o of_o his_o age_n but_o in_o his_o steed_n there_o assist_v vito_n and_o uincentius_n priest_n of_o the_o same_o church_n this_o be_v true_a but_o so_o far_o of_o be_v it_o that_o from_o hence_o it_o follow_v that_o sozomene_n put_v the_o pope_n legate_n in_o the_o four_o place_n as_o contrariwise_o it_o be_v evident_a even_o there_o that_o he_o attribure_v to_o they_o the_o first_o for_o be_v constrain_v to_o follow_v the_o tract_n of_o his_o discourse_n which_o oblige_v he_o since_o he_o have_v purpose_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o apostolic_a prelate_n which_o assist_v at_o the_o council_n to_o begin_v with_o those_o that_o be_v there_o in_o person_n before_o he_o will_v make_v mention_n of_o those_o which_o be_v there_o but_o by_o their_o legate_n he_o ●●erted_v of_o set_a purpose_n the_o order_n of_o the_o enumeration_n and_o begin_v with_o the_o four_o and_o last_o of_o all_o the_o patriarch_n which_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n who_o be_v then_o but_o a_o patriarcke_n of_o honour_n and_o then_o go_v up_o increase_v to_o he_o of_o antioch_n who_o be_v the_o three_o and_o then_o come_v to_o he_o of_o alexandria_n who_o be_v the_o second_o to_o the_o end_n to_o keep_v the_o last_o place_n of_o the_o progress_n for_o the_o pope_n legate_n now_o what_o can_v be_v do_v more_o express_o and_o with_o more_o note_n to_o testify_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o pope_n a_o man_n that_o be_v to_o describe_v a_o imperial_a diet_n where_o the_o emperor_n assist_v but_o representativelie_a will_v begin_v with_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o empire_n who_o have_v assist_v there_o in_o person_n but_o to_o keep_v the_o great_a dignity_n to_o the_o emperor_n will_v invert_v the_o order_n of_o the_o other_o prince_n and_o will_v say_v rise_v from_o the_o last_o to_o the_o first_o of_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o empire_n there_o assist_v at_o the_o imperial_a diet_n the_o marquese_n of_o brandenbourg_n the_o count_n palatine_n the_o duke_n of_o saxony_n the_o archbishop_n of_o collen_n the_o archbishop_n of_o 〈◊〉_d the_o archbishop_n of_o mentz_n and_o the_o king_n of_o bohemia_n and_o as_o for_o the_o emperor_n he_o be_v not_o there_o but_o depute_v two_o vicar_n there_o to_o hold_v his_o place_n shall_v he_o in_o do_v so_o give_v the_o last_o rank_n to_o the_o emperor_n or_o the_o first_o for_o that_o the_o order_n report_v in_o sozomene_n be_v the_o invert_v order_n and_o not_o the_o direct_a order_n of_o the_o sea_n of_o the_o patriarch_n it_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o calvin_n who_o cry_v out_o among_o the_o patriarch_n jerusalem_n 6._o have_v ●en●_n the_o last_o and_o by_o all_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n which_o teach_v we_o that_o jerusalem_n be_v the_o four_o of_o the_o patriarkship_n and_o antioch_n the_o three_o and_o alexandria_n the_o second_o and_o by_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicoa_n itself_o which_o set_v alexandria_n before_o antioch_n and_o antioch_n before_o jerusalem_n and_o by_o the_o express_a report_n that_o socrates_n 12._o make_v of_o the_o direct_a order_n of_o the_o council_n take_v by_o the_o very_a synodical_a book_n of_o s._n athanasius_n which_o be_v thus_o osius_n bishop_n of_o 〈◊〉_d uito_fw-la and_o vincentius_n priest_n alexander_n of_o egypt_n eustathius_n of_o great_a antioch_n macarius_n of_o jerusalem_n in_o which_o catalogue_n saint_n athanasius_n and_o socrates_n put_v osius_n the_o bishop_n and_o uito_fw-la and_o uincentius_n priest_n as_o hold_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o place_n in_o the_o first_o rank_n and_o alexander_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n who_o be_v the_o second_o patriarch_n in_o the_o second_o place_n and_o eustachius_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n who_o be_v the_o three_o patriarch_n in_o the_o three_o and_o macarius_n patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n who_o be_v the_o four_o patriarch_n in_o the_o four_o place_n but_o they_o will_v reply_v that_o eusebius_n and_o after_o he_o theodoret_n and_o so●omene_n make_v mention_v but_o of_o two_o legate_n of_o the_o pope_n vito_n and_o vincentio_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o consequent_o that_o s._n athanasius_n and_o socrates_n can_v not_o place_n osius_n vito_n and_o vincentius_n as_o be_v all_o three_o legate_n to_o the_o pope_n in_o one_o same_o place_n to_o this_o reply_n then_o the_o answer_n shall_v be_v that_o the_o pope_n 〈◊〉_d accustom_v to_o send_v two_o sort_n of_o legate_n to_o the_o general_a counsel_n celebrate_v in_o the_o east_n the_o one_o bishop_n take_v out_o of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o roman_a patriarchall_a church_n as_o arcadius_n and_o proiectas_fw-la bishop_n to_o the_o first_o council_n of_o ephesus_n julian_n bishop_n of_o pozzoly_a to_o the_o second_o paschasinus_n bishop_n of_o lilybea_n to_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o the_o other_o priest_n take_v out_o of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o particular_a roman_a church_n 〈◊〉_d vito_n and_o vincentius_n to_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n archidamus_n and_o philo●elius_n to_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n philip_n to_o the_o first_o council_n of_o ephe●●●●_n boniface_n to_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o be_v that_o the_o body_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d church_n be_v never_o at_o the_o general_a counsel_n celebrate_v out_o of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o west_n but_o the_o pope_n hold_v at_o rome_n a_o council_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o west_n who_o resolution_n he_o send_v by_o a_o legation_n to_o the_o council_n of_o the_o other_o patriarchall_a division_n assemble_v in_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d at_o 〈◊〉_d confirm_v by_o a_o council_n hold_v afterward_o that_o which_o have_v be_v decide_v at_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o other_o patriarchall_a division_n assemble_v in_o the_o east_n and_o from_o this_o concourse_n arise_v the_o absolute_a title_n of_o general_a council_n the_o legate_n then_o that_o the_o pope_n send_v to_o 〈◊〉_d the_o voice_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d church_n to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d counsel_n assemble_v in_o the_o east_n be_v of_o two_o sort_n the_o one_o take_v from_o the_o body_n of_o the_o bishop_n to_o represent_v in_o general_a the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v 〈◊〉_d the_o person_n of_o the_o pope_n as_o of_o the_o other_o bishop_n of_o the_o west_n and_o the_o other_o priest_n and_o deacon_n take_v from_o the_o 〈◊〉_d clergy_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o represent_v particular_o the_o 〈◊〉_d and_o person_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o this_o be_v some_o time_n the_o practice_n of_o those_o of_o the_o east_n in_o the_o western_a ex_fw-la pedition_n for_o when_o flavianus_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n send_v his_o embassage_n to_o rome_n to_o recover_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o pope_n he_o add_v to_o it_o beside_o the_o priest_n and_o deacon_n of_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n acacius_n bishop_n of_o beroe_n in_o syria_n one_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o his_o patriarkship_n who_o be_v say_v theodoret_n 23._o head_n of_o the_o legation_n and_o some_o other_o bishop_n of_o the_o same_o division_n to_o the_o end_n to_o show_v the_o consent_n of_o his_o patriarchall_a church_n with_o his_o particular_a church_n but_o let_v we_o leave_v those_o of_o the_o east_n and_o return_v to_o the_o pope_n the_o pope_n then_o
call_v by_o he_o or_o at_o his_o 17._o instance_n but_o for_o 〈◊〉_d much_o as_o that_o council_n which_o be_v a_o particular_a council_n have_v undertake_v as_o compound_v of_o arrian_n bishop_n who_o violate_v all_o order_n and_o discipline_n to_o decide_v thing_n that_o concern_v the_o universal_a church_n ordain_v in_o hate_n to_o saint_n athanasius_n that_o every_o bishop_n that_o after_o he_o have_v be_v depose_v by_o a_o synod_n shall_v continue_v still_o to_o perform_v episcopal_a function_n without_o have_v be_v first_o reestablisht_v by_o a_o other_o great_a synod_n shall_v be_v incapable_a of_o restitution_n and_o that_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n bear_v that_o there_o can_v no_o decree_n be_v make_v in_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o calvin_n himself_o interpret_v it_o 7._o for_o thing_n regard_v the_o universal_a church_n without_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n he_o reproach_v it_o to_o they_o that_o they_o have_v exceed_v the_o power_n of_o a_o particular_a council_n that_o be_v to_o say_v have_v decide_v the_o affair_n which_o concern_v the_o general_a government_n of_o the_o church_n without_o have_v invite_v he_o to_o assist_v at_o it_o either_o by_o himself_o or_o by_o his_o legate_n a_o thing_n that_o if_o we_o be_v strip_v of_o all_o other_o argument_n will_v sufficient_o show_v the_o pope_n authority_n for_o if_o the_o absence_n of_o the_o pope_n alone_o and_o not_o of_o any_o other_o patriarch_n or_o metropolitan_a be_v a_o impediment_n to_o the_o make_v of_o decree_n to_o oblige_v the_o universal_a church_n how_o can_v it_o be_v but_o the_o pope_n must_v be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o superior_a of_o the_o other_o patriarch_n to_o the_o three_o objection_n which_o be_v that_o saint_n jerom_n speak_v of_o a_o certain_a 2._o council_n hold_v among_o the_o gaul_n cry_n what_o emperor_n have_v command_v this_o synod_n to_o he_o assemble_v from_o whence_o they_o infer_v that_o the_o emperor_n only_o call_v the_o general_a counsel_n we_o answer_v it_o be_v a_o very_a sophism_n for_o the_o council_n whereof_o saint_n jerom_n speak_v be_v not_o a_o general_a council_n but_o a_o particular_a that_o ruffinus_n pretend_v to_o have_v be_v hold_v in_o gaul_n against_o saint_n hillary_n now_o we_o agree_v of_o all_o side_n and_o calvin_n himself_o confess_v it_o 7._o that_o the_o metropolitan_o primate_fw-la and_o patriarch_n call_v particular_a counsel_n and_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o western_a church_n hold_v at_o rome_n by_o pope_n damasus_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o macedonian_n by_o pope_n celestine_n against_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o nestorian_n by_o pope_n leo_n against_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o eutychian_o by_o pope_n agatho_n against_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o monothelite_n enforce_v the_o most_o obstinate_a to_o confess_v that_o the_o pope_n if_o not_o as_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n yet_o at_o least_o as_o patriarch_n of_o the_o west_n call_v the_o patriarchall_a counsel_n of_o the_o western_a church_n and_o not_o only_o call_v the_o patriarchall_a counsel_n of_o the_o western_a church_n but_o alsoe_o when_o there_o be_v need_v cause_v to_o be_v call_v extraordinary_o the_o national_a or_o provincial_a counsel_n of_o such_o a_o nation_n or_o province_n of_o the_o west_n as_o he_o think_v to_o be_v necessary_a as_o it_o appear_v for_o africa_n from_o these_o wordo_n s._n augustine_n 157._o the_o ecclesiastical_a necessity_n enjoin_v we_o by_o the_o reverend_a pope_n zosime_fw-la bishop_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a have_v draw_v we_o to_o caesaria_n and_o for_o macedonia_n achaia_n and_o thessalia_n from_o these_o of_o pope_n leo_n to_o anastasius_n bishop_n of_o thessalonica_n his_o legate_n in_o those_o province_n 82._o if_o there_o be_v any_o mayor_n cause_n move_v for_o which_o it_o shall_v be_v necessary_a to_o cause_v a_o episcopal_a assembly_n to_o be_v call_v let_v it_o suffice_v thou_o to_o call_v two_o bishop_n of_o every_o province_n such_o as_o the_o metropolitan_o shall_v choose_v and_o for_o spain_n from_o these_o of_o the_o same_o leo_n 91._o we_o have_v send_v letter_n to_o our_o brother_n and_o fellow_n bishop_n of_o arragon_n of_o carthagena_n of_o portugal_n and_o of_o galitia_fw-la and_o bave_v declare_v to_o they_o the_o assembly_n of_o a_o general_a council_n that_o be_v to_o say_v general_a for_o spain_n in_o which_o place_n they_o must_v not_o cavil_n upon_o the_o word_n council_n and_o convert_v it_o into_o counsel_n for_o the_o first_o council_n of_o bracara_n report_v the_o same_o history_n say_v praefac_o by_o the_o commandment_n of_o leo_n the_o bishop_n of_o arragon_n carthagena_n portugal_n and_o andaluzia_n hold_v a_o council_n among_o they_o but_o beside_o the_o spiritual_a authority_n be_v it_o of_o metropolitan_o primate_fw-la and_o patriarch_n for_o the_o call_n of_o particular_a counsel_n be_v it_o of_o the_o pope_n as_o we_o pretend_v for_o the_o call_n of_o general_a counsel_n the_o temporal_a authority_n of_o the_o emperor_n be_v alsoe_o requisite_a aswell_o to_o avoid_v state_n jealousy_n and_o hinder_v suspicion_n of_o conspiracy_n against_o the_o empire_n as_o to_o take_v order_n for_o the_o charge_n of_o transportation_n staple_n and_o provision_n and_o to_o furnish_v the_o cost_n of_o the_o voyage_n which_o the_o church_n then_o new_o out_o of_o the_o persecution_n of_o the_o pagan_n can_v yet_o hardly_o bear_v and_o therefore_o when_o there_o be_v question_n of_o call_v not_o only_o general_a counsel_n of_o all_o the_o earth_n but_o alsoe_o the_o general_a council_n of_o the_o western_a church_n the_o temporal_a authority_n of_o the_o emperor_n concur_v with_o the_o spiritual_a authority_n of_o pope_n for_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o convocation_n the_o emperor_n valentinian_n say_v pope_n sixtus_n the_o three_o tymefellowe_n to_o saint_n cyrill_n orient_n have_v command_v by_o our_o authority_n that_o the_o synod_n shall_v be_v call_v and_o when_o there_o be_v question_n of_o calling_n national_n synod_n if_o it_o be_v within_o the_o country_n of_o the_o empire_n the_o authority_n of_o emperor_n or_o of_o their_o lievetenan_n be_v also_o require_v and_o if_o it_o be_v within_o the_o eclipse_v country_n or_o not_o depend_v from_o the_o empire_n that_o of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o nation_n where_o it_o be_v to_o be_v celebrate_v must_v be_v join_v thereto_o as_o when_o the_o first_o council_n of_o bracara_n in_o spain_n be_v call_v it_o be_v say_v it_o be_v call_v prae_n by_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o glorious_a king_n ariamira_n or_o according_a to_o other_o theodomina_fw-la and_o when_o the_o second_o council_n of_o tours_n speak_v of_o the_o first_o council_n of_o orleans_n hold_v under_o clovis_n it_o be_v say_v it_o be_v do_v 22_o at_o the_o request_n of_o the_o most_o invincible_a king_n clovis_n and_o when_o the_o second_o council_n of_o mascon_n be_v hold_v under_o king_n gontran_n it_o be_v ordain_v 20._o that_o the_o ordinary_a national_n counsel_n shall_v be_v celebrate_v from_o three_o year_n to_o three_o year_n and_o that_o the_o care_n to_o cause_v they_o to_o be_v assemble_v appertain_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o lion_n and_o the_o disposition_n to_o the_o most_o magnificent_a prince_n now_o if_o the_o temporal_a convocation_n of_o national_n counsel_n make_v by_o the_o emperor_n or_o by_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o nation_n be_v 〈◊〉_d impediment_n but_o that_o the_o spiritual_a convocation_n of_o the_o same_o counsel_n may_v be_v due_a to_o the_o primat_n of_o the_o nation_n why_o shall_v the_o temporal_a convocation_n of_o general_a counsel_n make_v by_o the_o emperor_n be_v a_o impediment_n why_o the_o authority_n to_o call_v they_o spiritual_o that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o behalf_n of_o spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a power_n may_v not_o belong_v to_o the_o pope_n for_o that_o then_o as_o we_o have_v new_o say_v the_o authority_n of_o emperor_n be_v necessary_a and_o 〈◊〉_d to_o make_v the_o decision_n of_o counsel_n executorie_a by_o the_o secular_a arm_n and_o by_o the_o minister_n and_o officer_n of_o temporal_a justice_n who_o otherwise_o will_v not_o have_v labour_v to_o punish_v corporal_o those_o that_o shall_v contradict_v and_o that_o be_v the_o cause_n wherefore_o the_o father_n of_o the_o counsel_n be_v so_o careful_a to_o set_v this_o title_n in_o the_o forefront_n of_o their_o act_n the_o most_o holy_a and_o general_a council_n call_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o most_o religious_a emperor_n to_o the_o end_n to_o make_v their_o decree_n executorie_a temporallie_o and_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o secular_a tribunal_n but_o not_o to_o make_v they_o obligatorie_n in_o conscience_n and_o spiritual_o for_o when_o be_v it_o say_v saint_n athanasius_n 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n have_v ever_o take_v authority_n from_o the_o emperor_n and_o indeed_o who_o can_v doubt_v but_o that_o
after_o the_o death_n of_o siluerius_n after_o which_o the_o clergy_n of_o rome_n for_o the_o benefit_n of_o peace_n have_v accept_v he_o have_v be_v persecute_v and_o unworthy_o use_v at_o constantinople_n by_o the_o emperor_n with_o who_o he_o be_v constrain_v to_o spend_v his_o life_n in_o exile_n because_o the_o goth_n under_o the_o conduct_n of_o their_o new_a king_n totilas_n have_v again_o take_v rome_n whereto_o will_v this_o turn_n but_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o uigilius_n and_o to_o the_o shame_n of_o the_o emperor_n for_o say_v not_o nicephorus_n that_o the_o emperor_n repent_v supra_fw-la it_o and_o do_v not_o the_o same_o act_n show_v that_o he_o send_v the_o principal_a minister_n of_o his_o empire_n to_o uigilius_n to_o pray_v he_o to_o return_v and_o that_o uigilius_n during_o this_o persecution_n remain_v so_o constant_a that_o he_o will_v 〈◊〉_d never_o give_v any_o way_n to_o the_o emperor_n violence_n but_o depose_v in_o constantinople_n itself_o theodorus_n archbishop_n of_o caesarea_n the_o principal_a governor_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o excommunicate_v menas_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o all_o that_o adhere_v to_o he_o do_v it_o not_o through_o show_v the_o confidence_n he_o have_v in_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o sea_n we_o decree_v thou_o say_v he_o o_o theodorus_n council_n late_a bishop_n of_o caesarea_n by_o the_o publication_n of_o this_o sentence_n deprive_v aswell_o of_o sacerdot_n all_o honour_n and_o of_o the_o catholic_a communion_n as_o of_o all_o episcopal_a power_n and_o function_n and_o we_o ordain_v that_o thou_o shall_v hereafter_o apply_v thy-self_n to_o nothing_o but_o to_o the_o tear_n of_o penance_n by_o which_o have_v obtain_v remission_n of_o thy_o crime_n thou_o may_v recover_v if_o thou_o deserve_v it_o the_o place_n of_o 〈◊〉_d and_o of_o communion_n with_o i_o or_o after_o my_o death_n with_o my_o successor_n and_o thou_o menas_n bishop_n of_o the_o city_n of_o constantinople_n which_o be_v enwrap_v with_o the_o same_o crime_n with_o all_o the_o bishop_n metropolitan_o and_o micropolitans_n &c_n &c_n we_o suspend_v you_o from_o the_o sacred_a communion_n till_o each_o of_o you_o acknowledge_v the_o error_n os_fw-la his_o prevarication_n have_v blot_v out_o before_o we_o his_o proper_a fault_n with_o a_o competent_a satisfaction_n and_o this_o that_o he_o cry_v out_o number_v theodorus_n ibidem_fw-la his_o crime_n thou_o be_v come_v in_o despise_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a which_o have_v pronounce_v interdiction_n by_o we_o into_o the_o church_n where_o there_o hang_v the_o emperor_n edicte_n 〈◊〉_d there_o have_v celebrate_v the_o solemnity_n of_o mass_n and_o this_o that_o he_o add_v we_o have_v charge_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o most_o clement_a 〈◊〉_d emperor_n to_o signify_v to_o he_o from_o we_o that_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o communicate_v with_o those_o which_o have_v by_o we_o be_v excommunicate_v lest_o he_o thereby_o run_v which_o god_n forbid_v into_o a_o grievous_a sin_n do_v it_o not_o show_v that_o the_o pope_n in_o excommunicate_v the_o other_o bishop_n archbishop_n and_o patriarch_n do_v not_o only_o pretend_v to_o separate_v himself_o from_o their_o communion_n but_o to_o separate_v they_o and_o cut_v they_o of_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n and_o as_o for_o the_o persecution_n of_o the_o empress_n which_o happen_v long_o before_o and_o for_o a_o other_o cause_n to_o wit_n forasmuch_o as_o vigilius_n after_o his_o predecessor_n siluerius_n be_v dead_a and_o that_o he_o be_v become_v true_a pope_n will_v not_o keep_v the_o promise_n that_o he_o have_v make_v and_o secret_o accomplish_v to_o she_o during_o his_o antipapacy_n to_o admit_v anthymus_n and_o the_o other_o eutychian_o into_o his_o communion_n what_o great_a glory_n can_v uigilius_n receive_v then_o that_o whereof_o s._n gregory_n speak_v when_o he_o write_v pope_n uigilius_n constitute_v in_o the_o royal_a city_n that_o be_v to_o say_v at_o 36._o constantinople_n publish_v a_o sentence_n of_o condemnation_n against_o theodora_n then_o empress_n and_o against_o the_o acephales_n and_o what_o more_o visible_a punishment_n can_v the_o empress_n receive_v then_o that_o whereof_o victor_n tunonensis_n write_v the_o nine_o year_n after_o the_o consulship_n of_o basilius_n the_o empress_n theodora_n enemy_n chron._n to_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n strike_v her_o whole_a body_n over_o with_o the_o wound_n of_o a_o universal_a canker_n that_o be_v to_o say_v with_o leprosy_n prodigiouslie_o end_v her_o life_n for_o whereas_o the_o same_o victor_n who_o be_v a_o schismatic_n and_o take_v part_n with_o rusticus_n the_o deacon_n and_o other_o roman_a clerk_n revolt_v against_o pope_n vigilius_n and_o against_o the_o five_o general_a council_n write_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o schismatical_a bishop_n of_o africa_n for_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n of_o africa_n take_v the_o other_o part_n excommunicate_v vigilius_n there_o have_v already_o be_v two_o thing_n speak_v of_o concern_v this_o the_o one_o that_o they_o hold_v not_o uigilius_n ibidem_fw-la for_o true_a pope_n but_o for_o a_o intrusive_a pope_n because_o he_o have_v usurp_v the_o papacy_n his_o predecessor_n siluerius_n be_v yet_o alive_a as_o it_o appear_v by_o this_o that_o the_o same_o victor_n place_v a_o little_a after_o among_o the_o nullity_n of_o the_o five_o general_a council_n the_o vice_n of_o the_o creation_n of_o uigilius_n who_o have_v say_v he_o basil._n 〈◊〉_d ordain_v bishop_n of_o rome_n siluerius_n be_v still_o alive_a and_o the_o other_o that_o pope_n siluerius_n have_v already_o long_o before_o excommunicate_v uigilius_n for_o have_v intrude_v himself_o into_o the_o papacy_n in_o these_o term_n do_v vigil_n thou_o then_o receive_v and_o those_o that_o consent_n which_o thou_o the_o sentence_n of_o pain_n of_o condemnation_n and_o know_v that_o be_v condemn_v by_o we_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o by_o the_o apostolic_a authority_n that_o the_o name_n and_o office_n of_o sacerdotal_a ministry_n be_v take_v from_o thou_o and_o again_o 〈◊〉_d siluerius_n pope_n of_o ibidem_fw-la the_o city_n of_o rome_n give_v consent_n to_o all_o the_o statute_n i_o have_v sign_v this_o decree_n of_o anathema_n against_o the_o usurper_n uigilius_n by_o mean_n whereof_o the_o act_n of_o the_o schismatical_a bishop_n of_o asrica_n against_o uigilius_n be_v rather_o a_o renovation_n and_o a_o application_n of_o the_o excommunication_n of_o pope_n silutrius_fw-la than_o a_o primitive_a and_o original_a excommunication_n to_o the_o three_o example_n which_o be_v that_o sigebert_n write_v that_o pope_n 409._o innocent_a the_o first_o and_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o west_n suspend_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o those_o of_o the_o east_n for_o the_o quarrel_n of_o saint_n chrysostome_n from_o whence_o the_o protestant_n infer_v that_o when_o the_o pope_n excommunicate_v the_o other_o bishop_n archbishop_n or_o patriarch_n he_o separate_v himself_o from_o their_o communion_n and_o do_v not_o separate_v they_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n we_o have_v three_o answer_n the_o first_o that_o it_o be_v a_o ridiculous_a thing_n to_o allege_v for_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o history_n of_o pope_n innocent_a and_o of_o s._n chrysostome_n sigebert_n who_o write_v seven_o hundred_o year_n after_o they_o and_o who_o be_v a_o open_a enemy_n to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o partaker_n with_o the_o emperor_n henry_n the_o four_o against_o pope_n gregory_n the_o seven_o and_o his_o successor_n the_o second_o that_o pope_n innocent_a the_o first_o do_v not_o suspend_v himself_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o those_o of_o the_o east_n but_o suspend_v those_o of_o the_o east_n from_o the_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n the_o which_o although_o they_o still_o continue_v in_o fact_n with_o some_o of_o their_o diocesan_n according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o schismatickes_n this_o hinder_v they_o not_o from_o be_v suspend_v by_o right_a and_o that_o they_o shall_v send_v to_o demand_v restitution_n of_o the_o pope_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o these_o word_n of_o the_o same_o innocent_a in_o the_o epistle_n to_o boniface_n know_v say_v he_o speak_v of_o those_o of_o 14._o antioch_n that_o we_o have_v receive_v they_o into_o our_o bowel_n lest_o the_o member_n which_o have_v a_o long_a while_n require_v health_n shall_v be_v exclude_v from_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o body_n and_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o maximianus_n what_o we_o have_v do_v in_o the_o behalf_n 16._o of_o those_o of_o antioch_n we_o will_v do_v it_o in_o the_o behalf_n of_o other_o if_o they_o will_v accomplish_v the_o same_o treaty_n and_o condition_n and_o send_v as_o those_o do_v to_o beseech_v by_o a_o solemn_a legation_n that_o the_o communion_n may_v be_v restore_v to_o they_o and_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o alexander_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n i_o have_v diligent_o inquire_v whether_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o bless_a
and_o in_o cut_v it_o of_o do_v not_o only_o cut_v it_o of_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o head_n only_o but_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o whole_a body_n or_o that_o the_o stock_n and_o root_n in_o cut_v of_o some_o branch_n cut_v not_o of_o itself_o from_o that_o but_o cut_v that_o of_o from_o itself_o and_o in_o cut_v it_o of_o cut_v it_o not_o of_o only_a from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o root_n but_o from_o that_o of_o the_o whole_a tree_n and_o therefore_o we_o alsoe_o see_v that_o in_o all_o the_o breach_n of_o communion_n which_o have_v be_v between_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o the_o other_o church_n there_o have_v happen_v four_o thing_n the_o first_o that_o when_o other_o church_n have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o roman_a all_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v always_o remain_v unite_v with_o the_o roman_a and_o have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o those_o which_o have_v forsake_v she_o the_o second_o that_o when_o it_o have_v be_v the_o roman_a church_n which_o have_v excommunicate_v other_o all_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v forsake_v they_o or_o if_o they_o not_o think_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o excommunication_n grievous_a have_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n with_o remonstrance_n and_o intercession_n to_o beseech_v she_o to_o suspend_v and_o revoke_v her_o censure_n as_o it_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o word_n of_o s._n ireneus_n to_o pope_n victor_n upon_o the_o excommunication_n of_o the_o asian_o he_o supra_fw-la exhort_v he_o not_o to_o cut_v of_o all_o the_o church_n of_o god_n 〈◊〉_d hold_v the_o tradition_n of_o this_o ancient_a custom_n and_o by_o those_o of_o dionysius_n bishop_n of_o 〈◊〉_d alexandria_n to_o pope_n steven_n upon_o the_o condemnation_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o cappadocia_n i_o have_v say_v he_o write_v beseech_v he_o for_o all_o these_o thing_n or_o occord_v to_o the_o other_o translation_n beseech_v he_o for_o they_o all_o and_o by_o these_o of_o socrates_n upon_o the_o pope_n censure_n against_o flavianus_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n 15._o theophilus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n have_v send_v the_o priest_n isidorus_n appease_v damasus_n you_o must_v read_v anastasius_n his_o indignation_n and_o represent_v to_o he_o that_o it_o be_v profitable_a for_o the_o concord_n of_o the_o people_n to_o forget_v the_o fault_n of_o flavianus_n and_o so_o the_o communion_n have_v be_v restore_v to_o flavianus_n the_o faction_n of_o the_o people_n of_o antioch_n be_v soon_o after_o reunite_v and_o by_o these_o of_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n upon_o pope_n innocent_n sentence_n against_o theophilus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n for_o s._n chrysostom_n cause_n it_o have_v be_v agree_v upon_o that_o concern_v the_o dissension_n of_o the_o roman_a and_o alexandrian_a church_n pope_n 2._o innocent_n shall_v be_v write_v to_o that_o both_o church_n may_v observe_v the_o peace_n that_o our_o lord_n have_v command_v for_o why_o shall_v it_o be_v ordain_v that_o pope_n innocent_n shall_v be_v write_v to_o and_o not_o theophilus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n but_o because_o it_o be_v the_o pope_n that_o keep_v the_o key_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o who_o it_o belong_v to_o receive_v the_o alexandrian_a church_n into_o her_o communion_n and_o not_o to_o the_o alexandrian_a church_n to_o receive_v the_o roman_a into_o her_o communion_n and_o in_o brief_a that_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o prescribe_v to_o the_o alexandrian_a the_o law_n of_o the_o reunion_n and_o not_o to_o the_o alexandrian_a to_o 〈◊〉_d they_o to_o the_o roman_a as_o theodoret_n witness_v that_o it_o happen_v a_o while_n after_o in_o these_o word_n john_n be_v dead_a those_o of_o the_o west_n will_v never_o admit_v the_o communion_n nether_a of_o the_o egyptian_n nor_o of_o those_o of_o the_o east_n nor_o of_o the_o `_o bishop_n 34._o of_o bosphorus_n and_o thrace_n till_o they_o have_v inscribe_v the_o name_n of_o this_o admirable_a personage_n into_o the_o roll_n of_o the_o bishop_n his_o predecessor_n and_o the_o three_o that_o when_o the_o separation_n have_v continue_v those_o that_o be_v exclude_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a have_v always_o be_v cast_v out_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o other_o catholic_a church_n and_o repute_v for_o heretic_n or_o schismatickes_n as_o it-appeares_a even_o in_o the_o business_n of_o the_o asian_o excommunicate_v by_o victor_n who_o sectary_n be_v afterward_o constrain_v 6._o to_o abjure_v their_o heresy_n in_o these_o term_n i_o anathematise_v all_o heresy_n and_o particular_o that_o of_o the_o quartodecumans_n and_o the_o fowrth_n that_o when_o the_o divided_a part_n be_v to_o be_v reunite_v the_o other_o church_n have_v always_o send_v to_o take_v and_o demand_v their_o restitution_n into_o the_o commnnion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n never_o send_v to_o take_v or_o demand_v that_o of_o other_o church_n those_o of_o the_o west_n say_v theodoret_n speak_v of_o 23._o flavianus_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n promise_v to_o lay_v by_o all_o bitterness_n and_o to_o 〈◊〉_d the_o ambassador_n that_o flavianus_n shall_v send_v which_o the_o divine_a flavianus_n have_v hear_v he_o send_v a_o legation_n of_o famous_a bishop_n and_o priest_n and_o deacon_n of_o antioch_n to_o rome_n and_o socrates_n the_o communion_n have_v be_v restore_v to_o 15._o flavianus_n the_o part_n of_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n be_v soon_o after_o reunited_a and_o pope_n innocent_a the_o first_o write_v to_o alexander_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n upon_o s._n john_n chrysostom_n cause_n i_o have_v diligent_o in_o quire_v whether_o 17._o the_o case_n of_o the_o bless_a bishop_n john_n have_v be_v satisfy_v in_o all_o point_n and_o have_v find_v by_o those_o of_o your_o 〈◊〉_d that_o all_o thing_n have_v be_v accomplish_v according_a to_o our_o desire_n i_o have_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n admit_v the_o communion_n of_o your_o church_n and_o 〈◊〉_d treat_v of_o the_o same_o matter_n john_n be_v dead_a those_o of_o the_o west_n will_v supra_fw-la never_o admit_v the_o communion_n neither_o of_o the_o egyptian_n nor_o of_o those_o of_o the_o east_n nor_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o bosphorus_n and_o thrace_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o division_n of_o constantinople_n till_o they_o have_v inscribe_v the_o name_n of_o that_o admirable_a personage_n into_o the_o roll_n of_o the_o bishop_n his_o predecessor_n and_o scarce_o esteem_v arsacius_n who_o have_v succeed_v he_o 〈◊〉_d to_o 〈◊〉_d salute_v and_o as_o for_o atticus_n successor_n to_o arsacius_n after_o many_o legation_n ibid._n and_o 〈◊〉_d for_o peace_n they_o final_o receive_v he_o but_o when_o he_o have_v first_o add_v the_o name_n of_o john_n to_o the_o other_o bishop_n and_o pope_n leo_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o anatolius_n 38._o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n concern_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n we_o will_v say_v he_o that_o by_o our_o legate_n the_o care_n of_o the_o affair_n be_v communicate_v to_o thou_o it_o be_v ordain_v that_o those_o that_o with_o full_a satisfaction_n shall_v condemn_v their_o evil_a action_n and_o rather_o choose_v to_o accuse_v then_o to_o defend_v themselves_o shall_v enjoy_v the_o unity_n of_o our_o peace_n and_o communion_n and_o else_o where_o but_o as_o for_o those_o that_o have_v more_o grievous_o sin_v if_o they_o after_o such_o satisfaction_n as_o it_o shall_v seem_v it_o ought_v not_o 44._o to_o be_v refuse_v etc._n etc._n let_v the_o thing_n be_v reserve_v to_o the_o more_o mature_a determination_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o pope_n hormisdas_n tyme-felowe_n with_o the_o emperor_n justin_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o epiphanius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n you_o must_v say_v he_o put_v on_o my_o person_n and_o of_o those_o that_o shall_v 〈◊〉_d with_o you_o in_o communion_n ibid._n and_o by_o you_o to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a inform_v we_o by_o your_o letter_n therein_o 〈◊〉_d therein_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o libel_n which_o they_o shall_v have_v present_v and_o again_o which_o we_o think_v wought_v to_o impose_v upon_o you_o lay_v our_o charge_n upon_o your_o diligence_n because_o you_o have_v give_v no_o small_a proof_n of_o your_o resistance_n to_o heretic_n and_o victor_n of_o tune_n report_v the_o same_o history_n the_o emperor_n justin_n reunite_v those_o of_o the_o east_n etc._n etc._n with_o chrome_n 〈◊〉_d satisfaction_n for_o those_o of_o the_o west_n and_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n nephew_n and_o successor_n to_o justin_n in_o the_o epistle_n to_o pope_n john_n surname_v 〈◊〉_d we_o have_v hasten_v to_o submit_v and_o unit_fw-la to_o your_o holiness_n sea_n all_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o 8._o east_n country_n and_o certain_o if_o the_o pope_n have_v hold_v no_o other_o rank_n in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n than_o the_o other_o patriarch_n
bisop_n of_o aptunge_v they_o first_o obtain_v a_o judgement_n of_o seventy_o bishop_n in_o africa_n against_o he_o then_o discern_v that_o cecilianus_n despise_v 〈◊〉_d judgement_n as_o well_o because_o it_o be_v give_v against_o a_o absent_a person_n as_o because_o as_o saint_n austin_n say_v that_o he_o see_v himself_o unite_v by_o communicatory_a 162._o letter_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o the_o which_o add_v the_o same_o saint_n augustine_n have_v always_o flourish_v the_o principality_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o with_o the_o other_o country_n from_o whence_o the_o gospel_n come_v in_o to_o africa_n they_o resolve_v to_o pursue_v beyond_o the_o sea_n a_o new_a judgement_n now_o they_o sear_v the_o pope_n tribunal_n both_o in_o general_a because_o all_o italy_n have_v be_v trouble_v with_o persecution_n under_o the_o empire_n of_o dioclesian_n by_o mean_n whereof_o they_o figure_v to_o themselves_o that_o there_o will_v be_v many_o bishop_n that_o have_v bow_v or_o bend_v and_o consequent_o will_v support_v the_o cause_n of_o ceci_fw-fr 〈◊〉_d and_o in_o particular_a if_o we_o believe_v the_o donatist_n in_o the_o conference_n of_o carthage_n because_o the_o pope_n melchiade_n be_v suspect_v by_o they_o as_o a_o complice_n as_o they_o pretend_v of_o the_o same_o crime_n or_o one_o equivalent_a to_o that_o of_o he_o that_o ordain_v cecilianus_n they_o begin_v say_v saint_n augustine_n speak_v of_o the_o donatist_n of_o 〈◊〉_d the_o conference_n of_o carthage_n to_o charge_v melchiade_n of_o the_o crime_n of_o treason_n and_o to_o 〈◊〉_d that_o their_o superior_n have_v shun_v his_o judgement_n because_o he_o be_v a_o 3._o traitor_n for_o these_o cause_n then_o that_o be_v to_o say_v be_v it_o for_o the_o suspicion_n that_o they_o have_v in_o common_a against_o all_o italy_n be_v it_o for_o that_o they_o have_v in_o particular_a against_o the_o pope_n they_o address_v themselves_o to_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n who_o then_o be_v resident_a among_o the_o gaul_n and_o beseech_v he_o to_o give_v they_o judge_n from_o among_o the_o gaul_n because_o in_o that_o province_n whereof_o his_o father_n constantius_n have_v have_v government_n there_o have_v be_v no_o persecution_n which_o be_v to_o refuse_v in_o general_a all_o the_o province_n where_o dioclesian_n persecution_n have_v take_v place_n among_o which_o italy_n be_v one_o of_o the_o principal_a your_o superior_a say_v optatus_n mil._n 72._o present_v to_o the_o emperor_n yet_o ignorant_a of_o the_o affair_n the_o request_n which_o follow_v we_o beseech_v thou_o o_o excellent_a emperor_n constantine_n because_o thou_o be_v of_o a_o just_a race_n who_o father_n among_o all_o the_o emperor_n never_o practise_v any_o persecution_n and_o that_o the_o gaul_n be_v free_v from_o this_o crime_n for_o in_o africa_n there_o be_v contentention_n among_o we_o let_v there_o be_v give_v to_o we_o judge_n from_o among_o the_o gaul_n and_o what_o marvel_n be_v it_o if_o they_o address_v themselves_o to_o costantine_n 92._o since_o after_o they_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o emperor_n julian_n the_o apostata_fw-la a_o pagan_a and_o a_o infidel_n prince_n the_o emperor_n constantine_n amaze_v and_o angry_a with_o this_o proceed_n reproach_v it_o to_o the_o donatist_n and_o object_v to_o they_o that_o they_o will_v receive_v judgement_n from_o he_o who_o himself_o do_v attend_v the_o judgement_n of_o christ._n he_o dare_v not_o say_v saint_n austin_n judge_v the_o cause_n of_o a_o bishop_n and_o optatus_n milevitanus_fw-la from_o who_o s._n augustine_n 166._o borrow_v this_o history_n he_o answer_v they_o say_v he_o with_o a_o spirit_n 1._o full_a of_o indignation_n you_o ask_v of_o i_o judgement_n in_o this_o world_n of_o i_o i_o say_v that_o do_v myself_o attend_v the_o judgement_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v you_o will_v have_v i_o constitute_v myself_o for_o a_o judge_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n i_o that_o do_v myself_o attend_v the_o judgement_n of_o christ._n which_o be_v the_o same_o protestation_n that_o he_o make_v afterward_o at_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n in_o these_o word_n repeat_v by_o our_o glorious_a charlemaine_n carol._n to_o i_o who_o be_o constitute_v in_o a_o lie_v condition_n it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o ambros._n judge_v of_o bishop_n and_o this_o the_o emperor_n valentinian_n renew_v in_o these_o word_n repeat_v by_o saint_n ambrose_n and_o by_o the_o same_o chalemaine_n capit_fw-la your_o business_n o_o bishop_n be_v far_o above_o we_o and_o therefore_o treat_v among_o you_o of_o magn._n your_o cause_n and_o that_o s._n athanasius_n remember_v to_o the_o emperor_n constatius_fw-la ibid._n in_o these_o term_n what_o have_v the_o emperor_n in_o common_a with_o the_o judgement_n of_o solit._n bishop_n and_o again_o when_o do_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n take_v their_o force_n from_o ibidem_fw-la the_o emperor_n and_o saint_n martin_n to_o maximus_n this_o be_v a_o new_a and_o never_o hear_v 2._o of_o impiety_n that_o a_o secular_a judge_n shall_v judge_v a_o cause_n of_o the_o church_n and_o this_o be_v the_o first_o protestation_n of_o irregularity_n make_v by_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n against_o the_o donatist_n to_o wit_n that_o leave_v the_o way_n and_o the_o ordinary_a progress_n of_o the_o judgment_n of_o the_o church_n they_o have_v recourse_n to_o he_o to_o obtain_v judge_n and_o which_o have_v be_v always_o follow_v since_o by_o the_o pious_a and_o religious_a catholic_a emperor_n this_o request_n nevertheless_o of_o the_o donatist_n that_o the_o emperor_n reject_v as_o a_o judge_n he_o believe_v that_o he_o ought_v not_o altogether_o to_o reject_v as_o a_o arbyter_n and_o compounder_n of_o the_o business_n but_o think_v it_o to_o be_v to_o purpose_n in_o some_o sort_n to_o make_v use_n of_o the_o arbiterment_n that_o the_o donatist_n refer_v to_o he_o to_o assay_v to_o reconcile_v they_o to_o the_o catholic_n who_o communion_n he_o hold_v and_o for_o that_o occasion_n assure_v himself_o that_o he_o ought_v to_o be_v avow_a and_o agree_v unto_o by_o they_o and_o therefore_o desire_v on_o the_o one_o side_n to_o preserve_v the_o form_n of_o the_o ordinary_a judgement_n of_o the_o church_n &_o on_o the_o other_o side_n be_v constrain_v to_o give_v some_o way_n to_o the_o hardness_n of_o those_o that_o he_o desire_v to_o bring_v back_o by_o fair_a mean_n he_o remit_v they_o from_o the_o gaul_n to_o rome_n to_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o pope_n melchiade_n with_o the_o assistance_n of_o three_o bishop_n of_o the_o gaul_n that_o he_o cause_v to_o travail_v thither_o maternus_n of_o cologne_n rheticius_n of_o autun_n and_o marinus_n of_o arles_n that_o they_o may_v be_v witness_n and_o warrant_n of_o the_o sincerity_n of_o his_o proceed_n i_o have_v ordain_v say_v the_o emperor_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o melchiade_n evil_o inscribe_v to_o mechiade_n and_o to_o marcus_n that_o cecilianus_n with_o ten_o of_o his_o 5._o accuser_n and_o ten_o of_o his_o abetter_n that_o be_v to_o say_v ten_o african_a bishop_n which_o oppose_v he_o and_o ten_o of_o africa_a bishop_n which_o maintain_v he_o travel_v so_o far_o as_o to_o rome_n that_o in_o your_o presence_n join_v with_o you_o rheticius_n maternus_n and_o 〈◊〉_d your_o colleague_n who_o for_o this_o effect_n i_o have_v enjoin_v to_o trasport_n themselves_o to_o rome_n he_o may_v be_v hear_v so_o as_o you_o shall_v know_v that_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o most_o religious_a law_n i_o have_v say_v in_o the_o epistle_n evil_o inscribe_v to_o melchiade_n and_o to_o marcus_n for_o there_o it_o must_v be_v read_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o well_o because_o marcus_n be_v not_o bishop_n of_o rome_n till_o after_o silvester_n successor_n to_o melchiade_n as_o because_o if_o this_o marcus_n have_v be_v any_o other_o than_o a_o bishop_n the_o emperor_n will_v not_o have_v say_v joint_o with_o you_o your_o colleague_n rheticius_n maternus_n and_o marinus_n and_o if_o he_o have_v be_v bishop_n he_o have_v not_o direct_v 〈◊〉_d letter_n to_o melchiade_n bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o marcus_n without_o add_v to_o it_o the_o quality_n of_o bishop_n these_o three_o bishop_n of_o the_o gaul_n then_o have_v be_v upon_o the_o nomination_n of_o the_o emperor_n admit_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o call_v by_o he_o to_o the_o council_n of_o rome_n become_v judge_n of_o the_o right_n of_o the_o affair_n now_o to_o who_o do_v it_o not_o hereby_o appear_v quite_o contrary_a to_o that_o which_o the_o caluenist_n pretend_v to_o infer_v for_o first_o if_o the_o emperor_n as_o he_o 1._o protest_v himself_o have_v no_o right_a to_o judge_v the_o cause_n of_o bishop_n how_o can_v he_o in_o right_o give_v they_o judge_n i_o say_v in_o right_a and_o not_o in_o fact_n for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o emperor_n can_v well_o give_v they_o judge_n in_o fact_n and_o who_o
this_o be_v observe_v of_o bishop_n that_o those_o which_o have_v be_v deprive_v of_o the_o communion_n in_o their_o province_n may_v not_o appear_v to_o be_v restore_v rash_o and_o due_o to_o the_o communion_n by_o your_o holiness_n and_o the_o greek_a text_n contrariwise_o make_v two_o diverse_a clause_n of_o this_o train_n whereof_o he_o refer_v the_o first_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o not_o to_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o distinguish_v they_o by_o the_o word_n then_o which_o be_v a_o adverbe_n of_o illation_n in_o these_o term_n for_o if_o it_o appear_v that_o he_o have_v have_v care_n to_o extend_v his_o caution_n even_o to_o clerk_n and_o layman_n by_o how_o much_o strong_a reason_n will_v he_o have_v be_v to_o be_v observe_v in_o regard_n of_o bishop_n let_v not_o those_o then_o that_o have_v be_v suspend_v from_o the_o communion_n in_o their_o own_o province_n appear_v to_o be_v hasty_o and_o otherwise_o then_o be_v fit_a 〈◊〉_d restore_v to_o the_o communion_n by_o your_o holiness_n now_o that_o the_o read_n of_o the_o greek_a 138._o edition_n be_v the_o true_a one_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o branch_n follow_v which_o be_v likewise_o also_o the_o impudent_a flight_n of_o priest_n and_o inferior_a clerk_n let_v your_o holiness_n as_o a_o thing_n worthy_a of_o you_o reject_v they_o which_o suppose_v a_o precedent_a prayer_n to_o 1615._o the_o pope_n particular_o make_v for_o the_o bishop_n the_o four_o pattern_n shall_v be_v take_v from_o the_o middle_n of_o the_o same_o petition_n where_o the_o greek_a text_n contain_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v not_o want_v to_o every_o provision_n the_o latin_a exemplifier_n of_o the_o greek_a word_n which_o signify_v there_o provision_n some_o of_o they_o have_v make_v providence_n and_o other_o some_o province_n for_o that_o there_o it_o must_v be_v read_v provision_n and_o not_o province_n mercat_n it_o appear_v by_o the_o clause_n that_o follow_v which_o say_v and_o principal_o since_o it_o be_v permit_v to_o every_o one_o if_o he_o find_v himself_o aggrieve_v at_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o judge_n to_o appeal_v to_o the_o synod_n of_o his_o province_n the_o five_o pattern_n shall_v be_v take_v from_o the_o end_n of_o the_o same_o epistle_n where_o the_o greek_a text_n say_v for_o as_o for_o the_o wretched_a 138._o apiarius_n have_v already_o be_v for_o his_o infamous_a crime_n cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n by_o our_o brother_n faustinus_n we_o be_v no_o more_o in_o care_n for_o as_o much_o as_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o the_o approbation_n and_o direction_n of_o your_o holiness_n for_o the_o preservation_n of_o brotherly_a charity_n africa_n will_v suffer_v he_o no_o long_o which_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o bpistle_n where_o the_o father_n intend_v to_o express_v that_o the_o pope_n will_v no_o long_o permit_v that_o apiarius_n to_o who_o by_o the_o first_o judgement_n of_o faustinus_n his_o 〈◊〉_d &_o of_o the_o african_a bishop_n review_v the_o cause_n with_o he_o it_o have_v be_v grant_v to_o remain_v in_o africa_n and_o so_o exercise_v there_o in_o any_o place_n he_o can_v or_o will_v the_o office_n of_o priesthood_n provide_v it_o be_v not_o at_o sicca_n have_v be_v by_o the_o second_o judgement_n condemn_v and_o excommunicate_v yea_o by_o the_o very_a month_n of_o faustinus_n his_o holiness_n legate_n shall_v remain_v in_o 105._o africa_n and_o exercise_v any_o priesthood_n there_o which_o sense_n also_o the_o protestant_n have_v follow_v as_o well_o in_o the_o greek_a as_o in_o the_o latin_a of_o the_o last_o impression_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n which_o they_o have_v make_v in_o germany_n 1614_o and_o the_o latin_a edition_n contrariwise_o say_v transfer_v the_o speech_n to_o 〈◊〉_d for_o as_o for_o our_o brother_n faustinus_n apiarius_n have_v be_v already_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n for_o his_o enormous_a crime_n we_o be_v assure_v save_v the_o probity_n and_o 〈◊〉_d of_o your_o holiness_n that_o brotherly_a charity_n will_v not_o permit_v that_o he_o be_v 〈◊〉_d long_o bear_v with_o in_o africa_n now_o this_o translation_n be_v both_o against_o the_o greek_a text_n which_o refer_v the_o speech_n to_o apiarius_n and_o not_o to_o faustinus_n and_o against_o the_o express_a intention_n of_o the_o council_n which_o may_v well_o &_o convenient_o desire_v the_o pope_n not_o to_o permit_v any_o long_o that_o apiarius_n shall_v remain_v in_o africa_n but_o not_o desire_v he_o no_o more_o to_o keep_v a_o legate_n in_o africa_n &_o principal_o according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o those_o that_o will_v have_v it_o that_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n where_o genetlins_n preside_v be_v celebrate_v under_o the_o empire_n of_o valentinian_n the_o three_o who_o begin_v to_o be_v emperor_n but_o the_o year_n after_o the_o consulship_n of_o victor_n and_o castinus_n under_o the_o which_o according_a to_o they_o this_o letter_n be_v write_v and_o that_o faustinus_n the_o episc._n pope_n legate_n assist_v at_o it_o and_o against_o the_o testimony_n of_o leo_n the_o first_o who_o be_v create_v pope_n eight_o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o celestine_n who_o 85._o make_v mention_n of_o a_o bishop_n call_v potentius_fw-la who_o be_v his_o legate_n in_o africa_n for_o as_o for_o the_o clause_n we_o be_v no_o more_o in_o care_n of_o it_o which_o want_v in_o the_o greek_a print_a copy_n it_o be_v in_o the_o ancient_a greek_a copy_n comment_v by_o zonara_n and_o by_o balsamon_n and_o as_o for_o the_o word_n probity_n which_o be_v read_v in_o the_o latin_a text_n it_o may_v be_v it_o be_v a_o depravation_n of_o the_o greek_a word_n which_o signify_v 〈◊〉_d which_o also_o the_o german_n have_v retain_v in_o the_o new_a edition_n as_o well_o greek_n as_o latin_n of_o their_o conncell_n but_o it_o be_v already_o a_o long_a while_n since_o this_o digression_n begin_v to_o exceed_v the_o proportion_n of_o the_o other_o part_n of_o my_o work_n and_o therefore_o the_o fear_n to_o abuse_v the_o reader_n patience_n oblige_v i_o to_o conclude_v and_o to_o pray_v they_o to_o excuse_v i_o if_o i_o have_v suffer_v myself_o to_o be_v carry_v beyond_o what_o be_v my_o purpose_n at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o chapter_n the_o importance_n of_o the_o matter_n shall_v recompense_v the_o defect_n of_o the_o proportion_n which_o perchance_o in_o these_o kind_n of_o search_n will_v not_o be_v displease_v to_o spirit_n curious_a of_o antiquity_n of_o the_o question_n of_o appeal_v treat_v of_o in_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n chapt_n x._o the_o five_o instance_n of_o calvin_n against_o the_o pope_n authority_n be_v take_v from_o the_o dispute_n that_o happen_v about_o the_o matter_n of_o appeal_v in_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n and_o consist_v in_o this_o that_o apiarius_n priest_n of_o the_o city_n of_o sicca_n in_o africa_n have_v appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n from_o a_o sentence_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n have_v give_v against_o he_o and_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n have_v complain_v of_o this_o appeal_v the_o pope_n send_v they_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o appeal_v make_v in_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n and_o direct_v they_o to_o they_o under_o the_o title_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n for_o as_o 3._o much_o as_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n be_v a_o appendix_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n by_o mean_n whereof_o the_o african_n not_o find_v these_o canon_n in_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n that_o they_o have_v with_o they_o depute_v some_o into_o the_o east_n to_o see_v if_o they_o can_v find_v they_o in_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n and_o not_o have_v find_v they_o there_o and_o beside_o find_v themselves_o much_o aggreeved_a as_o the_o frequent_a appeal_n which_o those_o that_o have_v bad_a cause_n cast_v in_o from_o their_o judgement_n beseech_v the_o pope_n that_o he_o will_v not_o more_o so_o easy_o receive_v appeal_v from_o the_o churchman_n of_o their_o province_n now_o this_o instance_n have_v be_v after_o many_o age_n the_o principal_a engine_n of_o the_o adversary_n against_o the_o pope_n authority_n as_o it_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o use_n that_o the_o schismatickes_n of_o the_o mockcouncell_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 494._o make_v of_o it_o to_o the_o end_n to_o oppress_v the_o innocence_n of_o arnulphus_n bishop_n of_o orleans_n which_o the_o pope_n maintain_v and_o by_o the_o calumny_n where_o with_o zonar_n as_o and_o balsamon_n greek_n schismatickes_n unjust_o charge_v the_o memory_n 〈◊〉_d of_o pope_n zosimus_n for_o have_v allege_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n under_o the_o title_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o final_o by_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o protestant_n who_o in_o this_o slander_n have_v follow_v balsam_n and_o surpass_v they_o for_o not_o only_o
condemn_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o the_o person_n of_o s._n ataanasius_n now_o it_o happen_v that_o in_o the_o address_n of_o the_o epistle_n of_o this_o false_a council_n of_o sardica_n the_o arrian_n among_o the_o bishop_n of_o their_o communion_n insert_v the_o name_n of_o donatus_n bishop_n of_o the_o donatist_n of_o carthage_n for_o as_o much_o as_o this_o donatus_n beside_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o donatist_n be_v &_o also_o infect_v with_o that_o of_o the_o arrian_n the_o donatist_n then_o think_v they_o may_v infer_v from_o thence_o that_o their_o communion_n have_v in_o former_a 10._o time_n be_v spread_v out_o of_o africa_n &_o by_o this_o mean_n avoid_v the_o reproach_n that_o the_o catholic_n of_o africa_n make_v to_o they_o that_o their_o church_n be_v imprison_v 6._o within_o the_o lymitt_v of_o africa_n and_o consequent_o be_v not_o catholic_a advise_v themselves_o to_o call_v in_o and_o supprese_n secret_o in_o africa_n all_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o true_a council_n of_o sardica_n which_o have_v be_v bring_v thither_o by_o gratus_n catholic_n archbishop_n of_o carthage_n and_o to_o sow_v in_o their_o steed_n the_o copy_n of_o the_o false_a council_n of_o sardica_n which_o have_v be_v address_v to_o donatus_n his_o competitor_n and_o wrought_v so_o in_o it_o that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o saint_n augustine_n and_o of_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n as_o it_o shall_v be_v hereafter_o prove_v by_o many_o place_n of_o s._n augustine_n there_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o africa_n none_o of_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o true_a council_n of_o sardica_n but_o only_o those_o of_o the_o false_a council_n of_o sardica_n the_o seven_o advertisement_n shall_v be_v that_o the_o african_a father_n never_o go_v so_o far_o as_o to_o make_v any_o decision_n or_o any_o decree_n upon_o the_o article_n of_o the_o episcopal_a appeal_v contrariwise_o before_o the_o come_n of_o the_o copy_n from_o the_o east_n all_o their_o proceed_n be_v to_o beseech_v the_o pope_n to_o cause_v their_o 101._o content_n to_o be_v observe_v with_o protestation_n the_o while_n to_o practice_v what_o be_v set_v down_o in_o his_o legate_n instruction_n and_o after_o the_o copy_n have_v be_v bring_v out_o of_o the_o east_n so_o far_o be_v they_o from_o make_v any_o decree_n upon_o the_o article_n of_o the_o bishop_n appeal_v as_o they_o hinder_v not_o those_o of_o simple_a priest_n for_o after_o the_o death_n of_o pope_n boniface_n under_o who_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o east_n be_v bring_v into_o africa_n apiarius_n be_v fall_v into_o new_a crime_n for_o which_o he_o be_v again_o condemn_v by_o a_o council_n of_o africa_n and_o pope_n celestine_n upon_o a_o pretence_n of_o appeal_v have_v again_o send_v faustinus_n his_o legate_n into_o africa_n to_o cause_v a_o new_a council_n to_o be_v hold_v there_o where_o apiarius_n do_v not_o only_o forbear_v to_o hinder_v it_o but_o also_o to_o obey_v the_o pope_n bill_n of_o appeal_v assemble_v a_o new_a council_n where_o in_o his_o legate_n presence_n apiarius_n his_o cause_n be_v again_o put_v to_o trial_n and_o they_o do_v pap._n not_o awake_v the_o contention_n of_o appeal_v but_o upon_o the_o occasion_n that_o be_v give_v they_o by_o the_o subsequent_a and_o unexpected_a confession_n of_o apiarius_n 101._o who_o vanquish_v by_o the_o remorse_n of_o his_o own_o conscience_n voluntary_o discover_v all_o the_o infamous_a crime_n whereof_o he_o be_v accuse_v this_o ibidem_fw-la confession_n then_o have_v renew_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o african_n the_o memory_n of_o the_o greevance_n that_o they_o receive_v by_o appeal_v which_o in_o steed_n of_o serve_v as_o they_o ought_v for_o a_o shield_n for_o innocence_n when_o the_o reins_n be_v let_v too_o loose_a serve_v for_o a_o shield_n for_o incorrigibilitie_n and_o impunity_n they_o take_v occasion_n from_o thence_o to_o write_v a_o epistle_n of_o ibid._n complaint_n to_o the_o pope_n but_o yet_o even_o then_o they_o pass_v not_o so_o far_o as_o to_o make_v any_o decree_n of_o the_o episcopal_a appeal_n but_o contain_v themselves_o within_o the_o simple_a lymitt_n of_o complaint_n petition_n and_o remonstrance_n which_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n surname_v trullian_n that_o the_o greek_n call_v the_o six_o general_a council_n 2._o acknowledge_v when_o they_o say_v we_o receive_v the_o canon_n make_v by_o the_o holy_a father_n assemble_v at_o sardica_n and_o at_o carthage_n word_n which_o show_v plain_o that_o they_o believe_v not_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n to_o have_v be_v disable_v by_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n the_o eight_o and_o last_o advertisement_n shall_v be_v that_o the_o end_n &_o issue_n of_o the_o affair_n be_v that_o after_o all_o these_o contention_n search_n and_o proceed_n the_o pope_n remain_v in_o full_a and_o entire_a possession_n of_o the_o right_n of_o the_o episcopal_a appeal_v of_o africa_n and_o that_o the_o african_n be_v satisfy_v that_o what_o they_o hadnot_v found_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n who_o canon_n upon_o this_o occasion_n they_o insert_v into_o the_o canon_n law_n of_o their_o province_n and_o in_o sum_n that_o all_o the_o african_a church_n continue_v and_o persevere_v in_o the_o practice_n of_o yield_v episcopal_a appeal_v to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o in_o the_o communion_n and_o obedience_n of_o the_o pope_n as_o long_o as_o christianity_n last_v in_o africa_n this_o be_v the_o history_n apiarius_n priest_n of_o sicca_n a_o city_n of_o the_o province_n of_o numidia_n in_o africa_n after_o he_o have_v be_v condemn_v depose_v and_o excommunicate_v by_o the_o african_a bishop_n in_o a_o cause_n that_o he_o have_v against_o vrbanus_n bishop_n of_o sicca_n complain_v to_o pope_n zozimus_n that_o he_o have_v appeal_v to_o he_o &_o that_o the_o african_n will_v 3._o not_o suffer_v the_o cause_n to_o pass_v beyond_o sea_n pope_n zozimus_n upon_o this_o occasion_n send_v into_o africa_n the_o rule_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n upon_o the_o matter_n of_o appeal_v which_o consist_v in_o two_o article_n whereof_o the_o one_o contain_v that_o the_o bishop_n after_o they_o have_v be_v depose_v by_o the_o counsel_n of_o their_o province_n may_v appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n &_o the_o other_o contain_v that_o the_o priest_n which_o have_v be_v depose_v by_o the_o council_n of_o their_o province_n may_v have_v their_o cause_n review_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o next_o province_n which_o be_v the_o point_n that_o concern_v apiarius_n his_o controversy_n for_o whereas_o the_o 10._o rule_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n import_v that_o the_o priest_n shall_v be_v judge_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o their_o diocese_n and_o by_o six_o bishop_n of_o the_o same_o province_n and_o that_o in_o case_n they_o will_v appeal_v from_o it_o they_o may_v not_o appeal_v but_o to_o the_o primate_n and_o to_o the_o council_n of_o their_o province_n to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o cause_n may_v be_v determine_v within_o the_o lymitt_v of_o that_o particular_a province_n where_o it_o have_v be_v begin_v the_o council_n of_o sardica_n ordain_v that_o after_o they_o have_v be_v judge_v by_o the_o primate_n and_o the_o council_n 14._o of_o their_o province_n they_o may_v appeal_v to_o the_o primate_n and_o to_o the_o council_n of_o one_o of_o the_o next_o province_n which_o thing_n be_v apply_v to_o africa_n to_o wit_n that_o it_o may_v be_v lawful_a to_o every_o priest_n of_o africa_n to_o appeal_v from_o the_o primate_n and_o from_o the_o council_n of_o his_o province_n to_o the_o primate_n and_o council_n of_o one_o of_o the_o next_o province_n apiarius_n pretend_v that_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o dignity_n and_o the_o privilege_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a that_o it_o may_v be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o he_o that_o be_v a_o numidian_a priest_n to_o choose_v among_o the_o church_n next_o the_o province_n of_o numidia_n the_o roman_a church_n although_o it_o be_v out_o of_o the_o continent_n of_o africa_n before_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n because_o beside_o the_o neighbourhood_n that_o tertullian_n express_v by_o these_o word_n if_o thou_o be_v a_o neighbour_n to_o italy_n thou_o have_v the_o roman_a 36._o church_n who_o authority_n be_v near_o and_o at_o hand_n to_o we_o she_o have_v the_o prerogative_n and_o pre-eminence_n of_o dignity_n above_o all_o the_o rest_n now_o it_o happen_v that_o the_o pope_n send_v into_o africa_n these_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n under_o the_o title_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n for_o the_o mention_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n insert_v into_o some_o latin_a copy_n of_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n be_v a_o quotation_n of_o the_o copyist_n which_o slip_v out_o of_o the_o margin_n into_o
no_o more_o receive_v those_o to_o the_o communion_n that_o have_v be_v excommunicate_v by_o we_o and_o a_o while_n after_o that_o so_o those_o that_o in_o their_o own_o province_n have_v be_v deprive_v of_o the_o communion_n may_v not_o seem_v to_o be_v rash_o and_o unfit_o restore_v to_o the_o communion_n by_o your_o holiness_n and_o this_o request_n they_o prop_v up_o with_o five_o reason_n the_o first_o that_o the_o 5._o council_n of_o nicaea_n have_v forbid_v that_o those_o which_o have_v be_v excommunicate_v in_o one_o province_n shall_v be_v receive_v to_o communion_n in_o a_o 〈◊〉_d your_o reverence_n say_v they_o will_v easy_o acknowledge_v that_o this_o have_v be_v so_o define_v by_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n for_o although_o it_o seem_v to_o restrain_v the_o caution_n to_o inferior_a clerk_n and_o to_o lay_v man_n by_o how_o much_o strong_a reason_n do_v they_o intend_v it_o also_o to_o bishop_n a_o thing_n that_o the_o heat_n of_o contention_n draw_v from_o their_o mouth_n and_o which_o be_v direct_o against_o s._n augustine_n who_o say_v speak_v of_o cecilianus_n archishop_n of_o carthage_n who_o have_v be_v depose_v by_o a_o council_n of_o seventy_o african_a bishop_n assemble_v at_o carthage_n he_o may_v contemme_v the_o conspire_a multitude_n of_o his_o enemy_n because_o he_o know_v himself_o to_o be_v unite_v by_o communicatorie_a 162._o letter_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o which_o have_v always_o flourish_v the_o principality_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o from_o the_o other_o country_n from_o whence_o the_o gospel_n first_o come_v into_o africa_n and_o against_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n itself_o which_o precise_o limit_n the_o word_n to_o priest_n and_o layman_n which_o have_v be_v excommunicate_v by_o their_o bishop_n can_v not_o be_v receive_v to_o communion_n by_o any_o of_o the_o other_o bishop_n of_o the_o same_o province_n for_o whereas_o the_o african_a father_n infer_v that_o if_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n speak_v these_o word_n of_o priest_n and_o layman_n they_o must_v be_v much_o more_o intend_a of_o bishop_n this_o be_v formal_o opposite_a to_o saint_n augustine_n foundation_n who_o say_v that_o cecilianus_n tymefellowe_n with_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n may_v have_v appeal_v beyond_o sea_n because_o he_o be_v not_o of_o the_o number_n of_o priest_n and_o other_o inferior_a clerk_n but_o of_o the_o number_n of_o bishop_n they_o do_v not_o handle_v the_o cause_n say_v he_o of_o priest_n deacon_n or_o other_o inferior_a clerk_n but_o of_o bishop_n which_o may_v reserve_v their_o cause_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n beyond_o sea_n ibid._n the_o second_o that_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n commit_v the_o cause_n as_o 6_o well_o of_o bishop_n as_o of_o priest_n to_o the_o metropolitan_a which_o be_v true_a for_o the_o judgement_n of_o priest_n in_o the_o second_o instance_n and_o of_o bishop_n in_o the_o first_o but_o not_o for_o the_o judgement_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o last_o instance_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o saint_n athanasius_n who_o have_v assist_v in_o person_n at_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n which_o allege_n for_o his_o defence_n a_o epistle_n where_o pope_n julius_n write_v that_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n and_o other_o counsel_n of_o the_o east_n can_v not_o depose_v athanasius_n from_o the_o bishopric_n of_o alexandria_n without_o expect_v the_o decision_n 2._o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v you_o ignorant_a say_v he_o that_o the_o custom_n be_v that_o they_o shall_v first_o write_v to_o we_o and_o so_o from_o hence_o shall_v proceed_v the_o just_a decision_n of_o cause_n and_o therefore_o if_o there_o be_v any_o suspicion_n conceive_v against_o the_o bishop_n there_o that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o alexandria_n they_o must_v write_v to_o the_o church_n here_o that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o three_o that_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v not_o be_v want_v to_o every_o provision_n or_o to_o every_o province_n to_o discern_v the_o equity_n of_o cause_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o credible_a that_o god_n shall_v inspire_v the_o justice_n of_o the_o trial_n to_o one_o only_a man_n what_o soever_o he_o be_v and_o deny_v it_o to_o a_o infinite_a number_n in_o a_o council_n a_o certain_a proof_n that_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o cause_n of_o equity_n and_o justice_n as_o well_o civil_a as_o criminal_a and_o not_o of_o cause_n of_o faith_n of_o which_o contrariwise_o they_o have_v write_v a_o year_n or_o two_o before_o to_o pope_n innocent_a upon_o the_o subject_n of_o pelagius_n and_o celestius_fw-la his_o cause_n 92_o which_o be_v a_o cause_n of_o faith_n we_o doubt_v not_o with_o the_o help_n of_o god_n mercy_n who_o will_v vouchsafe_v to_o hear_v thou_o pray_v and_o to_o guide_v thou_o consult_v but_o those_o that_o hold_v these_o perverse_a thing_n will_v more_o easy_o yield_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o thy_o holiness_n derive_v from_o the_o authority_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o pope_n innocent_a 93_o to_o themselves_o always_o and_o as_o often_o as_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v handle_v i_o conceive_v that_o all_o our_o brother_n and_o colleague_n can_v have_v no_o reference_n but_o to_o peter_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o the_o author_n of_o their_o name_n and_o dignity_n the_o four_o that_o it_o be_v very_o hard_o to_o assure_v beyond_o sea_n judgement_n because_o of_o the_o difficulty_n of_o cause_v witness_n to_o pass_v the_o sea_n how_o can_v say_v they_o the_o judgement_n beyond_o sea_n be_v certain_a wherein_o the_o necessary_a person_n of_o witness_n for_o the_o debility_n of_o sex_n of_o age_n or_o many_o other_o hindrance_n interuening_n can_v appear_v a_o evident_a argument_n that_o they_o speak_v of_o particular_a and_o personal_a cause_n and_o the_o five_o that_o it_o have_v never_o be_v take_v from_o the_o african_a church_n by_o any_o decree_n of_o a_o council_n that_o appeal_v shall_v go_v out_o of_o africa_n and_o that_o to_o send_v legate_n from_o rome_n into_o africa_n to_o judge_v they_o upon_o the_o place_n it_o be_v not_o constitute_v by_o any_o council_n a_o thing_n the_o ignorance_n whereof_o they_o may_v well_o excuse_v forasmuch_o as_o they_o have_v no_o more_o than_o in_o africa_n the_o true_a copy_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n but_o only_o as_o have_v be_v above_o show_v those_o of_o the_o false_a council_n of_o sardica_n compose_v by_o the_o arrian_n and_o publish_v by_o the_o donatist_n which_o give_v ground_n to_o all_o this_o question_n the_o second_o request_n be_v that_o the_o pope_n shall_v no_o more_o grante_v they_o clerk_n executioner_n so_o be_v certain_a clerk_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n call_v committee_n to_o cause_v to_o be_v execute_v with_o the_o help_n of_o secular_a power_n and_o of_o the_o imperial_a force_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o the_o strength_n of_o usher_n sergeant_n and_o soldier_n the_o judgement_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o of_o his_o legate_n a_o thing_n which_o provoke_v much_o murmur_n in_o africa_n for_o although_o the_o malice_n of_o the_o african_a poeple_n who_o after_o they_o be_v fasten_v in_o the_o hate_n of_o any_o ecclesiastical_a person_n will_v hardly_o let_v go_v their_o hold_n do_v sometime_o make_v this_o remedy_n necessary_a nevertheless_o the_o abuse_n of_o those_o which_o do_v too_o violent_o apply_v it_o do_v often_o convert_v it_o into_o a_o pretence_n and_o occasion_n of_o complaint_n as_o s._n augusine_n testify_v in_o a_o epistle_n to_o the_o same_o pope_n celestine_n when_o he_o say_v speak_v of_o anthony_n bishop_n of_o fussala_n in_o numidia_n who_o have_v appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n from_o the_o judgement_n 261._o which_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o fussala_n have_v cause_v to_o be_v give_v against_o he_o he_o threaten_v they_o say_v he_o with_o secular_a power_n and_o with_o the_o fury_n of_o soldier_n as_o if_o they_o shall_v come_v to_o execute_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a in_o such_o sort_n as_o the_o miserable_a inhabitant_n be_v christian_n and_o catholics_n fear_v more_o grievous_a usage_n from_o a_o catholic_a bishop_n than_o they_o do_v when_o they_o be_v heretic_n from_o the_o law_n of_o the_o emperor_n for_o these_o cause_n then_o the_o african_a bishop_n beseech_v the_o pope_n to_o grant_v no_o more_o clerk_n executor_n to_o those_o which_o demand_v they_o that_o you_o will_v not_o also_o say_v they_o send_v your_o clerk_n for_o executor_n to_o all_o those_o which_o demand_v they_o nor_o permit_v that_o we_o shall_v seem_v to_o introduce_v the_o typhe_n or_o smoky_a meteor_n of_o the_o age_n into_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n which_o propound_v the_o light_n of_o simplicity_n and_o the_o day_n of_o humility_n to_o those_o that_o desire_v to_o see_v god_n call_v the_o force_n and_o military_a violence_n with_o which_o those_o executor_n do_v
justinian_n himself_o in_o the_o sea_n of_o constantinople_n in_o the_o steed_n of_o eutychius_n and_o decease_v twelve_o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o justinian_n and_o it_o derogate_v not_o from_o this_o that_o balsamon_n reject_v all_o the_o nomocanon_n that_o be_v to_o say_v all_o the_o marriage_n of_o law_n and_o canon_n which_o have_v be_v make_v before_o that_o of_o photius_n and_o among_o the_o rest_n one_o nomocanon_n which_o distribute_v the_o law_n and_o canon_n into_o fifty_o title_n for_o be_v it_o that_o he_o speak_v of_o that_o of_o john_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n surname_v scholasticus_n be_v it_o that_o he_o speak_v of_o a_o other_o late_a he_o reject_v it_o not_o for_o not_o have_v be_v ancient_a enough_o but_o for_o be_v too_o ancient_a for_o as_o much_o as_o many_o law_n of_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n which_o be_v there_o insert_v have_v cease_v to_o be_v in_o use_n have_v be_v abrogate_a by_o the_o late_a emperor_n yet_o less_o be_v this_o repugnant_a to_o it_o that_o the_o canon_n entitle_v from_o the_o apostle_n be_v quote_v in_o this_o synagogue_n under_o the_o number_n of_o eigthie_a five_o canon_n whereas_o doonisius_fw-la exiguus_fw-la and_o after_o he_o cresconius_n report_v but_o of_o fifty_o for_o dionys._n bsiedes_o this_o that_o the_o greek_a code_n of_o dionysius_n as_o have_v be_v above_o note_v can._n be_v very_o lame_a and_o defective_a it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o greek_n both_o before_o theodoret_n and_o before_o dionysius_n exiguus_fw-la retain_v eighty_o five_o as_o appear_v by_o these_o word_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n surname_v trullian_n we_o ordain_v that_o the_o eighty_o five_o canon_n which_o have_v be_v receive_v and_o confirm_v by_o the_o holy_a father_n who_o have_v precede_v we_o and_o have_v be_v give_v we_o by_o they_o under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o holy_a and_o glorious_a apostle_n remain_v from_o hence_o forward_a 〈◊〉_d and_o unmoveable_a and_o by_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n hold_v under_o nectarius_n 2._o in_o the_o cause_n of_o agapius_n and_o of_o bagadius_fw-la more_o than_o sixty_o year_n before_o theodoret_n that_o the_o council_n trullian_n canonise_v in_o these_o word_n we_o seal_v also_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n which_o reassembled_a themselves_o anew_o in_o this_o religious_a &_o imperial_a city_n under_o nectoirius_fw-la archbishop_n of_o the_o same_o city_n &_o under_o theophilus_n archbishop_n of_o alexandria_n which_o council_n hold_v under_o nectarius_n in_o the_o cause_n of_o agapius_n and_o bagadius_fw-la cite_v the_o seventy_o six_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o i_o will_v not_o renew_v the_o difference_n that_o have_v be_v since_o pope_n gelasius_n between_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n in_o regard_n of_o these_o canon_n entitle_v from_o the_o apostle_n it_o suffice_v to_o defend_v the_o antiquity_n of_o this_o synagogue_n that_o from_o before_o the_o time_n of_o theodoret_n the_o greek_n hold_v eigthie_a five_o canon_n for_o apostolical_a canon_n and_o this_o may_v be_v say_v touch_v the_o six_o objection_n let_v we_o dispatch_v the_o two_o other_o the_o seven_o objection_n that_o the_o pope_n adversary_n propound_v against_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n be_v that_o pope_n adrian_n the_o first_o in_o the_o epitome_n of_o the_o canon_n that_o he_o address_v to_o charlemagne_n say_v that_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v among_o the_o greek_n and_o that_o pope_n nicholas_n the_o first_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o photius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d phot._n write_v the_o council_n of_o sardica_n which_o you_o say_v you_o have_v not_o to_o this_o obection_n then_o we_o answer_v two_o thing_n the_o one_o that_o if_o photius_n who_o be_v author_n of_o the_o schism_n which_o last_v to_o this_o day_n between_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n shall_v have_v say_v by_o malice_n and_o to_o cover_v his_o intrusion_n in_o to_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o constantinople_n which_o he_o have_v usurp_v upon_o 〈◊〉_d true_a and_o lawful_a patriarch_n that_o the_o greek_n have_v not_o or_o receive_v not_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n it_o be_v no_o great_a marvel_n no_o more_o than_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o egypt_n write_v to_o the_o emperor_n leo_n to_o cover_v their_o heresy_n that_o they_o know_v not_o the_o synod_n of_o the_o hundred_o &_o fifteen_o father_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o first_o general_a synod_n of_o constantinople_n in_o the_o which_o nevertheless_o timothy_n the_o first_o their_o patriarch_n have_v assist_v and_o preside_v for_o photius_n have_v intrude_v into_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o constanstinople_n against_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n which_o forbid_v layman_n to_o usurp_v ecclesiastical_a charge_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o he_o will_v willing_o have_v avoid_v that_o which_o condemn_v he_o and_o the_o other_o that_o it_o be_v a_o mistake_n in_o pope_n 〈◊〉_d who_o deceive_v himself_o upon_o the_o epitome_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o pope_n adrian_n who_o be_v deceive_v upon_o dionysius_n his_o collection_n for_o not_o only_o the_o council_n of_o constanstinople_n surname_v trullian_n that_o the_o greek_n entitle_v the_o six_o general_a council_n &_o which_o be_v more_o than_o a_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o 〈◊〉_d before_o pope_n adrian_n &_o more_o they_o two_o hundred_o before_o pope_n nicolas_n 〈◊〉_d before_o photius_n &_o that_o photius_n himself_o canonise_v &_o register_n it_o in_o his_o 〈◊〉_d as_o a_o universal_a ecumenical_a council_n write_v we_o seal_v also_o the_o 2._o 〈◊〉_d that_o have_v be_v publish_v by_o the_o father_n assemble_v at_o sardica_n &_o carthage_n &_o by_o those_o which_o reassembled_a themselves_o the_o second_o time_n in_o this_o religious_a and_o imperial_a 〈◊〉_d under_o nectarius_n archbishop_n of_o this_o imperial_a city_n and_o theophilus_n 〈◊〉_d of_o alexandria_n but_o photius_n himself_o in_o his_o nomocanon_n insertes_fw-la almost_o 〈◊〉_d every_o title_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n &_o those_o particular_o of_o the_o episcopal_a appeal_n to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a &_o after_o photius_n simon_n 〈◊〉_d zonara_n balsamon_n alexius_n blastares_n harmenopolus_n &_o other_o late_a 〈◊〉_d canonist_n the_o eigteenth_n &_o last_o objection_n that_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o church_n make_v against_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o practice_n of_o episcopal_a appeal_n which_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o the_o three_o four_o and_o five_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n have_v be_v long_a 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o eastern_a church_n for_o proof_n whereof_o they_o allege_v six_o 〈◊〉_d the_o first_o be_v that_o socrates_n speak_v of_o cyrill_a bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n 40._o who_o have_v appeal_v from_o the_o council_n of_o palestina_n hold_v under_o acacius_n archbishop_n of_o caesarea_n to_o a_o great_a judgement_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o council_n of_o seleucia_n say_v that_o cyrill_n practise_v the_o first_o and_o 〈◊〉_d one_o of_o this_o kind_n of_o proceed_v make_v use_n against_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n of_o appeal_n as_o in_o a_o lie_v judgement_n the_o 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o first_o council_n of_o constantinople_n that_o be_v call_v the_o c._n 〈◊〉_d general_a one_o ordain_v that_o after_o the_o synod_n of_o the_o province_n the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o patriarkship_n may_v examine_v in_o the_o second_o instance_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o bishop_n but_o that_o if_o after_o the_o synod_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n any_o one_o 〈◊〉_d dare_v to_o importune_v the_o ear_n of_o the_o emperor_n or_o of_o secular_a prince_n 〈◊〉_d disquiet_v the_o general_a synod_n that_o he_o be_v no_o more_o receive_v to_o pursue_v his_o 〈◊〉_d the_o three_o that_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n say_v that_o from_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o patriarch_n there_o be_v no_o appeal_n no_o more_o then_o from_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o provost_n of_o the_o pretory_n the_o four_o that_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n ordain_v that_o if_o a_o clerk_n attempt_v any_o cause_n against_o his_o bishop_n 〈◊〉_d be_v judge_v by_o his_o metropolitan_a and_o in_o case_n the_o one_o of_o the_o party_n 〈◊〉_d to_o obey_v the_o judgement_n the_o patriarch_n of_o the_o diocese_n shall_v end_v 〈◊〉_d the_o five_o that_o the_o emperor_n leo_n and_o constantine_n declare_v that_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o patriarch_n be_v not_o subject_a to_o appeal_v as_o be_v the_o prince_n of_o ecclesiastical_a judgement_n and_o the_o six_o that_o photius_n in_o his_o nomocanon_n say_v there_o be_v no_o appeal_n from_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o patriarch_n to_o the_o first_o then_o of_o those_o objection_n which_o be_v that_o socrates_n say_v that_o cyrill_a bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v the_o only_a and_o
s._n gregory_n allege_v this_o law_n it_o be_v not_o to_o apply_v it_o to_o the_o merit_n of_o steven_n cause_n but_o to_o show_v that_o steven_n ought_v to_o be_v draw_v in_o judgement_n before_o the_o council_n of_o his_o province_n and_o not_o before_o the_o council_n of_o a_o other_o province_n and_o indeed_o how_o can_v saint_n gregory_n have_v pretend_v that_o in_o mayor_n cause_n that_o be_v to_o say_v wherein_o there_o be_v handle_v either_o the_o final_a deposition_n of_o bishop_n or_o matter_n of_o faith_n the_o patriarch_n sentence_n 82._o not_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o appeal_v he_o that_o cry_v out_o do_v not_o you_o know_v that_o in_o the_o cause_n that_o john_n the_o priest_n have_v he_o mean_v john_n a_o priest_n of_o chalcedon_n who_o have_v be_v condemn_v for_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n at_o conctantinople_n against_o our_o brother_n and_o colleague_n john_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n he_o have_v have_v recourse_n according_a to_o the_o canon_n to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o that_o it_o have_v be_v define_v by_o our_o judgement_n to_o the_o five_o instance_n which_o be_v that_o the_o emperor_n leo_n and_o constantine_n leun_n say_v that_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o patriarch_n be_v not_o subject_a to_o appeal_v and_o be_v not_o to_o be_v retract_v by_o a_o other_o judge_n as_o be_v the_o prince_n of_o ecclesiastical_a judgement_n we_o say_v that_o those_o two_o emperor_n who_o have_v write_v since_o the_o schism_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n speak_v of_o the_o patriarch_n by_o excellency_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n who_o they_o believe_v to_o hold_v the_o place_n of_o pope_n in_o the_o east_n for_o they_o esteem_v the_o sentence_n of_o other_o patriarch_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o appeal_n but_o they_o believe_v that_o the_o sentence_n of_o patriarch_n universal_a that_o be_v to_o say_v according_a to_o they_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinoplee_n who_o they_o associate_v with_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o right_n of_o universal_a patriarch_n for_o as_o much_o as_o constantinople_n be_v a_o second_o rome_n and_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n for_o this_o occasion_n according_a to_o they_o a_o second_o pope_n be_v not_o subject_a to_o appeal_v this_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o ten_o article_n of_o the_o six_o title_n be_v they_o say_v the_o judgement_n of_o all_o metropolitanshipp_n and_o bishopric_n belong_v to_o their_o proper_a patriarch_n but_o to_o he_o of_o constantinople_n it_o be_v lawful_a to_o confirm_v and_o reform_v and_o determine_v the_o contestation_n breed_v in_o other_o sea_n and_o by_o balsamon_n who_o write_v upon_o the_o five_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n that_o this_o comdemnation_n be_v mean_v of_o synod_n not_o subject_a to_o appeal_v as_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n to_o the_o six_o and_o last_o instance_n which_o be_v that_o photius_n say_v that_o from_o the_o nomocan_n patriarch_n there_o be_v no_o appeal_n we_o answer_v it_o be_v not_o photius_n that_o speak_v for_o photius_n insert_v not_o in_o his_o nomocanon_n but_o the_o only_a text_n of_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o emperor_n without_o mingle_v any_o thing_n of_o his_o own_o but_o that_o these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o constitution_n of_o justine_n uncle_n to_o justinian_n to_o which_o we_o have_v above_o answer_v who_o say_v allude_v to_o the_o eight_o law_n of_o the_o four_o title_n of_o the_o code_n for_o against_o such_o episcopal_a sentence_n as_o it_o have_v be_v ordain_v by_o our_o elder_n there_o be_v no_o appeal_n of_o which_o word_n the_o greek_a bookebinders_n or_o exemplifier_n have_v make_v for_o against_o the_o sentence_n of_o such_o bishop_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o patriarch_n there_o be_v no_o appeal_n together_o that_o if_o photius_n the_o author_n of_o the_o schism_n that_o still_o continue_v between_o the_o latin_a and_o greek_a church_n have_v write_v these_o word_n to_o defend_v the_o invasion_n make_v upon_o the_o sea_n of_o ignatius_n true_a and_o lawful_a patriarch_n then_o alive_a and_o to_o hinder_v the_o appeal_n that_o ignatius_n have_v put_v in_o against_o photius_n and_o his_o pretend_a synod_n to_o the_o pope_n 〈◊〉_d take_v effect_n it_o will_v have_v bear_v no_o weight_n but_o so_o far_o 〈◊〉_d it_o from_o be_v so_o as_o not_o only_a photius_n but_o after_o he_o simon_n logothetae_n zonara_n balsamon_n alexios_fw-la blastares_n harmenopolus_n and_o other_o greek_a canonist_n insert_v into_o their_o collection_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o cowcell_n of_o sardica_n and_o particular_o the_o three_o four_o five_o &_o by_o which_o the_o episcopal_a appeal_n of_o all_o the_o province_n be_v yield_v to_o the_o pope_n but_o also_o that_o under_o the_o very_a title_n of_o the_o retractation_n of_o the_o sentence_n of_o bishop_n under_o which_o he_o register_n this_o constitution_n of_o justine_n he_o quote_v three_o four_o five_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n which_o ordain_v that_o the_o episcopal_a appeal_n shall_v be_v remit_v to_o the_o pope_n for_o to_o this_o that_o zonara_n to_o preserve_v the_o eastern_a appeal_n to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o conctantinople_n say_v that_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n in_o make_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o episcopal_a appeal_n intend_v to_o yield_v no_o more_o to_o the_o pope_n but_o the_o western_a appeal_v we_o say_v beside_o this_o that_o this_o exception_n 5._o defaulk_v not_o africa_n which_o make_v a_o part_n of_o the_o western_a province_n and_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o provost_n of_o the_o pretory_n of_o italy_n it_o be_v against_o the_o precise_a intention_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n which_o publish_v this_o rule_n expresselie_o to_o abrogate_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n and_o to_o justify_v the_o restitution_n that_o pope_n 〈◊〉_d have_v make_v of_o saint_n athanasius_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o of_o paul_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n &_o of_o marcellus_n primate_n of_o ancyra_n in_o galatia_n and_o of_o asclepas_n bishop_n of_o gaza_n in_o palestina_n who_o have_v be_v depose_v from_o their_o sea_n by_o the_o counsel_n of_o tyre_n of_o jerusalem_n of_o antioch_n &_o other_o eastern_a counsel_n julium_n say_v zosom_n receive_v athanasius_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n paul_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n marcellus_n bishop_n of_o ancyra_n in_o galatia_n asclepas_n bishop_n of_o gaza_n in_o palestina_n and_o lucius_n bishop_n of_o andrinople_n into_o his_o communion_n and_o because_o that_o to_o he_o for_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o sea_n the_o care_n of_o all_o thing_n belong_v he_o restore_v to_o each_o of_o they_o his_o church_n 7_o and_o elsewhere_o speak_v of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n they_o answer_v that_o they_o will_v not_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o athanasius_n and_o of_o paul_n and_o principal_o for_o as_o much_o as_o 10._o julius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v examine_v their_o cause_n and_o have_v not_o condemn_v they_o and_o therefore_o balsamon_n see_v that_o this_o evasion_n can_v not_o subsist_v have_v invent_v a_o other_o which_o be_v that_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n have_v indeed_o yield_v to_o the_o pope_n the_o appeal_n of_o all_o bishop_n but_o that_o constantinople_n have_v since_o be_v erect_v to_o the_o title_n of_o the_o second_o rome_n the_o right_a of_o appeal_n have_v be_v divide_v between_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o patriarcke_n of_o constantinople_n those_o thing_n say_v balsamon_n comment_v the_o three_o canon_n of_o 3._o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n which_o be_v here_o define_v of_o the_o pope_n ought_v also_o to_o be_v extend_v to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n because_o by_o diverse_a canon_n he_o mean_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o of_o the_o conncell_n surname_v 5._o trullian_n by_o which_o he_o pretende_v that_o he_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n be_v make_v equal_a to_o the_o pope_n except_v precedence_n he_o have_v be_v honour_v with_o privilege_n in_o all_o thing_n equal_a to_o those_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o again_o comment_v the_o five_o canon_n of_o the_o same_o council_n of_o sardica_n this_o privilege_n belong_v not_o to_o the_o pope_n alone_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v necessary_a that_o every_o condemn_a bishop_n have_v recourse_n 2._o to_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n but_o it_o ought_v also_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o sea_n of_o constantinople_n and_o nilus_n archbishop_n of_o thessalonica_n the_o twenty_o eight_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedom_n and_o the_o thirty_o six_o of_o the_o six_o synod_n honour_v the_o sea_n of_o constantinople_n with_o the_o same_o privilege_n as_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n yield_v also_o manifest_o the_o 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o sea_n of_o constantinople_n and_o so_o much_o for_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n cardinal_n
the_o confession_n of_o peter_n and_o the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n be_v both_o joint_o true_a but_o in_o different_a sense_n for_o the_o confession_n of_o peter_n be_v the_o causal_n foundation_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v it_o be_v the_o cause_n for_o which_o the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n rather_o than_o upon_o that_o of_o any_o other_o apostle_n for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o primacy_n of_o this_o confession_n not_o proceed_v nor_o prevent_v from_o or_o by_o any_o humane_a instruction_n but_o proceed_v immediate_o from_o the_o pure_a revelation_n of_o god_n the_o other_o apostle_n be_v silent_a &_o not_o know_v what_o to_o answer_v be_v the_o cause_n in_o favour_n whereof_o christ_n choose_v prefer_v he_o before_o all_o other_o saint_n peter_n to_o constitute_v he_o the_o foundation_n of_o his_o church_n and_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n be_v the_o formal_a foundation_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o upon_o who_o ministry_n by_o prefer_v he_o before_o all_o other_o christ_n have_v build_v and_o edify_v his_o church_n but_o the_o differenc_n of_o these_o two_o exposition_n be_v that_o the_o one_o be_v immediate_a and_o the_o other_o mediate_v the_o one_o direct_a and_o the_o other_o collateral_a the_o one_o literal_a and_o the_o other_o moral_a the_o one_o original_a and_o perpetual_a and_o the_o other_o accessory_a and_o temporal_a the_o one_o consign_v from_o the_o beginning_n and_o the_o other_o introduce_v by_o occasion_n for_o before_o the_o arrian_n be_v rise_v up_o that_o be_v to_o say_v before_o the_o age_n of_o constantine_n and_o of_o the_o first_o council_n of_o nicaea_n the_o interpretation_n that_o be_v current_n in_o the_o church_n be_v that_o not_o of_o the_o confession_n of_o peter_n but_o of_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n as_o when_o 〈◊〉_d say_v in_o his_o book_n of_o prescription_n against_o heretic_n be_v there_o 32._o any_o thing_n conceal_v from_o peter_n who_o be_v call_v the_o stone_n of_o the_o build_n of_o the_o church_n and_o origen_n see_v what_o be_v say_v to_o the_o great_a foundation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o solid_a stone_n upon_o which_o christ_n have_v build_v his_o church_n and_o elsewhere_o peter_n upon_o who_o the_o 5._o church_n of_o christ_n have_v be_v build_v against_o which_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v and_o in_o the_o comentarie_a upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n translate_v by_o saint_n 15._o hierome_n when_o the_o sovereign_a authority_n of_o feed_v the_o sheep_n be_v give_v to_o peter_n and_o that_o upon_o he_o as_o upon_o a_o stone_n the_o church_n be_v build_v the_o confession_n of_o any_o other_o virtue_n be_v not_o exact_v of_o he_o but_o only_o that_o of_o charity_n and_o s._n cyprian_n 5._o peter_n who_o the_o lord_n choose_v first_o and_o upon_o who_o he_o build_v his_o church_n and_o again_o god_n be_v one_o and_o christ_n be_v one_o and_o the_o church_n be_v one_o and_o the_o chair_n be_v one_o build_v by_o 71._o the_o voice_n of_o our_o lord_n upon_o peter_n but_o after_o the_o come_n of_o constantine_n when_o 4._o the_o arrian_n have_v lift_v themselves_o up_o against_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n the_o father_n find_v no_o passage_n in_o the_o scripture_n more_o express_a to_o prove_v unto_o they_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o sonn_n of_o god_n not_o by_o adoption_n but_o 16._o by_o nature_n than_o this_o confession_n of_o saint_n peter_n thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n in_o which_o they_o hold_v that_o the_o word_n live_v have_v be_v express_o insert_v to_o show_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o sonn_n of_o god_n by_o generation_n for_o as_o much_o as_o to_o engender_v as_o say_v the_o philosopher_n be_v proper_a to_o live_a thing_n they_o take_v care_n as_o much_o as_o be_v possible_a for_o they_o to_o 〈◊〉_d the_o dignity_n of_o this_o confession_n and_o because_o that_o in_o favour_n thereof_o and_o for_o it_o s._n peter_n have_v be_v constitute_v foundation_n of_o the_o church_n they_o license_v themselves_o to_o call_v it_o by_o metonimy_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o translation_n of_o the_o name_n from_o the_o effect_n to_o the_o cause_n the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n that_o they_o may_v have_v the_o more_o occasion_n to_o declaim_v against_o those_o that_o destroy_v it_o in_o reproach_v they_o that_o they_o ruin_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o confession_n in_o favour_n whereof_o and_o for_o who_o cause_n he_o that_o have_v make_v it_o have_v be_v constitute_v foundation_n of_o the_o church_n but_o nevertheless_o to_o show_v that_o they_o intend_v not_o in_o do_v this_o to_o exclude_v the_o person_n of_o peter_n from_o be_v the_o formal_a foundation_n of_o the_o church_n that_o which_o the_o same_o father_n have_v say_v in_o one_o place_n of_o the_o confession_n of_o peter_n as_o causal_a foundation_n of_o the_o church_n they_o say_v it_o in_o a_o other_o yea_o often_o time_n in_o the_o same_o place_n of_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n as_o formal_a foundation_n of_o the_o church_n this_o appear_v by_o saint_n hilary_n who_o 6_o dispute_v in_o his_o work_n of_o the_o trinity_n against_o the_o arrian_n after_o he_o have_v say_v this_o faith_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n by_o this_o faith_n the_o gate_n of_o hell_n be_v disable_v against_o she_o this_o faith_n have_v the_o key_n of_o the_o heavenly_a kingdom_n add_v immediate_o after_o to_o declare_v that_o this_o shall_v be_v intend_v of_o the_o say_v of_o saint_n peter_n causallie_o and_o meritoriouslie_o but_o of_o his_o person_n formal_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o this_o confession_n have_v only_o be_v the_o meritorious_a cause_n for_o which_o saint_n peter_n have_v receive_v these_o thing_n but_o that_o it_o be_v the_o person_n of_o peter_n that_o have_v proper_o and_o formal_o receive_v ibidem_fw-la they_o this_o be_v he_o that_o in_o the_o silence_n of_o all_o the_o other_o apostle_n acknowledge_v beyond_o the_o capacity_n of_o human_a infirmity_n the_o sonn_n of_o god_n by_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o father_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o confession_n of_o his_o bless_a faith_n a_o supereminent_a place_n and_o a_o little_a after_o he_o have_v confess_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o sonn_n of_o god_n and_o for_o that_o he_o be_v call_v bless_a this_o be_v the_o revelation_n of_o the_o father_n this_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n this_o be_v the_o assurauce_n of_o eternity_n from_o hence_o he_o have_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o 〈◊〉_d from_o hence_o his_o earthly_a judgment_n become_v heavenly_a and_o a_o little_a before_o after_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o bless_a simon_n be_v submit_v 10_o to_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n receive_v the_o key_n of_o the_o heavenly_a kingdom_n and_o in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o very_a place_n of_o the_o word_n of_o jesus_n 16._o christ_n the_o confession_n of_o peter_n have_v receive_v a_o true_o worthiereward_n ibidem_fw-la and_o a_o little_a after_o in_o the_o title_n of_o a_o new_a name_n bless_a foundation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o worthy_a stone_n of_o her_o edification_n that_o destroy_v the_o law_n of_o 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o gate_n of_o the_o deep_n and_o all_o the_o prison_n of_o death_n o_o bless_a porter_n of_o heaven_n to_o who_o arbitrement_n the_o key_n of_o the_o eternal_a entry_n be_v deliver_v who_o judgment_n on_o earth_n have_v authority_n to_o prejudge_v in_o heaven_n and_o elsewhere_o christ_n have_v so_o great_a a_o zeal_n to_o suffer_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o human_a kind_n as_o peter_n the_o first_o confessor_n of_o the_o sonn_n of_o god_n the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n the_o porter_n of_o the_o heavenly_a kingdom_n the_o judge_n of_o heaven_n upon_o earth_n dissuade_v he_o he_o call_v he_o by_o the_o name_n of_o satan_n and_o so_o saint_v chrysostome_n 13._o interpret_v it_o that_o be_v to_o say_v sometime_o of_o his_o faith_n upon_o this_o stone_n say_v he_o that_o be_v to_o say_v upon_o the_o faith_n of_o this_o confession_n and_o sometime_o 6._o of_o his_o person_n he_o promise_v say_v he_o to_o make_v a_o fisherman_n more_o solid_a than_o any_o kind_n of_o stone_n and_o upon_o the_o fiftith_n psalm_n hear_v what_o he_o say_v to_o peter_n that_o pillar_n that_o foundation_n and_o therefore_o call_v peter_n as_o make_v a_o rock_n by_o faith_n and_o again_o that_o pillar_n of_o the_o church_n that_o basis_n of_o 4_o the_o faith_n that_o be_v add_v of_o the_o apostolic_a flock_n and_o saint_n cyrill_n do_v even_o the_o same_o sometime_o of_o his_o faith_n he_o have_v say_v he_o call_v the_o immutable_a faith_n of_o peter_n his_o disciple_n a_o rock_n and_o sometime_o of_o his_o
carnal_o that_o peter_n that_o shall_v tell_v they_o know_v they_o 〈◊〉_d for_o that_o in_o the_o six_o of_o s._n john_n s._n peter_n answer_v in_o common_a for_o all_o the_o apostle_n we_o believe_v and_o know_v thou_o be_v christ_n the_o sonn_n of_o the_o live_a god_n beside_o that_o the_o latin_a edition_n have_v not_o the_o word_n live_v we_o say_v it_o be_v a_o late_a thing_n for_o as_o much_o as_o when_o saint_n peter_n answer_v we_o believe_v and_o know_v that_o thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n he_o have_v be_v already_o constitute_v head_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o other_o apostle_n and_o in_o this_o quality_n he_o answer_v alone_o for_o all_o the_o 28._o rest_n as_o saint_n cyrill_n testify_v in_o these_o word_n by_o one_o that_o preside_v or_o that_o be_v preeminent_a all_o answer_v and_o have_v already_o receive_v the_o promise_n of_o our_o lord_n that_o upon_o he_o he_o will_v build_v his_o church_n as_o s._n cyprian_n declare_v in_o these_o word_n peter_n speak_v here_o upon_o who_o the_o church_n have_v be_v build_v and_o therefore_o as_o the_o apostle_n have_v part_n in_o the_o primacy_n 69_o of_o this_o confession_n only_o by_o adherence_n and_o non-repugnancie_n so_o our_o lord_n give_v they_o part_n in_o the_o authority_n he_o have_v give_v to_o saint_n peter_n by_o adherence_n and_o communication_n with_o s._n peter_n that_o be_v to_o say_v under_o condition_n of_o communicate_v and_o adhere_v and_o remain_v in_o unity_n with_o saint_n peter_n and_o yet_o this_o part_n that_o he_o promise_v and_o give_v they_o in_o the_o rule_n and_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n be_v afterward_o to_o wit_n as_o in_o right_a in_o the_o eighteen_o of_o saint_n mathew_n what_o you_o bind_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n and_o as_o the_o instalment_n into_o the_o possession_n in_o the_o twenty_o of_o saint_n john_n receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o sin_n you_o forgive_v shall_v be_v forgive_v to_o the_o end_n to_o shewthat_o to_o saint_v peter_z only_o the_o condition_n of_o be_v a_o rock_n that_o be_v to_o sa_o rule_n and_o foundation_n of_o the_o build_n of_o the_o church_n have_v be_v principal_o and_o original_o give_v and_o that_o afterward_o it_o be_v extend_v to_o the_o other_o apostle_n it_o be_v by_o aggregation_n and_o association_n and_o by_o communicate_v and_o adhere_v with_o he_o and_o as_o have_v relation_n and_o correspondence_n to_o he_o as_o to_o the_o centre_n and_o middle_a form_n of_o the_o verity_n of_o the_o church_n for_o as_o god_n give_v first_o his_o spirit_n to_o moses_n and_o after_o take_v of_o the_o spirit_n that_o he_o have_v give_v to_o moses_n and_o give_v thereof_o to_o the_o seven_o tie_v two_o elder_n not_o that_o god_n take_v away_o from_o moses_n any_o portion_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o he_o have_v give_v he_o not_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v divisible_a but_o to_o the_o end_n to_o establish_v and_o show_v a_o relation_n of_o unity_n dependencie_n and_o adherencie_n of_o the_o seventy_o two_o elder_n to_o moses_n so_o in_o some_o sort_n for_o i_o compare_v not_o the_o two_o history_n whole_o our_o lord_n give_v first_o the_o whole_a authority_n of_o the_o ministry_n and_o the_o chair_n apostolic_a to_o saint_n peter_n alone_o i_o intend_v as_o in_o right_a and_o not_o in_o actual_a possession_n which_o he_o receive_v not_o till_o after_o the_o resurrection_n and_o after_o 〈◊〉_d it_o to_o all_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n in_o common_a to_o the_o end_n to_o show_v the_o relation_n of_o dependencie_n unitié_fw-fr and_o adherence_n that_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v with_o 26._o saint_n peter_n who_o upon_o this_o occasion_n macharius_fw-la a_o ancient_a egyptian_a divine_a call_v the_o successor_n of_o moses_n afterwards_o say_v he_o to_o moses_n succeed_v peter_n to_o who_o the_o new_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o true_a priesthood_n have_v be_v commit_v which_o have_v cause_v the_o father_n to_o say_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o chair_n which_o be_v the_o chair_n of_o peter_n but_o that_o in_o this_o chair_n all_o the_o apostle_n be_v place_v to_o wit_n by_o the_o adherence_n communion_n and_o unity_n that_o they_o have_v with_o s._n peter_n in_o the_o episcopal_a chair_n say_v saint_n optatus_n milevitanus_fw-la there_o be_v set_v the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o apostle_n peter_n from_o 2._o whence_o he_o also_o have_v be_v call_v cephas_n to_o the_o end_n that_o in_o this_o only_a chair_n unity_n may_v be_v preserve_v in_o all_o lest_o the_o other_o apostle_n shall_v attribute_v to_o themselves_o every_o one_o his_o chair_n a_o part_n but_o that_o he_o may_v be_v a_o schismatic_n &_o 〈◊〉_d that_o against_o this_o only_a chair_n shall_v erect_v a_o other_o and_o therefore_o also_o the_o surname_n of_o peter_n by_o which_o this_o condition_n of_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o church_n be_v design_v have_v be_v give_v to_o he_o only_o to_o bear_v it_o in_o the_o title_n of_o a_o proper_a name_n and_o not_o to_o any_o other_o apostle_n to_o show_v that_o to_o he_o by_o excellency_n and_o eminency_n over_o all_o the_o rest_n appertain_v the_o thing_n whereof_o he_o alone_o bear_v the_o name_n for_o since_o our_o lord_n shall_v by_o the_o word_n peter_z design_n the_o condition_n of_o be_v the_o ministerial_a foundation_n of_o the_o church_n for_o what_o cause_n shall_v he_o affect_v it_o to_o peter_n alone_o to_o bear_v it_o in_o the_o title_n of_o a_o proper_a and_o ordinary_a name_n and_o not_o give_v it_o to_o any_o other_o if_o he_o be_v not_o to_o bea_fw-mi foundation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o a_o other_o manner_n then_o the_o rest_n which_o s._n basill_n have_v in_o such_o sort_n acknowledge_v as_o desire_v to_o show_v the_o difference_n which_o be_v between_o the_o substance_n and_o the_o hipostaticall_a propriety_n of_o any_o subject_n he_o allege_v for_o example_n of_o the_o substance_n the_o substance_n of_o humanity_n which_o be_v common_a to_o peter_n &_o paul_n although_o say_v he_o the_o appellation_n be_v different_a yet_o the_o substance_n of_o peter_n and_o 2._o paul_n and_o of_o all_o man_n be_v one_o and_o allege_v among_o the_o example_n of_o the_o hypostatical_a individual_a and_o incommunicable_a condition_n of_o peter_n that_o be_v to_o say_v which_o be_v particular_a to_o he_o only_o and_o be_v not_o common_a to_o he_o with_o saint_n paul_n nor_o with_o any_o other_o the_o condition_n of_o be_v ibid._n the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n because_o say_v he_o the_o name_n of_o man_n signify_v not_o their_o substance_n but_o the_o propriety_n whereby_o each_o of_o they_o be_v design_v in_o particular_a from_o thence_o it_o be_v that_o when_o we_o hear_v the_o name_n of_o peter_n we_o understand_v not_o his_o substance_n etc._n etc._n but_o conceive_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o propriety_n which_o be_v particular_a to_o he_o for_o as_o soon_o as_o we_o hear_v this_o word_n we_o understand_v peter_n the_o son_n of_o jonas_n he_o that_o be_v of_o bethsaida_n he_o that_o be_v brother_n to_o andrew_n he_o that_o of_o a_o fisherman_n be_v make_v a_o apostle_n he_o that_o 〈◊〉_d reason_n of_o the_o supereminencie_n of_o his_o faith_n receive_v upon_o he_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n and_o for_o this_o same_o cause_n to_o saint_n peter_n only_o there_o have_v be_v confer_v singular_o separately_z and_o apart_z the_o authority_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o all_o the_o rest_n only_o in_o common_a and_o joint_o with_o he_o to_o the_o end_n to_o show_v that_o he_o be_v the_o original_n the_o source_n the_o centre_n and_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o no_o other_o out_o of_o his_o communion_n can_v exercise_v the_o rule_n and_o ministry_n thereof_o but_o that_o the_o rest_n have_v right_a to_o exercise_v it_o it_o be_v only_o as_o associate_v and_o aggregated_a with_o he_o and_o as_o graft_v and_o insert_v upon_o he_o for_o our_o lord_n never_o say_v singular_o to_o any_o of_o the_o eleven_o thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n and_o i_o will_v give_v thou_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n nor_o i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o that_o thy_o faith_n shall_v not_o fail_v and_o final_o thou_o be_v convert_v confirm_v thy_o brother_n nor_o love_v thou_o i_o more_o than_o these_o feed_v my_o sheep_n but_o only_o have_v say_v in_o general_a to_o all_o the_o 18._o body_n of_o the_o apostle_n saint_n peter_n be_v colleague_n present_a and_o comprehend_v therein_o that_o which_o he_o have_v say_v before_o 23._o to_o saint_n peter_n alone_o as_o to_o the_o head_n that_o which_o you_o shall_v bind_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n and_o they_o
peter_n debate_v the_o primacy_n with_o he_o no_o long_o but_o yield_v he_o presidencie_n this_o appear_v as_o well_o by_o the_o text_n of_o the_o history_n where_o there_o be_v no_o track_n of_o respect_n give_v to_o saint_n james_n but_o to_o s._n peter_n only_o as_o by_o the_o time_n wherein_o s._n james_n be_v create_v bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n for_o the_o first_o act_n that_o the_o apostle_n do_v after_o the_o ascension_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v the_o substitution_n of_o mathias_n instead_o of_o 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o history_n whereof_o saint_n chrysostome_n say_v these_o word_n and_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n and_o eusebius_n testify_v that_o the_o promotion_n of_o saint_n james_n to_o the_o bishopric_n of_o jerusalem_n happen_v afterward_o by_o mean_n whereof_o the_o apostle_n can_v not_o in_o that_o action_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o the_o election_n of_o mathias_n yield_v presidencie_n to_o saint_n james_n because_o of_o the_o bishopric_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o the_o same_o be_v confirm_v both_o by_o this_o that_o saint_n chrisostome_n have_v write_v upon_o the_o twenty_o chapter_n of_o 66._o saint_n matthew_n mark_v say_v he_o how_o this_o same_o john_n that_o late_o make_v such_o demand_n after_o whole_o yield_v the_o primacy_n to_o saint_n peter_n and_o by_o this_o that_o he_o add_v present_o after_o the_o place_n object_v this_o man_n say_v he_o speak_v of_o 3._o saint_n peter_n first_o constitute_v a_o doctor_n and_o say_v not_o we_o be_v enough_o to_o teach_v far_o be_v he_o from_o vain_a glory_n and_o a_o little_a after_o he_o take_v the_o first_o authority_n of_o the_o affair_n ibid._n as_o he_o that_o have_v all_o other_o put_v into_o his_o hand_n for_o to_o he_o christ_n have_v say_v and_o thou_o be_v once_o convert_v confirm_v thy_o brother_n and_o by_o this_o that_o he_o protest_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o discourse_n peter_n say_v he_o both_o as_o full_a of_o 〈◊〉_d &_o as_o have_v receive_v from_o christ_n the_o flock_n into_o his_o keep_n and_o as_o the_o first_o of_o the_o college_n always_o first_o begin_v to_o speak_v to_o the_o thirteen_o objection_n which_o be_v that_o saint_n chrisostome_n write_v upon_o the_o fifteen_o of_o the_o act_n that_o the_o principality_n be_v commit_v to_o james_n it_o be_v true_a but_o he_o speak_v there_o only_o of_o the_o principality_n of_o the_o hierosolomitan_a church_n if_o indeed_o the_o greek_a word_n do_v in_o that_o place_n intend_v principality_n and_o not_o beginning_n and_o that_o the_o sense_n be_v not_o that_o james_n have_v be_v establish_v from_o the_o beginning_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o he_o be_v of_o the_o ancient_a apostle_n and_o not_o of_o the_o new_a as_o saint_n paul_n and_o nevertheless_o that_o he_o take_v no_o exception_n to_o s._n paul_n for_o speak_v between_o s._n peter_n and_o he_o for_o what_o soever_o that_o greek_a word_n signify_v it_o be_v certain_a it_o can_v signify_v nothing_o but_o the_o principality_n of_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o not_o the_o principality_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n which_o s._n chrisostome_n himself_o testify_v elsewhere_o to_o have_v be_v grant_v to_o saint_n peter_n in_o these_o word_n for_o if_o any_o one_o ask_v i_o say_v he_o how_o do_v james_n 87._o obtain_v the_o sea_n of_o jerusalem_n i_o will_v answer_v that_o christ_n have_v constitute_v peter_n master_n not_o of_o that_o sea_n but_o of_o all_o the_o world_n and_o again_o christ_n have_v foretell_v peter_n great_a thing_n and_o have_v put_v the_o whole_a world_n into_o his_o hand_n and_o have_v pronounce_v martyrdom_n to_o he_o and_o she_o wed_v he_o great_a love_n than_o to_o the_o rest_n and_o indeed_o s._n chrisostome_n allege_v not_o this_o principality_n to_o show_v the_o modesty_n of_o saint_n james_n in_o this_o that_o he_o be_v not_o offend_v that_o saint_n peter_n have_v speak_v before_o he_o but_o to_o show_v the_o modesty_n of_o saint_n james_n in_o this_o that_o he_o be_v not_o offend_v that_o saint_n paul_n speak_v between_o saint_n peter_n and_o he_o a_o manifest_a proof_n that_o he_o treat_v not_o of_o the_o universal_a principality_n but_o of_o the_o principality_n of_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o jerusalem_n of_o which_o he_o make_v mention_n in_o this_o place_n because_o those_o that_o have_v move_v the_o trouble_n for_o which_o the_o council_n be_v hold_v be_v the_o jew_n and_o pharisee_n of_o jerusalem_n convert_v to_o christianity_n who_o be_v jealous_a to_o see_v that_o the_o gentile_n be_v receive_v into_o the_o church_n without_o oblige_v themselves_o to_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o law_n and_o because_o saint_n james_n have_v more_o especial_a credit_n in_o their_o behalf_n because_o he_o be_v not_o only_o their_o bishop_n but_o bishop_n of_o the_o city_n which_o but_o a_o while_n before_o be_v metropolitan_a of_o the_o law_n and_o consequent_o it_o seem_v he_o shall_v be_v touch_v with_o a_o more_o strict_a interest_n to_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o law_n than_o any_o other_o and_o also_o that_o he_o have_v not_o go_v about_o with_o saint_n peter_n and_o saint_n paul_n to_o receive_v the_o gentile_n into_o the_o church_n and_o by_o this_o mean_n have_v not_o lose_v his_o 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o legalist_n it_o be_v say_v saint_n chrysostome_n a_o profitable_a providence_n that_o those_o thing_n be_v do_v by_o those_o that_o be_v not_o to_o reside_v in_o jerusalem_n and_o that_o he_o that_o teach_v the_o hierosolomitan_n be_v not_o refusable_a and_o that_o his_o opinion_n may_v not_o be_v depart_v from_o for_o these_o cause_n than_o saint_n james_n have_v by_o accident_n a_o great_a authority_n in_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o author_n of_o this_o scandal_n than_o the_o other_o apostle_n to_o preserve_v the_o which_o he_o do_v say_v saint_n chrisostome_n that_o which_o those_o aught_o to_o do_v that_o be_v constitute_v in_o great_a authority_n that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o suffer_v saint_n peter_n to_o speak_v more_o severelie_o and_o himself_o speak_v more_o gentle_o but_o that_o compare_v simple_o with_o saint_n peter_n he_o be_v either_o equal_a or_o superior_a in_o jurisdiction_n saint_n chrisostome_n be_v so_o far_o from_o have_v ever_o think_v it_o that_o contrariwise_o he_o cry_v out_o a_o loud_a peter_n be_v 87._o the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o disciple_n and_o the_o head_n of_o the_o college_n and_o for_o this_o occasion_n paul_n go_v up_o to_o visit_v he_o let_v the_o rest_n alone_o and_o a_o little_a after_o christ_n put_v into_o his_o hand_n the_o provostship_n of_o his_o brother_n ibid._n and_o upbraid_v he_o not_o with_o his_o denial_n of_o he_o nor_o reproach_v he_o with_o what_o be_v pass_v but_o say_v to_o he_o if_o thou_o love_v i_o be_v precedent_n of_o they_o brother_n and_o the_o same_o love_n that_o thou_o have_v in_o all_o thing_n show_v to_o i_o and_o whereof_o thou_o have_v boast_v show_v it_o now_o and_o that_o life_n that_o thou_o have_v say_v thou_o will_v lay_v down_o for_o i_o lie_v it_o down_o for_o my_o sheep_n and_o in_o the_o homily_n thirtith_v three_o upon_o saint_n mathew_n the_o first_o and_o the_o corypheos_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v a_o man_n ignorant_a and_o without_o learning_n and_o in_o the_o homily_n fifty_o five_o not_o only_o the_o apostle_n be_v scandalize_v but_o also_o the_o corypheos_n that_o be_v to_o say_v sovereign_a of_o they_o all_o peter_z 2._o and_o in_o the_o second_o book_n of_o the_o priesthood_n christ_n commit_v the_o care_n of_o his_o sheep_n to_o peter_n and_o peter_n successor_n and_o in_o this_o do_v all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o father_n agree_v aswell_o greek_a as_o latin_a thou_o see_v say_v saint_n gregory_n 26._o nazianzen_n among_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n all_o sublime_a and_o worthy_a of_o election_n that_o one_o of_o they_o be_v call_v the_o rock_n and_o that_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n be_v commit_v to_o he_o and_o the_o other_o be_v more_o belove_a and_o lean_v upon_o the_o bosom_n of_o jesus_n and_o the_o rest_n suffer_v the_o difference_n and_o saint_n ambrose_n the_o lord_n say_v he_o by_o 24_o these_o word_n love_v thou_o i_o more_o than_o these_o ask_v the_o question_n not_o to_o learn_v but_o to_o teach_v be_v ready_a to_o be_v himself_o exalt_v into_o heaven_n which_o be_v he_o who_o he_o will_v leave_v to_o we_o for_o the_o vicar_n of_o his_o love_n and_o a_o little_a after_o and_o because_o that_o of_o they_o all_o he_o only_o protest_v he_o be_v prefer_v before_o they_o all_o and_o elsewhere_o with_o a_o full_a flood_n of_o tear_n the_o church_n rock_n diluit_fw-la do_v cleanse_v his_o crime_n at_o crowinge_v of_o the_o cock_n and_o s._n epiphanius_n christ_n have_v appoint_v peter_n to_o be_v the_o guide_n and_o leader_n of_o his_o
that_o in_o christ_n there_o be_v but_o one_o nature_n that_o be_v to_o say_v confound_v and_o steep_v the_o essence_n of_o the_o humanity_n in_o that_o of_o the_o divinity_n do_v not_o saint_n augustine_n cry_v out_o those_o that_o believe_v 4._o not_o that_o christ_n be_v come_v in_o the_o flesh_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o he_o be_v rise_v again_o in_o the_o same_o body_n wherein_o he_o have_v be_v crucify_v and_o bury_v although_o they_o shall_v be_v in_o all_o the_o country_n over_o the_o which_o the_o church_n be_v spread_v be_v not_o in_o the_o church_n how_o can_v then_o the_o true_a church_n have_v communion_n with_o this_o sect_n and_o how_o can_v this_o sect_n be_v a_o member_n and_o a_o true_a part_n of_o the_o church_n and_o how_o can_v it_o be_v that_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o hold_v the_o contrary_a doctrine_n and_o of_o this_o sect_n there_o shall_v be_v frame_v one_o common_a body_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d church_n and_o to_o go_v about_o to_o join_v they_o together_o in_o one_o selfe-same_a society_n of_o a_o catholic_a church_n and_o more_o to_o add_v unto_o they_o all_o other_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a sect_n how_o be_v it_o any_o other_o thing_n then_o to_o go_v about_o to_o join_v like_o mezentius_n dead_a body_n with_o live_a body_n and_o to_o make_v of_o the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n &_o of_o the_o dove_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o only_a catholic_a church_n a_o monster_n and_o a_o prodigy_n compound_v of_o all_o the_o impious_a horrible_a and_o contradictory_n heresy_n that_o have_v rend_v the_o coat_n and_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o put_v communion_n between_o christ_n and_o beliall_a and_o between_o light_n and_o darkness_n the_o catholic_a church_n then_o be_v not_o a_o mass_n and_o common_a society_n which_o contain_v in_o it_o the_o confusion_n of_o all_o sect_n and_o of_o all_o the_o multitude_n of_o those_o that_o be_v call_v christian_n but_o it_o be_v a_o particular_a society_n among_o all_o those_o society_n which_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o catholic_a or_o total_a church_n not_o because_o it_o contain_v in_o deed_n all_o the_o rest_n you_o will_v say_v optatus_n milevitanus_fw-la to_o the_o donatist_n be_v alone_o all_o the_o whole_a 〈◊〉_d 2._o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o in_o the_o whole_a and_o saint_n augustine_n whosoever_o defend_v a_o part_n separate_v from_o the_o whole_a can_v usurp_v the_o title_n of_o a_o catholic_n but_o because_o she_o contain_v they_o in_o right_a and_o hold_v habituallie_o the_o place_n 7._o of_o the_o whole_a in_o regard_n of_o they_o for_o the_o church_n hold_v the_o place_n of_o the_o whole_a habituallie_o in_o regard_n of_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a sect_n and_o by_o her_o eminency_n for_o as_o much_o as_o none_o of_o the_o other_o consider_v every_o one_o a_o part_n equal_n her_o in_a number_n and_o in_o multitude_n howbeit_o say_v saint_n augustine_n that_o there_o be_v many_o heresy_n of_o christian_n which_o will_v be_v all_o call_v catholic_n there_o be_v nevertheless_o one_o church_n if_o you_o cast_v your_o eye_n upon_o the_o extent_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n more_o abundant_a in_o multitude_n and_o because_o unto_o she_o alone_o belong_v the_o prerogative_n of_o be_v successive_o spread_v over_o the_o whole_a earth_n in_o beginning_n from_o jerusalem_n whereas_o none_o of_o the_o other_o have_v the_o privilege_n but_o that_o the_o most_o part_n of_o they_o like_o that_o kind_n of_o ape_n which_o the_o greek_n call_v callithrix_fw-la can_v live_v but_o in_o that_o climate_n and_o under_o the_o same_o influence_n wherein_o they_o be_v breed_v and_o beyond_o this_o because_o all_o the_o rest_n have_v go_v forth_o from_o she_o and_o she_o have_v as_o saint_n augustine_n say_v still_o remain_v in_o her_o stock_n and_o root_n hold_v the_o place_n and_o right_a of_o the_o whole_a in_o regard_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n no_o more_o nor_o less_o than_o that_o part_n of_o the_o tree_n in_o which_o the_o life_n stand_v and_o root_n rest_v hold_v the_o place_n of_o the_o whole_a habituallie_o in_o regard_n of_o those_o that_o have_v be_v separate_v from_o contr_n 2._o it_o they_o under_o sy_n and_o not_o say_v he_o that_o among_o the_o sect_n of_o the_o christian_n there_o be_v one_o true_a and_o wholesome_a and_o in_o sort_n germinall_a and_o radical_a christian_a society_n from_o whence_o they_o have_v separate_v themselves_o and_o final_o because_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v oblige_v if_o they_o will_v obtain_v salvation_n to_o reinsert_v and_o reincorporate_v themselves_o into_o the_o body_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n hold_v most_o steadfast_o say_v fulgentius_n that_o no_o heretic_n or_o schismatik_a if_o he_o be_v 39_o not_o reconcile_v to_o the_o catholic_n church_n before_o the_o end_n of_o his_o life_n can_v be_v save_v otherwise_o if_o all_o the_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a society_n which_o profess_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n may_v justly_o enjoy_v the_o title_n of_o the_o church_n and_o be_v actuallie_o part_n of_o the_o church_n wherefore_o have_v the_o father_n employ_v these_o sentence_n against_o heretic_n and_o schismatics_n that_o 〈◊〉_d 1._o of_o the_o church_n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n that_o out_o of_o the_o church_n there_o may_v be_v have_v the_o faith_n and_o sacrament_n and_o all_o thing_n else_o salvation_n except_v that_o emerit_fw-la who_o have_v not_o the_o church_n for_o his_o mother_n can_v have_v god_n for_o his_o father_n that_o he_o that_o communicate_v with_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v a_o catholic_a and_o eccles._n he_o that_o communicate_v not_o therewith_o be_v a_o heretic_n and_o antichrist_n and_o how_o can_v the_o excellent_a king_n himself_o have_v protest_v that_o he_o believe_v without_o colour_n or_o fraud_n that_o the_o be_v one_o only_a church_n in_o deed_n and_o in_o name_n catholic_a and_o universal_a spread_v over_o the_o whole_a world_n out_o of_o which_o there_o can_v be_v 〈◊〉_d salvation_n hope_v for_o and_o condemn_v and_o detest_v those_o that_o heretofore_o or_o since_o have_v separate_v themselves_o either_o from_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o be_v become_v heretic_n as_o the_o manichee_n or_o from_o her_o communion_n and_o be_v become_v schismatickes_n as_o the_o donatist_n if_o the_o catholic_a church_n do_v comprehend_v all_o the_o heretic_n and_o all_o schismatic_n among_o which_o there_o be_v never_o any_o more_o pernicious_a than_o those_o that_o destroy_v the_o human_a nature_n of_o christ_n the_o only_a organ_n of_o our_o salvation_n as_o the_o egyptian_n and_o ethiopian_n do_v for_o whereas_o his_o majesty_n avow_v that_o the_o frame_n &_o contexture_n of_o the_o church_n be_v already_o long_o ago_o dissolve_v &_o dissassemble_v between_o they_o &_o we_o but_o add_v in_o regard_n of_o external_a form_n s._n john_n 〈◊〉_d in_o say_v to_o we_o if_o any_o one_o bring_v thou_o not_o this_o doctrine_n say_v not_o so_o much_o to_o he_o as_o well_o be_v it_o with_o thou_o for_o whosoever_o shall_v say_v to_o he_o well_o be_v it_o with_o thou_o shall_v communicate_v in_o his_o wiched_a work_n forbid_v we_o all_o communion_n as_o well_o internal_a as_o external_a with_o they_o and_o elsewhere_o we_o have_v already_o show_v that_o when_o external_a and_o sacramental_a communion_n be_v interdict_v on_o both_o side_n that_o be_v to_o say_v where_o there_o be_v a_o reciprocal_a excommunication_n and_o a_o erection_n of_o altar_n against_o altar_n there_o can_v be_v unity_n either_o internal_a or_o external_a if_o we_o be_v in_o unity_n say_v s._n augustine_n what_o make_v two_o pupp_n altar_n in_o the_o city_n and_o saint_n cyprian_n the_o church_n which_o be_v catholic_n 2._o be_v one_o maintain_v herself_o whole_a and_o be_v join_v together_o with_o the_o cement_n of_o prelate_n adhere_v to_o one_o another_o but_o against_o these_o decision_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o father_n there_o do_v arise_v four_o objection_n the_o first_o that_o the_o word_n church_n do_v grammaticallie_o signify_v assembly_n and_o consequent_o that_o all_o assembly_n be_v church_n and_o so_o all_o christian_a assembly_n be_v christian_a church_n now_o this_o objection_n be_v good_a in_o gramar_n and_o to_o interpret_v profane_a author_n but_o not_o in_o divinity_n nor_o to_o interpret_v christian_n author_n among_o who_o the_o word_n church_n have_v no_o more_o this_o vast_a and_o large_a grammatical_a signification_n as_o it_o have_v before_o for_o as_o when_o hormodius_fw-la and_o aristogiton_n have_v free_v the_o common_a wealth_n of_o athens_n from_o the_o slavery_n of_o the_o thirty_o tyrant_n the_o athenian_a senate_n to_o consecrate_v their_o name_n and_o to_o make_v they_o reverence_v to_o posterity_n ordain_v that_o from_o thence_o forward_o they_o shall_v never_o be_v impose_v upon_o or_o communicate_v to_o any_o other_o so_o after_o our_o lord_n have_v give_v to_o his_o
man_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o veritable_a man_n and_o then_o that_o a_o church_n leave_v not_o to_o be_v true_o a_o church_n although_o she_o be_v not_o a_o true_a church_n it_o be_v a_o sophism_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o essence_n to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o word_n and_o of_o the_o word_n verus_fw-la to_o the_o word_n verax_n there_o be_v none_o so_o young_a a_o scholar_n but_o know_v that_o to_o speak_v univocallie_o whosoever_o be_v true_o a_o man_n be_v a_o true_a man_n for_o as_o much_o as_o be_v and_o truth_n be_v convertible_a from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o saint_n ambrose_n use_v these_o word_n true_a israelite_n and_o true_o israelite_n as_o term_n equivalent_a and_o that_o saint_n augustine_n say_v every_o soul_n be_v by_o that_o a_o soul_n by_o which_o it_o be_v a_o true_a soul_n and_o therefore_o as_o the_o father_n affirm_v that_o there_o be_v none_o but_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v a_o true_a church_n from_o thence_o say_v saint_n augustine_n it_o appear_v that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v conceal_v from_o no_o body_n so_o they_o also_o say_v that_o there_o be_v none_o but_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v true_o a_o church_n if_o you_o do_v teach_v say_v saint_n augustine_n to_o the_o manichee_n that_o marriage_n be_v good_a but_o virginity_n better_o as_o do_v the_o church_n which_o be_v true_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n the_o bolie_a ghost_n have_v not_o predesign_v you_o and_o whereas_o it_o be_v reply_v that_o a_o man_n for_o be_v less_o or_o more_o sound_a leave_v not_o to_o be_v a_o man_n and_o so_o that_o a_o church_n for_o be_v less_o or_o more_o pure_a leave_v not_o to_o be_v a_o church_n it_o be_v a_o other_o manifest_a sophism_n for_o health_n be_v not_o the_o essential_a form_n of_o a_o man_n nor_o sickness_n the_o privation_n of_o the_o essential_a form_n of_o a_o man_n but_o a_o accident_n which_o consequent_o may_v receive_v more_o and_o less_o whereas_o purity_n of_o faith_n according_a to_o his_o majesty_n own_o confession_n be_v the_o essential_a form_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o impurity_n of_o faith_n the_o privation_n of_o the_o essential_a form_n of_o the_o church_n by_o mean_n whereof_o no_o society_n can_v hold_v among_o the_o condition_n of_o her_o communion_n and_o doctrine_n impure_a in_o faith_n and_o contrary_a to_o salvation_n but_o she_o lose_v at_o the_o same_o time_n the_o be_v and_o title_n of_o a_o church_n and_o therefore_o the_o diversity_n of_o the_o communion_n whereinto_o the_o church_n be_v divide_v when_o luther_n rise_v must_v not_o be_v allege_v for_o a_o pretence_n to_o be_v ignorant_a where_o the_o true_a church_n than_o be_v for_o since_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v perpetual_o visible_a and_o eminent_a and_o that_o then_o there_o be_v no_o christian_a communion_n visible_a in_o the_o world_n but_o we_o &_o that_o of_o the_o grecian_n under_o which_o be_v comprehend_v the_o muscovite_n &_o the_o antiochian_o &_o that_o of_o the_o egyptian_n &_o ethiopian_n which_o be_v but_o one_o &_o that_o of_o the_o armenian_n &_o that_o of_o the_o nestorian_n &_o that_o it_o be_v of_o the_o essence_n &_o of_o the_o necessirie_n of_o the_o church_n that_o she_o shall_v be_v pure_a and_o impolluted_a in_o faith_n and_o that_o all_o those_o other_o by_o the_o common_a confession_n of_o we_o and_o of_o the_o protestant_n be_v heretic_n and_o corrupt_v it_o be_v not_o needful_a to_o go_v to_o delphus_n to_o learn_v that_o either_o the_o church_n be_v perish_v which_o as_o we_o have_v above_o show_v can_v not_o be_v or_o that_o it_o be_v our_o communion_n which_o be_v the_o church_n of_o the_o quality_n wherein_o the_o catholic_n church_n attribute_n to_o herself_o the_o name_n of_o the_o whole_a chap._n viii_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n and_o therefore_o the_o most_o excellent_a king_n be_v much_o amaze_v when_o he_o see_v the_o church_n which_o have_v be_v member_n of_o the_o whole_a body_n draw_v to_o themselves_o all_o the_o right_a of_o uniniversalitie_n the_o reply_n it_o have_v already_o be_v above_o show_v that_o by_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o father_n never_o intend_v the_o mass_n and_o total_a conclusion_n of_o the_o multitude_n of_o christian_n but_o a_o special_a society_n distinct_a from_o the_o belief_n and_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o all_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a sect_n and_o which_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o general_a confusion_n of_o all_o the_o multitude_n of_o christian_n hold_v actuallie_o but_o the_o place_n of_o a_o part_n and_o hold_v only_o the_o place_n of_o the_o whole_a actuallie_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o particular_a church_n which_o be_v comprehend_v in_o deed_n in_o her_o communion_n for_o there_o be_v never_o any_o age_n since_o the_o apostle_n build_v the_o church_n but_o there_o have_v be_v some_o heretic_n which_o have_v go_v forth_o from_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n nevertheless_o make_v profession_n of_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n they_o have_v 2._o 11_o go_v forth_o from_o we_o say_v saint_n john_n but_o they_o be_v not_o of_o us._n and_o s._n juda_v curse_a be_v they_o for_o they_o perish_v in_o the_o contradiction_n of_o chore_n people_n which_o separate_v themselves_o man_n animal_n haviug_v not_o spirit_n and_o s._n augustine_n all_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n be_v go_v forth_o from_o we_o that_o 〈◊〉_d to_o say_v say_v he_o be_v go_v forth_o of_o the_o church_n but_o among_o this_o difference_n of_o society_n make_v profession_n of_o christian_a religion_n there_o be_v always_o one_o more_o eminent_a in_o multitude_n then_o the_o rest_n which_o have_v always_o remain_v in_o her_o stock_n and_o root_n and_o from_o whence_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v go_v forth_o to_o who_o also_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_a nath_n be_v preserve_v not_o because_o she_o hold_v actuallie_o the_o place_n of_o whole_a in_o regard_n of_o the_o rest_n but_o only_o of_o all_o habituallie_o as_o the_o stock_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o bough_n which_o have_v be_v pluck_v off_o for_o as_o much_o as_o in_o all_o the_o separation_n she_o remain_v in_o the_o same_o estate_n wherein_o all_o the_o body_n be_v before_o the_o separation_n and_o consequent_o have_v justly_o inherit_v the_o name_n of_o total_a church_n and_o succeed_v only_o in_o the_o right_n and_o application_n of_o the_o whole_a as_o be_v she_o alone_o that_o represent_v it_o the_o church_n say_v s._n augustine_n combat_v against_o all_o heresy_n may_v be_v resist_v but_o she_o can_v be_v overthrow_v 5._o all_o heresy_n be_v go_v forth_o from_o she_o as_o unprofitable_a branch_n cut_v off_o from_o their_o vine_n but_o she_o remain_v in_o her_o root_n in_o her_o vine_n in_o her_o charity_n the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o she_o which_o amaze_v i_o that_o be_v majesty_n shall_v be_v amaze_v that_o the_o church_n which_o have_v heretofore_o be_v member_n of_o the_o whole_a body_n shall_v draw_v to_o themselves_o all_o the_o right_n of_o the_o universality_n for_o the_o word_n catholic_a be_v never_o common_a to_o all_o christian_n but_o only_o to_o a_o part_n of_o christian_n to_o wit_n to_o that_o wherein_o there_o remain_v the_o actual_a totalitie_n of_o that_o which_o rest_v in_o the_o just_a possession_n of_o the_o title_n of_o the_o church_n and_o which_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o part_n separate_v retain_v no_o more_o the_o effect_n but_o only_o the_o right_n of_o the_o whole_a as_o represent_v she_o that_o before_o each_o separation_n be_v the_o whole_a and_o therefore_o so_o far_o be_v s._n augustine_n from_o extend_v the_o totalitie_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o the_o multitude_n of_o all_o the_o sect_n of_o christian_n as_o contrariwise_o after_o have_v report_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o eighty_o eight_o heresy_n he_o add_v what_o the_o catholic_a church_n hold_v against_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v a_o superfluous_a demand_n since_o it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o to_o know_v that_o she_o hold_v the_o contrary_a to_o these_o thing_n and_o a_o while_n after_o there_o may_v also_o be_v or_o be_v make_v other_o heresy_n beside_o these_o which_o be_v report_v in_o this_o work_n of_o we_o whereof_o who_o shall_v hold_v any_o one_o shall_v be_v no_o catholic_n christian_n and_o elsewhere_o the_o catholic_n and_o the_o heretic_n be_v divide_v the_o one_o against_o the_o other_o and_o again_o they_o can_v begin_v to_o be_v catholic_n till_o they_o have_v leave_v to_o be_v heretic_n and_o therefore_o when_o the_o heretical_a sect_n separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o divide_v themselves_o from_o the_o part_n that_o consent_v not_o to_o heresy_n they_o hinder_v not_o the_o title_n os_fw-la catholic_a nor_o the_o right_n of_o universality_n from_o be_v preserve_v in_o she_o
stranger_n ask_v a_o heretic_n where_o they_o assemble_v to_o communicate_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n none_o of_o they_o dare_v to_o show_v his_o temple_n or_o his_o house_n and_o the_o reason_n the_o title_n of_o catholic_a be_v not_o a_o allurement_n wherewith_o heretic_n draw_v ignorant_a person_n to_o they_o but_o the_o firm_a bond_n by_o which_o the_o true_a church_n draw_v to_o she_o and_o retain_v in_o her_o communion_n all_o the_o true_a faithful_a call_v to_o the_o hope_n of_o life_n eternal_a and_o among_o other_o this_o eágle_n of_o doctor_n s._n augustine_n who_o say_v ibidem_fw-la that_o i_o omit_v this_o sincere_a wisdom_n which_o you_o believe_v not_o to_o be_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n there_o be_v many_o other_o reason_n which_o do_v most_o justly_o retain_v i_o in_o her_o lap_n the_o consent_n of_o people_n and_o nation_n retain_v i_o the_o authority_n begunn_v by_o miracle_n 〈◊〉_d by_o hope_n increase_v by_o charity_n confirm_v by_o antiquity_n retain_v i_o the_o succession_n of_o prelate_n even_o from_o the_o sea_n of_o peter_n to_o who_o our_o lord_n commit_v his_o sheep_n to_o be_v feed_v ibidem_fw-la after_o his_o resurrection_n until_o the_o present_a bishop_n detain_v i_o and_o final_o the_o very_a name_n of_o catholic_a retain_v i_o and_o a_o little_a after_o these_o so_o many_a and_o so_o great_a most_o dear_a bond_n of_o the_o christian_a name_n do_v justly_o detain_v faithful_a man_n in_o the_o catholic_n church_n although_o for_o the_o slowness_n of_o our_o understanding_n of_o the_o defect_n of_o merit_n in_o our_o life_n truth_n do_v not_o yet_o show_v she_o else_o with_o manifest_a evidence_n of_o the_o case_n wherein_o the_o communion_n in_o vow_n with_o the_o catholic_n church_n may_v be_v impute_v as_o actual_a chap._n xv._n the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n but_o this_o notable_a calamity_n be_v particular_a to_o the_o last_o time_n whereto_o we_o be_v arrive_v that_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o must_v be_v communicate_v with_o either_o real_o and_o by_o effect_n or_o at_o the_o least_o voluntary_o and_o in_o vow_n be_v 〈◊〉_d illustrious_a at_o this_o day_n then_o ancient_o she_o be_v and_o less_o expose_v to_o the_o view_n of_o man_n and_o more_o subject_a to_o be_v contest_v the_o reply_n aristotle_n that_o great_a philosopher_n which_o steep_v his_o pen_n say_v the_o greek_n in_o sense_v in_o steed_n of_o ink_n teach_v we_o that_o the_o city_n 2._o be_v before_o the_o citizen_n to_o wit_n not_o in_o priority_n of_o time_n for_o a_o commonweal_n can_v not_o be_v without_o a_o citizen_n but_o in_o priority_n of_o nature_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o be_v of_o the_o citizen_n depend_v from_o that_o of_o the_o city_n and_o not_o the_o be_v of_o the_o city_n from_o that_o of_o the_o citizen_n from_o whence_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o form_n that_o give_v be_v in_o the_o first_o place_n to_o the_o city_n and_o then_o by_o participation_n to_o the_o citizen_n must_v reside_v in_o the_o city_n in_o the_o most_o perfect_a manner_n that_o it_o can_v reside_v and_o not_o in_o the_o most_o imperfect_a and_o so_o although_o it_o suffice_v to_o preserve_v to_o a_o citizen_n the_o be_v of_o a_o citizen_n that_o in_o default_n of_o be_v able_a to_o participate_v actuallie_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o common_a wealth_n as_o when_o he_o be_v hinder_v by_o any_o local_a obstacle_n either_o of_o be_v in_o a_o strange_a prison_n or_o remain_v in_o a_o strange_a country_n he_o commnicate_v there_o habituallie_o and_o in_o desire_n which_o be_v a_o imperfect_a manner_n of_o communicate_v it_o suffice_v not_o that_o the_o communion_n where_o by_o the_o common_a wealth_n be_v frame_v and_o preserve_v in_o be_v shall_v be_v a_o simple_a habitual_a communion_n and_o in_o vow_n but_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o true_a and_o actual_a communion_n for_o when_o a_o citizen_n be_v hinder_v by_o any_o local_a impossibility_n from_o communicate_v actuallie_o with_o his_o common_a wealth_n he_o leave_v not_o to_o preserve_v the_o be_v of_o a_o citizen_n provide_v that_o he_o communicate_v therewith_o habituallie_o that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o vow_n and_o in_o desire_n and_o communicate_v not_o in_o a_o politic_a communion_n with_o any_o contrary_a society_n but_o when_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o body_n of_o a_o commonwealth_n come_v to_o be_v disperse_v and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o any_o commerce_n or_o actual_a communion_n in_o the_o estate_n than_o the_o common_a wealth_n be_v extinct_a and_o have_v no_o more_o be_v and_o the_o communion_n that_o be_v habitual_a and_o in_o desire_n of_o the_o citizen_n disperse_v and_o no_o more_o communicate_v one_o with_o a_o other_o can_v preserve_v it_o now_o even_o that_o aught_o to_o be_v say_v of_o the_o church_n whereof_o the_o psalmist_n singe_v propheticallie_o jerusalem_n which_o 〈◊〉_d be_v build_v as_o a_o city_n who_o participation_n be_v in_o unity_n to_o wit_n that_o although_o the_o communion_n habitual_a and_o in_o vow_n suffice_v for_o a_o particular_a person_n in_o case_n of_o impossibility_n for_o the_o actual_a to_o make_v he_o imputativelie_o a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o cause_v this_o imperfect_a communion_n to_o serve_v he_o to_o salvation_n in_o default_n of_o the_o other_o nevertheless_o the_o church_n can_v be_v frame_v nor_o preserve_v in_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n by_o a_o communion_n only_o habitual_a and_o in_o vow_n but_o by_o a_o real_a and_o actual_a communion_n the_o which_o as_o soon_o as_o it_o come_v whole_o to_o cease_v and_o to_o perish_v in_o the_o church_n the_o church_n perish_v and_o cease_v to_o be_v and_o therefore_o this_o distinction_n of_o actual_a communion_n and_o communion_n in_o vow_n serve_v well_o to_o show_v that_o any_o one_o may_v be_v imputativelie_a in_o the_o church_n without_o participate_v actuallie_o in_o the_o visible_a communion_n of_o the_o church_n provide_v that_o this_o defect_n come_v from_o a_o imposibilitie_n of_o participate_v therein_o actualie_a but_o not_o to_o show_v that_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n can_v subsist_v and_o preserve_v the_o be_v and_o true_a title_n of_o a_o church_n without_o visible_a and_o actual_a communion_n for_o contrariwise_o that_o this_o imperfect_a manner_n of_o be_v in_o the_o church_n serve_v to_o his_o salvation_n that_o be_v hinder_v by_o any_o local_a obstacle_n from_o be_v able_a to_o be_v there_o actual_o it_o be_v because_o the_o true_a and_o actual_a communion_n which_o as_o in_o the_o church_n be_v impute_v to_o he_o by_o the_o desire_n that_o he_o have_v to_o participate_v thereof_o which_o can_v not_o be_v impute_v to_o he_o if_o it_o be_v not_o real_o some_o where_o and_o beside_o this_o desire_n of_o participation_n must_v be_v strip_v from_o all_o other_o impediment_n save_v that_o which_o proceed_v from_o loand_a corporal_a imposibility_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o all_o those_o which_o be_v not_o withhold_v by_o distance_n of_o place_n or_o other_o like_a obstacle_n inevitable_a to_o they_o from_o participate_v in_o the_o actual_a communion_n of_o the_o church_n can_v be_v say_v to_o communicate_v there_o in_o vow_n nor_o to_o be_v there_o imputative_o for_o nothing_o dispense_v with_o man_n for_o communicate_v with_o the_o catholic_a church_n only_o in_o vow_n and_o in_o will_n and_o not_o real_o and_o by_o effect_n if_o it_o be_v not_o the_o exclusion_n of_o time_n and_o place_n and_o beside_o in_o the_o article_n of_o death_n no_o more_o than_o any_o thing_n can_v excuse_v a_o man_n from_o be_v baptize_v only_o in_o vow_n and_o in_o will_n and_o not_o real_o and_o by_o effect_n but_o the_o condition_n of_o be_v exclude_v by_o the_o impossibility_n of_o time_n and_o of_o place_n and_o also_o in_o the_o article_n of_o death_n from_o the_o mean_n how_o to_o be_v baptize_v and_o because_o when_o the_o obstacle_n proceed_v from_o external_a impediment_n only_o &_o that_o if_o there_o be_v local_a or_o temporal_a commodity_n he_o that_o communicate_v with_o the_o church_n in_o vow_n will_v communicate_v therewith_o actuallie_o this_o desire_n of_o communion_n may_v be_v impute_v for_o true_a communion_n and_o call_v a_o communion_n in_o vow_n but_o when_o the_o obstacle_n proceed_v from_o internal_a impediment_n from_o he_o that_o pretende_v to_o communicate_v there_o in_o vow_n as_o of_o repugnancy_n to_o the_o belief_n and_o to_o the_o discipline_n and_o the_o law_n under_o the_o condition_n whereof_o the_o catholic_n church_n receive_v into_o her_o communion_n those_o that_o she_o receave_v thereinto_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o all_o corporal_a obstacle_n be_v take_v away_o and_o he_o be_v in_o place_n where_o he_o may_v assist_v at_o the_o catholic_a church_n &_o communicate_v with_o she_o he_o will_v not_o do_v it_o this_o conditional_a
desire_n of_o communicate_v with_o she_o in_o case_n she_o will_v change_v the_o condition_n of_o her_o communion_n can_v be_v call_v communion_n in_o vow_n but_o discommunion_n otherwise_o there_o will_v be_v no_o heretic_n that_o will_v not_o communicate_v with_o the_o catholic_n church_n for_o there_o be_v no_o heretic_n but_o will_v offer_v to_o communicate_v with_o she_o provide_v she_o will_v change_v the_o clause_n and_o condition_n of_o her_o communion_n and_o will_v reform_v herself_o to_o the_o condition_n of_o his_o sect._n to_o communicate_v then_o in_o vow_n with_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v hinder_v from_o communicate_v real_o therewith_o by_o any_o obstacle_n proceed_v from_o he_o that_o communicate_v therewith_o in_o vow_n nor_o by_o any_o condition_n that_o he_o reprove_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n nor_o by_o be_v unite_v in_o communion_n with_o any_o other_o sect_n who_o communion_n be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n for_o whosoever_o communicate_v with_o another_o sect_n wherewith_o the_o catholic_a church_n communicate_v not_o can_v not_o be_v say_v to_o communicate_v in_o vow_n with_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o therefore_o s._n augustine_n speak_v of_o some_o good_a people_n who_o sometime_o be_v uniustlie_o excommunicate_v &_o cast_v forth_o of_o the_o church_n affirm_v that_o they_o cease_v not_o to_o enjoy_v the_o friute_v of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o they_o be_v repute_v to_o communicate_v with_o the_o church_n in_o vow_n when_o there_o be_v on_o their_o part_n no_o obstacle_n from_o communicate_v actuallie_o therewith_o and_o that_o they_o make_v no_o congregation_n of_o 〈◊〉_d out_o of_o the_o church_n often_o time_n also_o say_v he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d permitt_v that_o honest_a people_n shall_v be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o christian_a congregation_n by_o some_o over_o turbulent_a sedition_n of_o carnal_a man_n which_o 〈◊〉_d to_o they_o do_v when_o they_o 〈◊〉_d it_o patient_o for_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n and_o attempt_v no_o innovation_n of_o schism_n nor_o of_o 〈◊〉_d they_o teach_v man_n with_o how_o true_a affection_n and_o with_o how_o great_a sincerity_n and_o charity_n god_n must_v be_v serve_v of_o such_o man_n then_o the_o purpose_n be_v either_o to_o return_v the_o tempest_n be_v cease_v or_o if_o they_o be_v not_o permit_v whether_o because_o the_o same_o tempest_n continue_v or_o whether_o least_o by_o their_o return_n there_o may_v arise_v the_o like_a or_o one_o more_o cruel_a they_o yet_o preserve_v the_o will_n to_o serve_v even_o those_o to_o who_o motion_n and_o perturbation_n they_o have_v give_v 〈◊〉_d defend_v without_o any_o congregation_n of_o conventicle_n to_o the_o death_n and_o help_v by_o their_o testimony_n the_o faith_n which_o they_o know_v to_o be_v preach_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n those_o the_o father_n which_o see_v they_o in_o secret_a will_v crown_v in_o secret_a from_o whence_o it_o appear_v that_o those_o which_o communicate_v with_o any_o other_o society_n separate_v from_o the_o church_n and_o hold_v any_o other_o doctrine_n but_o that_o which_o be_v hold_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n &_o who_o be_v hinder_v from_o communicate_v with_o the_o catholic_a church_n by_o obstacle_n proceed_v on_o this_o part_n and_o by_o repugnancy_n to_o the_o condition_n under_o the_o obligation_n whereof_o people_n be_v receive_v into_o the_o catholic_a church_n can_v be_v say_v to_o communicate_v in_o vow_n with_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o the_o equivocation_n of_o term_n diminutive_a employ_v for_o negative_n chap._n xvi_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n both_o less_o expose_v to_o the_o view_n of_o man_n and_o most_o subject_a to_o 〈◊〉_d the_o reply_n the_o poet_n fain_o that_o the_o cyanian_a or_o simplegade_n island_n which_o be_v two_o isle_n in_o the_o mediterranean_a sea_n do_v sometime_o meet_v together_o and_o join_v themselves_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v 7_o but_o one_o therefore_o homer_n call_v they_o wander_v and_o pindar_n animate_v because_o they_o be_v describe_v so_o movable_a and_o vagabond_n the_o same_o may_v be_v say_v of_o the_o visible_a and_o invisible_a church_n of_o the_o protestant_n to_o wit_n that_o sometime_o they_o propound_v they_o as_o two_o church_n distinct_a &_o separate_v &_o sometime_o they_o draw_v they_o together_o and_o make_v they_o communicate_v together_o and_o compound_v of_o they_o one_o selfe-bodie_n and_o society_n for_o when_o the_o oracle_n of_o the_o prophett_n &_o apostle_n be_v produce_v to_o they_o touch_v the_o perpetual_a purity_n and_o integrity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o they_o be_v demand_v where_o all_o these_o promise_n have_v be_v fulfil_v since_o so_o many_a and_o so_o many_o age_n their_o 〈◊〉_d refuge_n be_v to_o frame_v two_o church_n the_o one_o visible_a and_o the_o other_o invisible_a and_o to_o say_v that_o the_o purity_n of_o religion_n have_v always_o be_v preserve_v in_o the_o invisible_a which_o have_v remain_v exempt_a from_o the_o contagion_n and_o from_o the_o abomination_n of_o the_o visible_a but_o that_o it_o have_v be_v extinguish_v and_o abolish_v for_o a_o long_a time_n in_o the_o visible_a and_o then_o as_o this_o eclipse_n according_a to_o they_o be_v cease_v and_o that_o they_o come_v to_o cast_v their_o eye_n upon_o any_o company_n which_o begin_v to_o hold_v visible_a that_o which_o they_o believe_v their_o invisible_a church_n invisiblie_o to_o have_v hold_v than_o they_o constitute_v no_o more_o but_o one_o church_n and_o one_o communion_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o of_o the_o invisible_a church_n now_o what_o other_o protestant_n do_v under_o the_o term_n of_o invisible_a church_n his_o majesty_n be_v bring_v to_o do_v it_o under_o these_o word_n less_o expose_v to_o man_n view_n and_o more_o subject_a to_o contestation_n by_o which_o no_o other_o thing_n can_v be_v serious_o understand_v but_o that_o when_o luther_n come_v into_o the_o world_n the_o true_a church_n be_v whole_o invisible_a and_o not_o only_o that_o she_o be_v whole_o invisible_a but_o that_o she_o be_v whole_o perish_v for_o if_o when_o luther_n come_v into_o the_o world_n among_o many_o society_n that_o contest_v for_o the_o title_n of_o the_o church_n there_o have_v be_v one_o less_o illustrious_a and_o eminent_a than_o she_o have_v ancient_o be_v but_o yet_o visible_a which_o ought_v to_o be_v discern_v from_o the_o rest_n by_o this_o essential_a mark_n that_o in_o the_o point_n wherein_o she_o differ_v from_o they_o she_o have_v for_o she_o the_o word_n of_o god_n where_o do_v that_o church_n reside_v let_v they_o give_v it_o to_o we_o that_o we_o may_v give_v ourselves_o to_o it_o but_o if_o she_o be_v invisible_a and_o that_o before_o the_o come_n of_o luther_n there_o be_v a_o flock_n unknown_a in_o the_o eye_n of_o man_n but_o know_v to_o god_n which_o hold_v the_o same_o doctrine_n that_o luther_n bring_v beside_o that_o i_o will_v ask_v how_o the_o member_n of_o that_o church_n can_v be_v save_v not_o make_v any_o profession_n of_o their_o faith_n since_o our_o lord_n say_v who_o shall_v deny_v i_o before_o man_n i_o will_v deny_v he_o before_o god_n my_o father_n and_o saint_n paul_n we_o believe_v with_o our_o heart_n to_o justice_n but_o we_o confess_v 10._o with_o our_o mouth_n to_o salvation_n this_o church_n then_o when_o luther_n 10._o rise_v up_o have_v no_o need_n to_o receive_v any_o change_n in_o the_o point_n which_o be_v at_o this_o day_n in_o controversy_n nor_o to_o take_v any_o instruction_n from_o luther_n or_o his_o disciple_n but_o only_o to_o declare_v herself_o and_o with_o she_o gyges_n ring_n to_o make_v herself_o from_o invisible_a visible_a and_o to_o cry_v out_o this_o be_v my_o belief_n this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n that_o i_o hold_v before_o luther_n speak_v now_o this_o be_v so_o far_o from_o benig_v so_o as_o luther_n protest_v that_o none_o before_o he_o ever_o discover_v the_o truth_n 〈◊〉_d the_o doctrine_n that_o he_o have_v declare_v and_o all_o those_o that_o come_v thither_o persuade_v by_o the_o preach_n of_o he_o and_o of_o his_o disciple_n and_o without_o ever_o brag_v of_o the_o precedent_a possession_n of_o the_o same_o doctrine_n neither_o have_v this_o suffice_v for_o the_o same_o church_n must_v have_v say_v luther_n have_v not_o yet_o pass_v forward_o enough_o he_o be_v not_o yet_o arrive_v to_o the_o whole_a sum_n of_o my_o doctrine_n for_o we_o know_v how_o much_o 〈◊〉_d and_o zuinglius_fw-la have_v add_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o luther_n and_o so_o there_o not_o be_v when_o luther_n come_v into_o the_o world_n a_o society_n neither_o visible_a nor_o invisible_a which_o hold_v luther_n doctrine_n and_o much_o less_o caluin_n in_o the_o 〈◊〉_d controvert_v between_o they_o and_o we_o it_o must_v necessary_o follow_v
that_o the_o church_n be_v then_o perish_v for_o since_o the_o excellent_a king_n will_v have_v it_o that_o the_o only_o assure_a mark_n to_o discern_v which_o either_o of_o the_o church_n which_o he_o call_v english_a or_o of_o we_o be_v the_o true_a church_n be_v it_o that_o which_o be_v the_o essential_a form_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o he_o pretend_v to_o be_v doctrine_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o he_o suppose_v that_o the_o difference_n which_o be_v between_o the_o church_n that_o he_o call_v english_a and_o we_o be_v question_n which_o take_v away_o the_o essential_a form_n of_o the_o church_n and_o destroy_v the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n and_o by_o consequence_n that_o that_o of_o the_o one_o or_o other_o society_n which_o err_v in_o these_o point_n shall_v be_v deprive_v of_o the_o essential_a 〈◊〉_d of_o a_o church_n and_o destitute_a from_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n and_o then_o if_o when_o luther_n come_v into_o the_o world_n there_o be_v no_o society_n neither_o visible_a nor_o invisible_a which_o hold_v that_o that_o the_o english_a church_n hold_v at_o this_o day_n in_o the_o point_n dispute_v between_o she_o and_o we_o it_o follow_v there_o be_v then_o no_o church_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o work_n entitle_v imperfect_a chap._n xvii_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_v and_o therefore_o the_o excellent_a king_n think_v that_o he_o ought_v with_o so_o much_o the_o more_o care_n in_o 124_o so_o great_a a_o flood_n of_o different_a opinion_n withdraw_v himself_o into_o the_o mountain_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o reply_n when_o nauplius_n king_n of_o the_o island_n of_o euboea_n now_o call_v negrepont_n will_v at_o the_o return_n from_o the_o siege_n of_o troy_n cause_n the_o fleet_n of_o the_o greek_n to_o be_v shipwrack_v to_o revenge_v the_o death_n of_o his_o sonn_n palamedes_n he_o set_v by_o night_n torch_n in_o form_n of_o a_o beacon_n upon_o one_o of_o the_o mountain_n of_o his_o island_n at_o the_o foot_n whereof_o the_o sea_n be_v full_a of_o bank_n cliff_n and_o rock_n so_o to_o draw_v their_o ship_n by_o the_o hope_n of_o a_o safe_a haven_n to_o run_v hazard_n and_o perish_v in_o those_o shore_n so_o whenantient_a heretic_n who_o saint_n augustine_n call_v mountain_n for_o shipwreck_n will_v cause_v the_o catholic_n to_o make_v shipwreck_n in_o faith_n the_o more_o their_o doctrine_n have_v be_v pernicious_a and_o mortal_a the_o more_o they_o have_v adorn_v and_o illustrate_v they_o with_o text_n and_o lamp_n of_o the_o scripture_n this_o appear_v in_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o arrian_n who_o paint_v and_o colour_v their_o error_n with_o more_o than_o forty_o passage_n of_o the_o bible_n and_o by_o this_o art_n attempt_v to_o call_v man_n back_o from_o the_o external_a and_o sensible_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n which_o can_v not_o be_v pretend_v by_o false_a ensign_n by_o those_o who_o have_v they_o not_o to_o reduce_v they_o to_o the_o only_a mark_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o interpretation_n whereof_o by_o their_o subtlety_n they_o make_v subject_a to_o as_o many_o deceit_n as_o there_o be_v word_n but_o above_o all_o this_o be_v verify_v in_o the_o writer_n from_o who_o his_o majesty_n borrow_v this_o language_n who_o be_v one_o of_o the_o most_o passionate_a champion_n of_o the_o arrian_n for_o though_o he_o cite_v these_o word_n without_o name_v the_o father_n nevertheless_o both_o the_o term_n wherein_o they_o be_v couch_v and_o the_o track_n of_o those_o who_o have_v allege_v they_o before_o he_o to_o wit_n calvin_n in_o some_o of_o the_o preface_n to_o his_o institution_n &_o the_o author_n of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o eucharist_n in_o the_o preface_n to_o his_o work_n can_v suffer_v we_o to_o doubt_v but_o that_o they_o be_v take_v from_o the_o author_n of_o the_o work_n entitle_v imperfect_a false_o attribute_v to_o saint_n chrysostome_n now_o that_o this_o author_n be_v not_o only_o a_o open_a arrian_n but_o one_o of_o the_o most_o eager_a and_o violent_a champion_n of_o the_o arrian_n it_o appear_v by_o this_o that_o he_o call_v the_o trinity_n triangular_a impiety_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o homousian_n that_o be_v to_o say_v 19_o of_o those_o that_o hold_v the_o consubstantiality_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n heresy_n not_o but_o that_o i_o know_v well_o that_o he_o be_v sometime_o allege_v even_o by_o catholic_n with_o the_o title_n of_o saint_n chrisostome_n under_o who_o name_n he_o have_v be_v first_o print_v at_o basle_n but_o because_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o allege_v he_o in_o place_n where_o he_o dispute_v not_o against_o the_o church_n wherein_o he_o be_v excellent_a and_o above_o all_o in_o the_o discourse_n of_o manner_n and_o a_o other_o to_o allege_v he_o in_o the_o place_n where_o he_o combat_n with_o deliberate_a purpose_n against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o his_o age_n as_o he_o do_v in_o that_o from_o whence_o the_o word_n be_v take_v which_o his_o majesty_n produce_v for_o behold_v the_o express_a term_n of_o the_o passage_n when_o you_o shall_v 49._o see_v the_o impious_a heresy_n which_o be_v the_o army_n of_o antichrist_n set_v in_o the_o holy_a place_n of_o the_o church_n then_o let_v they_o which_o be_v in_o judea_n fly_v into_o the_o mountain_n that_o be_v to_o say_v let_v they_o that_o be_v in_o the_o christian_n society_n have_v recourse_n to_o the_o scripture_n and_o a_o little_a after_o the_o lord_n then_o know_v that_o so_o great_a a_o confusion_n of_o thing_n shall_v arrive_v in_o the_o last_o day_n for_o this_o cause_n command_v that_o the_o christian_n who_o be_v in_o the_o christian_a society_n be_v willing_a to_o receive_v the_o steadfastness_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n shall_v have_v recourse_n to_o no_o other_o thing_n but_o to_o the_o scripture_n otherwise_o if_o they_o cast_v their_o eye_n elsewhere_o they_o shall_v be_v scandalize_v and_o perish_v not_o discern_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n now_o that_o by_o this_o impious_a heresy_n and_o by_o this_o army_n of_o antichrist_n he_o intend_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o the_o communion_n of_o they_o which_o believe_v the_o equality_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n he_o plain_o show_v when_o he_o say_v in_o the_o same_o homily_n that_o the_o great_a spiritual_a evil_n which_o have_v come_v upon_o the_o church_n have_v happen_v in_o the_o time_n of_o constantine_n and_o theodosius_n and_o that_o the_o army_n of_o antichrist_n be_v the_o heresy_n and_o the_o abomination_n of_o desolation_n which_o have_v since_o they_o possess_v the_o holy_a place_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o basilicke_n that_o theodosius_n command_v to_o be_v deliver_v up_o to_o the_o catholic_n and_o when_o he_o say_v in_o the_o former_a homily_n that_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o homousian_o that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o those_o that_o hold_v christ_n to_o be_v consubstantial_a which_o his_o father_n fight_v not_o only_o against_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n but_o even_o against_o the_o other_o heresy_n which_o hold_v not_o the_o like_a and_o in_o the_o nineten_v homily_n when_o he_o call_v the_o worshipper_n 3._o the_o trinity_n those_o that_o honour_v the_o triangular_a impiety_n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o this_o passage_n if_o so_o far_o from_o give_v favour_n to_o his_o majesty_n 48._o intention_n as_o contrariwise_o it_o manifeste_n how_o dangerous_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v to_o seek_v to_o reduce_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n to_o the_o only_a doctrine_n draw_v from_o the_o scripture_n by_o the_o interpretation_n of_o every_o particular_a person_n since_o the_o arrian_n in_o the_o point_n which_o of_o all_o other_o shall_v be_v most_o express_a in_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o catholic_n to_o wit_n in_o the_o point_n of_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n for_o if_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n cleree_a in_o a_o testament_n it_o shall_v be_v the_o quality_n of_o the_o testator_n refuse_v all_o the_o other_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n and_o all_o the_o other_o way_n of_o disputation_n and_o burn_v with_o desire_n to_o fight_v by_o the_o only_a text_n of_o the_o scripture_n disarm_v from_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o understanding_n of_o these_o word_n of_o s._n augustine_n to_o seek_v the_o church_n in_o the_o word_n of_o christ._n chap._n xviii_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n and_o to_o seek_v according_a to_o the_o council_n that_o saint_n augustine_n heretofore_o give_v to_o the_o devatist_n the_o church_n in_o the_o word_n of_o christ._n the_o reply_n when_o s._n augustine_n say_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o 21._o church_n there_o be_v a_o question_n between_o the_o donatist_n and_o we_o where_o the_o church_n be_v what_o shall_v we_o they_o do_v shall_v we_o seek_v she_o
the_o contrary_a heresy_n confute_v by_o scripture_n only_o destitute_a of_o the_o help_n of_o tradition_n and_o although_o optatus_n milevitus_fw-la in_o the_o beginning_n have_v attempt_v it_o nevertheless_o the_o success_n have_v make_v saint_n augustine_n who_o have_v go_v further_o in_o this_o question_n see_v and_o confess_v 6._o that_o to_o compose_v it_o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n of_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o unwritten_a apostolic_a tradition_n and_o what_o saint_n augustine_n allege_v in_o generáll_n against_o petilianus_n must_v not_o be_v object_v against_o this_o if_o any_o one_o of_o christ_n or_o of_o the_o church_n or_o of_o aught_o belong_v to_o the_o faith_n or_o to_o life_n declare_v 〈◊〉_d then_o this_o that_o you_o have_v receive_v in_o the_o legal_a and_o euange_v licall_a scripture_n let_v he_o be_v anathema_n for_o himself_o declare_v elsewhere_o as_o it_o shall_v appear_v hereafter_o that_o this_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n further_o signify_v against_o or_o to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o apostle_n faith_n he_o have_v not_o say_v more_o then_o but_o further_o for_o if_o he_o have_v say_v more_o then_o he_o have_v condemn_v himself_o he_o that_o desire_v to_o come_v to_o the_o thessalonian_n to_o supply_v what_o be_v want_v in_o their_o faith_n now_o he_o that_o supply_v add_v that_o which_o be_v not_o in_o the_o thing_n but_o take_v not_o away_o what_o be_v therein_o before_o of_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o word_n of_o s._n chrysostome_n in_o the_o thirty_o three_o homily_n upon_o the_o acts._n chap._n xix_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n even_o so_o s._n chrisostome_n as_o well_o elsewhere_o as_o of_o deliberate_a purpose_n in_o the_o thirty_o three_o homily_n upon_o the_o act_n handle_v this_o question_n how_o the_o true_a church_n may_v be_v discern_v among_o many_o society_n which_o attribute_v this_o name_n to_o themselves_o do_v teach_v that_o there_o be_v two_o instrument_n to_o judge_v and_o decide_v this_o question_n first_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o afterward_o the_o antiquity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n not_o invent_v by_o any_o late_a body_n but_o always_o know_v since_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n when_o she_o be_v but_o breed_v the_o reply_n there_o be_v four_o 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v make_v upon_o this_o article_n the_o first_o that_o saint_n crysostome_n give_v not_o this_o rule_n to_o discern_v the_o true_a church_n from_o all_o society_n that_o differ_v from_o she_o in_o what_o point_n soever_o but_o only_o to_o discern_v she_o from_o those_o that_o differ_v from_o she_o in_o the_o point_n of_o christ_n divinity_n wherein_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n if_o the_o scripture_n be_v more_o clear_a and_o express_v then_o in_o any_o other_o the_o second_o that_o this_o mark_n to_o discern_v the_o church_n he_o give_v not_o to_o those_o that_o be_v already_o preoccupate_v with_o the_o opinion_n of_o any_o of_o the_o christian_a sect_n but_o to_o the_o pagan_n which_o be_v not_o anticipate_v with_o passion_n for_o any_o of_o the_o party_n that_o combat_v about_o the_o point_n of_o christ_n divinity_n and_o for_o this_o reason_n may_v seem_v to_o judge_v the_o more_o impartiallie_o the_o three_o that_o saint_n chrysostom_n aim_n be_v not_o to_o treat_v serious_o there_o of_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n with_o the_o pagan_n but_o to_o stop_n their_o mouth_n and_o to_o show_v that_o whereas_o they_o say_v that_o they_o will_v turn_v christian_n but_o that_o they_o know_v not_o on_o which_o part_n to_o range_v themselves_o these_o be_v but_o pretence_n and_o not_o true_a language_n the_o fowrth_n that_o he_o stopp_n not_o there_o but_o acknowledge_v that_o this_o mean_n because_o of_o the_o subtlety_n and_o shift_n of_o heretic_n be_v not_o sufficient_a require_v and_o exact_v a_o other_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o he_o reduce_v in_o the_o last_o instance_n all_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o question_n to_o this_o point_n that_o that_o be_v the_o true_a church_n which_o have_v remain_v steadfast_a and_o immutable_a in_o her_o communion_n and_o from_o whence_o all_o the_o other_o be_v go_v forth_o and_o that_o come_v forth_o from_o none_o a_o pagan_a say_v he_o come_v and_o say_v i_o will_v turn_v christian_n 33._o but_o i_o know_v not_o to_o who_o i_o ought_v to_o adhere_v for_o there_o be_v among_o you_o many_o strife_n sedition_n and_o tumult_n i_o know_v not_o which_o opinion_n i_o shall_v choose_v nor_o which_o i_o ought_v to_o prefer_v every_o one_o say_v i_o follow_v the_o truth_n who_o shall_v i_o that_o be_o utterlie_o ignorant_a in_o the_o scripture_n believe_v see_v both_o side_n as_o well_o the_o catholic_n as_o the_o sect_n of_o the_o arrian_n as_o it_o shall_v appear_v hereafter_o protest_v the_o same_o thing_n that_o certain_o answer_v he_o make_v much_o for_o we_o for_o if_o we_o say_v we_o must_v believe_v reason_n thou_o shall_v not_o without_o cause_n be_v trouble_v but_o if_o we_o say_v we_o must_v believe_v the_o scripture_n and_o they_o be_v simple_a and_o true_a it_o be_v easy_a for_o thou_o to_o judge_v thereof_o if_o any_o one_o conform_v himself_o to_o they_o he_o be_v a_o christian_n if_o any_o strive_v against_o they_o he_o be_v far_o from_o this_o rule_n but_o what_o will_v become_v of_o it_o say_v the_o gentile_a if_o the_o other_o come_v also_o say_v the_o scripture_n affirm_v this_o thing_n and_o thou_o say_v it_o affirm_v a_o other_o thing_n and_o that_o you_o wrest_v the_o scripture_n into_o diverse_a part_n each_o draw_v the_o understanding_n of_o the_o word_n thereof_o to_o his_o own_o side_n etc._n etc._n then_o say_v s._n chrisostome_n we_o will_v inquire_v of_o the_o pagan_a if_o what_o he_o say_v be_v pretence_n and_o excuse_n and_o ask_v he_o ifhe_o condemn_v the_o gentile_n he_o must_v say_v some_o thing_n for_o he_o will_v not_o desire_v to_o come_v to_o we_o till_o first_o he_o condemn_v they_o we_o will_v ask_v he_o then_o for_o what_o cause_n 〈◊〉_d condemn_v they_o for_o he_o will_v not_o condemn_v they_o without_o cause_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o he_o will_v say_v because_o their_o god_n be_v creature_n and_o be_v not_o the_o uncreated_a god_n this_o 〈◊〉_d well_o answer_v we_o for_o if_o this_o 〈◊〉_d find_v in_o other_o heresy_n a_o clause_n which_o evident_o show_v that_o he_o speak_v only_o of_o those_o heresy_n which_o oppose_v the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o christ_n which_o be_v those_o where_o with_o the_o east_n be_v afflict_v and_o we_o affirm_v the_o contrary_a what_o need_v more_o word_n we_o all_o confess_v that_o christ_n be_v god_n but_o see_v who_o combat_n against_o it_o and_o who_o combat_n not_o against_o it_o we_o call_v he_o god_n and_o pronounce_v of_o he_o thing_n worthy_a of_o god_n that_o he_o have_v power_n that_o he_o be_v not_o servile_a that_o he_o be_v sree_a that_o he_o do_v all_o thing_n of_o himself_o and_o they_o the_o contrary_n and_o then_o final_o see_v that_o this_o attempt_n succeed_v not_o sufficient_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a say_v he_o but_o he_o that_o hear_v without_o preoccupation_n shall_v be_v persuade_v for_o as_o if_o there_o be_v a_o rule_n according_a to_o which_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v square_v there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o great_a consideration_n but_o it_o will_v be_v easy_a to_o discern_v he_o that_o shall_v make_v wry_a line_n even_o so_o be_v it_o now_o but_o wheresore_n then_o will_v he_o say_v do_v they_o not_o see_v it_o preiudication_n and_o human_a cause_n do_v many_o thing_n that_o reply_v 〈◊〉_d they_o say_v also_o of_o us._n and_o how_o can_v they_o say_v it_o for_o we_o have_v not_o separate_v ourselves_o nor_o have_v make_v no_o schism_n nor_o division_n chrysost._n in_o the_o church_n we_o have_v no_o heresiarch_n we_o name_v not_o ourselves_o after_o the_o 〈◊〉_d name_n of_o any_o man_n we_o have_v no_o leader_n as_o to_o one_o martion_n to_o another_o manicheus_fw-la to_o a_o other_o arius_n to_o a_o other_o a_o other_o heresi-founder_n but_o if_o we_o take_v the_o appellation_n of_o any_o particular_a it_o be_v not_o from_o those_o that_o begin_v any_o heresy_n but_o of_o those_o that_o preside_v over_o we_o and_o govern_v the_o church_n we_o have_v no_o doctor_n upon_o earth_n god_n forbid_v we_o have_v one_o alone_o in_o heaven_n this_o also_o will_v he_o say_v the_o other_o likewise_o affirm_v it_o but_o the_o name_n that_o they_o bear_v answer_v he_o to_o wit_n of_o marcionite_n or_o of_o manichee_n or_o of_o arrian_n convince_v they_o and_o stopp_n their_o mouth_n by_o which_o word_n it_o appear_v that_o the_o last_o analysis_n and_o resolution_n of_o the_o question_n be_v all_o determine_v in_o this_o point_n that_o that_o be_v the_o true_a church_n which_o have_v remain_v unmovable_a and_o steadfast_a in_o her_o communion_n &_o from_o who_o all_o the_o
other_o have_v go_v forth_o and_o be_v go_v forth_o from_o none_o which_o be_v also_o the_o mark_n that_o s._n augustine_n 〈◊〉_d it_o when_o he_o say_v the_o catholic_a church_n 5._o combat_v against_o all_o heresy_n may_v be_v oppose_v but_o she_o can_v be_v overthrow_v all_o 〈◊〉_d be_v come_v forth_o from_o she_o as_o unprofitable_a branch_n cut_v off_o from_o their_o vine_n but_o she_o remain_v in_o her_o vine_n in_o her_o root_n in_o her_o charity_n and_o s._n pacian_n bishop_n 3._o of_o barcelona_n before_o he_o when_o he_o write_v now_o to_o know_v whether_o she_o have_v be_v principal_o build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o prophett_n and_o of_o the_o apostle_n in_o jesus_n christ_n the_o corner_n stone_n consider_v whether_o she_o begin_v before_o thou_o whither_o she_o have_v grow_v before_o thou_o if_o she_o be_v not_o withdraw_v from_o her_o first_o foundation_n whether_o in_o separate_a herself_o from_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o body_n she_o have_v not_o constitute_v to_o herself_o her_o master_n and_o her_o particular_a instruction_n if_o she_o have_v argue_v any_o thing_n unaccustomedlie_o if_o she_o have_v form_v any_o point_n of_o new_a right_n if_o she_o have_v declare_v to_o her_o body_n the_o divorce_n of_o peace_n then_o let_v she_o be_v esteem_v to_o be_v depart_v from_o christ_n and_o to_o be_v constitute_v forth_o of_o the_o prophett_n and_o apostle_n and_o therefore_o although_o the_o point_n of_o the_o assentiall_a deity_n of_o christ_n deserve_v to_o be_v more_o cleerelie_o express_v in_o scripture_n than_o any_o other_o as_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o testator_n aught_o to_o be_v more_o cleerelie_o express_v in_o the_o testament_n than_o any_o other_o nevertheless_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o heretic_n by_o their_o malice_n and_o subtlety_n shift_v off_o the_o place_n of_o scripture_n allege_v to_o this_o purpose_n the_o father_n after_o they_o have_v try_v all_o their_o strength_n to_o bring_v they_o back_o to_o reason_n by_o scripture_n be_v constrain_v see_v they_o can_v not_o make_v they_o yield_v up_o their_o weapon_n by_o that_o way_n to_o changetheir_o battery_n &_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n behold_v say_v saint_n athanasus_n we_o have_v show_v the_o succession_n of_o our_o doctrine_n from_o father_n to_o sonn_n you_o new_a caypha_n decret_a what_o progenitor_n of_o your_o phrase_n and_o your_o term_n will_v you_o bring_v we_o and_o saint_n arian_n hilary_n let_v we_o consider_v so_o many_o holy_a father_n what_o will_v become_v of_o we_o if_o we_o anathematise_v they_o for_o we_o bring_v thing_n to_o this_o point_n that_o if_o they_o have_v not_o 〈◊〉_d bishop_n we_o be_v none_o since_o we_o have_v be_v ordain_v by_o they_o and_o the_o same_o synod_n saint_n athanasius_n it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o these_o thing_n be_v not_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o that_o the_o father_n be_v not_o of_o that_o belief_n from_o whence_o it_o haeret_fw-la appear_v that_o if_o the_o point_n of_o christ_n divinity_n have_v never_o be_v express_v in_o scripture_n they_o hold_v the_o light_n of_o the_o perpetual_a testimony_n of_o the_o church_n for_o a_o sufficient_a proof_n of_o this_o article_n for_o whereas_o saint_n chrisostome_n compare_v the_o scripture_n to_o a_o rule_n according_a whereto_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v square_v beside_o this_o that_o according_a signify_v there_o not_o against_o he_o intéd_v that_o scripture_n rule_v all_o thing_n either_o mediate_o or_o immediate_o that_o be_v to_o say_v either_o by_o itself_o or_o by_o the_o mean_n whereto_o it_o remitt_v we_o as_o he_o testify_v himself_o in_o these_o word_n from_o whence_o it_o appear_v 2._o that_o the_o apostle_n deliver_v not_o all_o thing_n in_o uriting_n but_o also_o many_o thing_n unwritten_a now_o either_o of_o these_o be_v worthy_a of_o equal_a credit_n of_o the_o rule_n to_o judge_v admit_v by_o saint_n chrysostome_n and_o s._n augustine_n chap._n xx._n the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n these_o two_o rule_n to_o judge_v the_o king_n with_o the_o english_a church_n embrace_v they_o with_o a_o earnest_a desire_n pronounce_v that_o he_o acknowledge_v that_o doctrine_n final_a ie_fw-fr both_a to_o be_v true_a and_o also_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n that_o run_v from_o the_o spring_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n as_o by_o a_o channel_n have_v be_v derive_v down_o to_o this_o time_n the_o reply_n neither_o do_v saint_n chrisostome_n and_o saint_n augustine_n restrain_v the_o mean_n to_o judge_v of_o all_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n to_o these_o two_o only_a mean_n by_o exclusion_n of_o the_o three_o to_o wit_n of_o apostolic_a tradition_n since_o saint_n augustine_n say_v this_o 19_o be_v plain_o read_v neither_o by_o thou_o nor_o by_o i_o and_o again_o the_o apostle_n have_v prescribe_v nothing_o in_o this_o yet_o the_o custom_n opposite_a to_o cyprian_a ought_v to_o be_v believe_v to_o 23._o have_v take_v original_a out_o of_o their_o tradition_n as_o it_o be_v in_o many_o thing_n that_o the_o universal_a church_n do_v observe_v and_o for_o this_o cause_n indeed_o well_o believe_v to_o have_v be_v command_v by_o the_o apostle_n though_o they_o have_v not_o be_v write_v and_o that_o saint_n chrysostome_n say_v that_o from_o thence_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d have_v not_o give_v all_o thing_n in_o write_n but_o some_o also_o without_o write_n whereof_o both_o sort_n be_v in_o like_a manner_n worthy_a of_o credit_n and_o elsewhere_o it_o be_v not_o in_o vain_a that_o the_o apostle_n have_v give_v it_o by_o tradition_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n for_o the_o dead_a they_o know_v how_o much_o advantage_n and_o profitt_a increase_v to_o they_o thereby_o neither_o be_v the_o question_n in_o the_o disputation_n which_o be_v now_o handle_v between_o his_o majesty_n and_o we_o of_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o right_n but_o of_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o fact_n that_o be_v to_o say_v we_o be_v not_o to_o inquire_v by_o confer_v the_o conclusion_n of_o faith_n with_o their_o principle_n which_o of_o the_o english_a doctrine_n or_o we_o be_v the_o truth_n which_o be_v a_o question_n of_o right_n who_o trial_n beside_o that_o it_o must_v be_v long_o go_v out_o of_o the_o list_n &_o from_o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n that_o we_o treat_v of_o but_o to_o inquire_v by_o the_o continuance_n &_o comformitie_n with_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n whether_o our_o church_n be_v the_o same_o church_n as_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o s._n augustine_n and_o of_o the_o four_o first_o counsel_n which_o be_v a_o question_n of_o fact_n in_o which_o must_v be_v handle_v not_o what_o ought_v to_o be_v believe_v but_o what_o have_v be_v believe_v for_o his_o majesty_n be_v of_o agreement_n that_o there_o be_v a_o obligation_n of_o communication_n with_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n which_o flourish_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o four_o first_o counsel_n and_o that_o whosoever_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o that_o church_n be_v a_o heretic_n or_o a_o schismatic_n and_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o i_o may_v except_v from_o the_o praise_n of_o his_o majesty_n the_o title_n of_o catholic_a which_o be_v the_o first_o cause_n of_o this_o comparison_n consist_v in_o the_o know_v not_o whether_o the_o church_n of_o those_o age_n have_v believe_v well_o or_o evil_a which_o be_v a_o question_n of_o right_n but_o whether_o the_o church_n of_o the_o last_o age_n from_o which_o his_o majesty_n or_o those_o that_o have_v be_v before_o he_o have_v separate_v themselves_o be_v the_o same_o church_n by_o a_o uninterrupt_a succession_n both_o of_o person_n and_o of_o doctrine_n as_o that_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o s._n augustine_n which_o be_v a_o question_n of_o fact_n and_o capable_a of_o be_v prove_v by_o history_n alone_o so_o as_o the_o subtlety_n of_o spirit_n can_v find_v no_o shift_n for_o it_o now_o to_o leapefrom_o the_o question_n of_o fact_n to_o the_o question_n of_o right_n and_o in_o steed_n of_o examine_v whether_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o this_o time_n have_v the_o same_o belief_n in_o the_o point_n controvert_v between_o we_o and_o our_o adversary_n as_o the_o church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o four_o first_o counsel_n have_v to_o dispute_v whether_o the_o church_n of_o those_o age_n have_v believe_v well_o and_o with_o what_o reservation_n and_o mollification_n her_o belief_n must_v 〈◊〉_d receive_v it_o be_v to_o go_v forth_o from_o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n and_o to_o change_v the_o order_n and_o mean_n of_o the_o disputation_n of_o the_o application_n of_o the_o thesis_n of_o this_o observation_n to_o his_o hipothesis_n chap._n xxi_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_v then_o to_o make_v a_o end_n of_o this_o discourse_n the_o
king_n answer_v to_o the_o first_o observation_n that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v apply_v to_o the_o hipothesis_n propose_v without_o many_o defect_n for_o so_o far_o be_v this_o english_a church_n from_o have_v depart_v from_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n which_o she_o honour_v and_o reverence_n as_o she_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o depart_v from_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o as_o much_o as_o she_o consent_v with_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o reply_n i_o appeal_v from_o philip_n to_o philip_n that_o be_v to_o say_v from_o the_o most_o excellent_a king_n to_o himself_o for_o what_o do_v my_o first_o observation_n import_n yea_o according_a to_o the_o abridgement_n that_o this_o majesty_n have_v make_v of_o it_o but_o that_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_a do_v not_o only_o denote_v faith_n but_o also_o communion_n with_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o therefore_o that_o the_o ancient_a writer_n will_v not_o suffer_v those_o to_o be_v call_v catholic_n who_o have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n although_o they_o retain_v the_o faith_n thereof_o now_o how_o then_o be_v it_o that_o the_o most_o excellent_a king_n allege_v to_o show_v that_o this_o observation_n can_v be_v apply_v to_o his_o hypothesis_n without_o many_o error_n that_o he_o be_v not_o depart_v neither_o he_o nor_o his_o church_n from_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n for_o the_o observation_n wherein_o it_o be_v handle_v be_v that_o to_o be_v catholic_a it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a not_o to_o be_v separate_a from_o the_o church_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n but_o also_o not_o to_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v it_o not_o fussicient_a to_o apply_v it_o to_o the_o hipothesis_n and_o to_o except_v the_o most_o excellent_a king_n from_o the_o title_n of_o catholic_a that_o his_o majesty_n have_v separate_v himself_o not_o from_o the_o faith_n if_o so_o be_v he_o have_v not_o do_v so_o but_o from_o the_o only_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o if_o the_o most_o excellent_a king_n say_v that_o she_o from_o who_o he_o have_v separate_v himself_o be_v not_o the_o same_o catholic_a church_n as_o she_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o who_o the_o father_n say_v that_o out_o of_o her_o communion_n the_o title_n of_o catholic_a nor_o the_o reward_n of_o salvation_n can_v not_o be_v obtain_v must_v he_o not_o show_v that_o there_o be_v a_o alteration_n happen_v in_o thing_n which_o be_v of_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o church_n and_o without_o which_o the_o very_a be_v of_o the_o church_n can_v be_v preserve_v and_o beside_o this_o that_o he_o must_v find_v out_o and_o cause_n to_o appear_v a_o other_o society_n wherein_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o of_o the_o ministry_n both_o of_o the_o communion_n and_o of_o the_o prerogative_n of_o the_o ancient_a catholieke_a church_n have_v continue_v and_o whereto_o he_o have_v range_v himself_o to_o the_o end_n that_o adhere_v thereto_o he_o may_v say_v that_o he_o have_v not_o separate_v himself_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n but_o be_v return_v into_o it_o of_o the_o personal_a suceession_n of_o the_o bishop_n chap._n xxii_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_v if_o we_o seek_v for_o the_o succession_n of_o person_n we_o have_v in_o be_v the_o name_n of_o bishop_n and_o the_o succession_n uninterrupt_a from_o the_o first_o the_o reply_n it_o suffice_v not_o to_o constitute_v the_o personal_a succession_n of_o bishop_n that_o some_o be_v enter_v in_o the_o steed_n of_o other_o but_o they_o must_v be_v enter_v with_o the_o same_o form_n and_o with_o the_o same_o condition_n essential_a to_o a_o bishopric_n that_o their_o predecessor_n enter_v withal_o no_o more_o than_o it_o suffice_v to_o make_v the_o priest_n of_o jeroboa_n successor_n to_o the_o true_a leviticall_a priest_n that_o he_o have_v drive_v away_o that_o they_o come_v into_o their_o place_n not_o be_v come_v in_o with_o condition_n necessary_a to_o succeed_v they_o and_o therefore_o whether_o the_o mission_n of_o the_o bishop_n which_o be_v at_o this_o day_n in_o england_n be_v a_o true_a ecclesiastical_a mission_n &_o make_v by_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n and_o with_o the_o just_a ecclesiastical_a form_n or_o rather_o a_o politic_a mission_n i_o forbear_v to_o dispute_v only_o i_o will_v say_v that_o there_o be_v two_o kind_n of_o succession_n in_o the_o personal_a continuance_n of_o a_o bishop_n sea_n the_o one_o the_o succession_n of_o authority_n and_o the_o other_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o character_n whereof_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o english_a according_a to_o the_o principle_n common_a to_o they_o and_o we_o have_v not_o the_o one_o and_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o according_a to_o their_o own_o particular_a principle_n they_o can_v have_v the_o other_o for_o there_o do_v meet_v together_o or_o concur_v according_a to_o we_o two_o condition_n in_o episcopal_a mission_n the_o one_o concern_v the_o collation_n of_o authority_n the_o other_o concern_v the_o impression_n of_o the_o character_n which_o come_v from_o the_o part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o order_n which_o we_o conceive_v to_o imprint_v a_o seal_n which_o can_v be_v blot_v out_o now_o the_o condition_n which_o concern_v the_o character_n which_o we_o will_v here_o call_v sacramental_a mission_n may_v well_o be_v preserve_v out_o of_o the_o church_n for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o character_n can_v be_v blot_v out_o and_o consequent_o may_v be_v give_v though_o unlawfullie_o yet_o real_o out_o of_o the_o church_n by_o they_o that_o have_v carry_v it_o out_o of_o the_o church_n but_o that_o which_o concern_v authority_n which_o we_o will_v call_v notwithstanding_o the_o barbarism_n of_o the_o word_n authoritative_a mission_n although_o it_o can_v be_v give_v in_o the_o church_n without_o the_o other_o yet_o it_o can_v be_v carry_v away_o nor_o give_v with_o the_o other_o out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o may_v be_v take_v away_o by_o the_o church_n from_o they_o to_o who_o she_o have_v give_v it_o when_o she_o shall_v judge_v it_o necessary_a to_o depose_v or_o degrade_v they_o as_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n depose_v narcissus_n menophantus_n and_o other_o who_o notwithstanding_o leave_v not_o to_o preserve_v the_o character_n of_o the_o sacrament_n even_o as_o the_o officer_n of_o a_o prince_n when_o they_o join_v themselves_o with_o a_o faction_n of_o rebel_n may_v carry_v with_o they_o the_o seal_n and_o the_o character_n of_o the_o patent_n of_o their_o office_n and_o preserve_v it_o out_o of_o the_o state_n and_o out_o of_o the_o common_a wealth_n but_o they_o can_v carry_v 〈◊〉_d the_o authority_n of_o their_o office_n with_o they_o and_o therefore_o when_o they_o that_o have_v be_v degrade_v by_o the_o church_n or_o ordain_v out_o of_o the_o church_n return_v to_o the_o church_n the_o lawful_a authority_n to_o exercise_v their_o function_n must_v be_v restore_v to_o they_o either_o by_o a_o particular_a rehabilitation_n or_o by_o a_o public_a declaration_n that_o the_o church_n make_v to_o receive_v they_o into_o her_o communion_n with_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o charge_n which_o serve_v they_o for_o a_o general_a rehabilitation_n as_o when_o the_o arrian_n return_v to_o the_o catholic_a faith_n the_o church_n restore_v to_o their_o bishop_n the_o lawful_a authority_n to_o administer_v the_o bishop_n rick_v whereof_o the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n have_v deprive_v they_o and_o rehabilitated_a they_o all_o at_o once_o by_o the_o public_a declaration_n that_o she_o make_v to_o admit_v they_o with_o the_o function_n of_o their_o charge_n from_o whence_o it_o appear_v that_o they_o that_o be_v ordain_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o by_o a_o other_o society_n then_o by_o the_o true_a church_n although_o they_o be_v indeed_o bishop_n as_o for_o the_o character_n of_o the_o sacrament_n nevertheless_o they_o be_v not_o bishop_n as_o for_o the_o function_n of_o authority_n and_o as_o many_o time_n as_o they_o shall_v pretend_v to_o use_v their_o authority_n without_o be_v rehabilitated_a by_o the_o church_n so_o often_o they_o commit_v sin_n and_o sacrilege_n let_v we_o consider_v say_v s._n hilary_n speak_v of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n what_o we_o do_v do_v we_o that_o anathematise_v they_o &c_n &c_n for_o if_o they_o have_v not_o be_v bishop_n synod_n we_o can_v be_v none_o and_o s._n athanasius_n it_o be_v impossible_a that_o the_o ordination_n of_o secundus_fw-la as_o make_v by_o the_o arrian_n shall_v have_v any_o force_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o 2._o s._n hierome_n there_o be_v at_o this_o day_n no_o bishop_n in_o the_o world_n save_v those_o that_o lucifor_n be_v ordain_v by_o the_o synod_n and_o the_o law_n of_o the_o emperor_n
without_o he_o in_o counsel_n and_o then_o when_o the_o condition_n requisite_a for_o the_o liberty_n of_o a_o council_n shall_v be_v resolve_v upon_o what_o fruit_n can_v be_v draw_v from_o it_o if_o it_o be_v not_o agree_v before_o it_o be_v assemble_v that_o all_o that_o be_v decree_v there_o must_v be_v hold_v for_o infallible_a for_o if_o after_o such_o a_o council_n shall_v have_v be_v celebrate_v it_o rest_v still_o in_o the_o choice_n of_o every_o particular_a person_n to_o judge_v whether_o the_o council_n shall_v have_v judge_v conformablie_o to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n who_o know_v not_o that_o this_o be_v not_o to_o submit_v their_o judgement_n to_o a_o council_n but_o to_o submit_v a_o council_n to_o their_o judgement_n and_o so_o to_o 〈◊〉_d thing_n no_o further_o advance_v after_o the_o celebration_n of_o a_o council_n than_o before_o now_o how_o be_v it_o that_o those_o who_o hold_v that_o the_o universal_a church_n may_v err_v shall_v hold_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o general_a council_n shall_v be_v infallible_a which_o have_v no_o authority_n of_o infallibillitie_n but_o in_o as_o much_o as_o it_o represent_v the_o universal_a society_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n where_o of_o it_o be_v the_o voice_n and_o organ_n and_o of_o all_o the_o pastor_n where_o of_o it_o bear_v with_o it_o the_o tacit_n deputation_n and_o how_o can_v those_o hold_v that_o the_o universal_a church_n shall_v be_v infallible_a &_o can_v err_v that_o hold_v that_o indeed_o she_o have_v err_v and_o that_o after_o so_o many_o age_n there_o be_v no_o visible_a part_n of_o the_o church_n which_o have_v not_o be_v plunge_v in_o a_o pit_n of_o error_n repugnant_a to_o salvation_n and_o contrary_a to_o faith_n but_o whether_o his_o majesty_n offer_n aught_o to_o be_v examine_v in_o a_o formal_a council_n or_o in_o a_o verbal_a conference_n we_o be_v ready_a to_o assist_v at_o it_o and_o to_o show_v that_o the_o english_a church_n in_o point_n contest_v between_o we_o and_o she_o have_v neither_o succession_n nor_o similitude_n of_o doctrine_n with_o the_o church_n of_o the_o time_n of_o the_o first_o counsel_n of_o the_o reduction_n of_o the_o disputation_n to_o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n chap._n xxv_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_v the_o english_a church_n be_v ready_a to_o yield_v a_o account_n of_o her_o faith_n and_o to_o prove_v by_o effect_n that_o the_o design_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o reformation_n undertake_v in_o this_o province_n have_v not_o be_v to_o build_v any_o new_a church_n as_o the_o ignorant_a and_o malicious_a have_v slander_v she_o but_o to_o re-establish_a she_o that_o be_v fall_v in_o the_o best_a manner_n that_o may_v be_v the_o reply_n it_o be_v not_o the_o question_n in_o the_o proceed_n that_o we_o have_v frame_v to_o know_v whether_o the_o aim_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o reformation_n of_o england_n have_v be_v to_o make_v a_o new_a church_n or_o to_o restore_v that_o which_o be_v fall_v and_o to_o set_v it_o up_o again_o in_o a_o better_a form_n although_o the_o subsequent_a word_n of_o his_o majesty_n where_o he_o say_v that_o the_o action_n of_o the_o english_a church_n have_v be_v a_o return_n to_o the_o ancient_a catholic_n faith_n and_o a_o converfion_n to_o christ_n the_o only_o master_n of_o the_o church_n testify_v that_o it_o have_v be_v a_o new_a refection_n and_o re-edification_n of_o the_o church_n for_n no_o it_o have_v be_v a_o new_a refection_n and_o re-edification_n of_o the_o church_n for_o no_o society_n in_o who_o faith_n there_o be_v a_o aversion_n from_o christ_n and_o from_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a belief_n can_v possess_v the_o be_v and_o the_o name_n of_o a_o church_n but_o in_o sum_n howsoever_o it_o be_v it_o be_v not_o that_o that_o be_v the_o question_n in_o the_o proceed_n that_o we_o have_v frame_v but_o only_o to_o know_v whether_o the_o catholic_a church_n when_o the_o english_a portion_n separate_v itself_o from_o she_o have_v so_o degenerate_v from_o the_o ancient_a carholicke_a church_n which_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o first_o four_o counsel_n in_o thing_n import_v the_o ruin_n of_o salvation_n and_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o be_v of_o the_o church_n as_o she_o be_v no_o more_o the_o same_o church_n as_o she_o have_v be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o those_o age_n and_o consequent_o that_o it_o be_v no_o more_o necessary_a to_o obtain_v the_o title_n of_o catholic_a and_o the_o participation_n of_o salvation_n to_o communicate_v with_o she_o but_o contrariwise_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v separate_v from_o she_o and_o not_o to_o commnnicate_v with_o she_o it_o be_v that_o that_o be_v the_o question_n it_o be_v that_o whereabout_o we_o must_v combat_v and_o to_o show_v some_o condition_n some_o doctrine_n or_o custom_n hold_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n at_o this_o day_n that_o may_v be_v pretend_v to_o be_v repugnant_a to_o salvation_n and_o which_o destroy_v the_o be_v of_o the_o true_a church_n that_o have_v not_o be_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o four_o first_o counsel_n of_o the_o invention_n of_o order_n in_o the_o justification_n of_o the_o reformation_n before_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o deformation_n chap._n xxvi_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n now_o they_o have_v judge_v among_o the_o best_a that_o which_o have_v bane_n give_v by_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o breed_a church_n and_o which_o have_v be_v in_o practice_n in_o the_o age_n near_o they_o the_o reply_n neither_o be_v it_o the_o question_n of_o what_o they_o have_v judge_v but_o of_o the_o change_n that_o be_v happen_v between_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n and_o the_o morderne_a and_o of_o the_o importance_n of_o this_o change_n that_o be_v to_o say_v whether_o there_o be_v happen_v any_o change_n between_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n &_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o last_o age_n of_o such_o importance_n as_o for_o that_o people_n may_v be_v permit_v to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o her_o communion_n which_o can_v be_v if_o some_o thing_n have_v not_o be_v take_v away_o from_o the_o form_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n or_o add_v thereto_o which_o be_v rèpugnant_a to_o salvation_n for_o if_o the_o modern_a catholic_a church_n be_v yet_o the_o same_o church_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o salvation_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o four_o first_o counsel_n whatsoever_o reformation_n they_o have_v pretend_v to_o make_v have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o she_o they_o can_v possess_v the_o title_n of_o 62._o catholic_a whereof_o the_o question_n be_v nor_o obtain_v salvation_n for_o as_o much_o as_o say_v s._n ireneus_n no_o reformation_n can_v be_v make_v that_o be_v of_o such_o importance_n as_o the_o crime_n of_o schism_n be_v 〈◊〉_d beside_o it_o must_v be_v first_o determine_v whether_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v deform_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o salvation_n before_o the_o english_a church_n can_v be_v think_v to_o be_v reform_v in_o be_v separate_v from_o she_o for_o the_o english_a church_n can_v not_o separate_v herself_o from_o the_o catholic_n church_n whereunto_o before_o she_o be_v join_v in_o communion_n if_o first_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v to_o she_o by_o proof_n necessatie_fw-mi and_o demonstrative_a that_o salvation_n can_v not_o be_v obtain_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v she_o can_v not_o proceed_v to_o reform_v herself_o in_o separate_v herself_o from_o her_o whole_a till_o it_o must_v first_o appear_v to_o she_o that_o the_o whole_a from_o whence_o she_o separate_v herself_o be_v deform_v and_o with_o a_o deformation_n incompatible_a with_o salvation_n now_o that_o can_v not_o appear_v that_o between_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n of_o the_o time_n of_o the_o first_o four_o counsel_n which_o we_o on_o both_o side_n grant_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o whereof_o there_o remain_v to_o we_o monument_n sufficient_a to_o instruct_v we_o of_o the_o integrity_n of_o her_o doctrine_n and_o of_o her_o sacrament_n and_o ceremony_n and_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o this_o time_n there_o have_v happen_v opposition_n in_o matter_n import_v gain_n or_o loss_n of_o salvation_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v to_o that_o time_n that_o we_o must_v confront_v the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n of_o this_o time_n and_o not_o leave_v the_o age_n of_o the_o four_o first_o counsel_n of_o who_o estate_n we_o have_v more_o light_n and_o monument_n then_o of_o the_o precede_a age_n to_o go_v up_o to_o those_o of_o who_o estate_n we_o 〈◊〉_d recourse_n not_o to_o find_v therein_o more_o conformity_n but_o to_o find_v therein_o less_o instruction_n for_o as_o for_o the_o church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n
shift_n but_o whether_o all_o thing_n that_o they_o object_n to_o we_o as_o repugnant_a to_o salvation_n and_o as_o occasion_n sufficient_a to_o cause_v separation_n from_o our_o communion_n have_v be_v hold_v by_o the_o catholic_a church_n from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o first_o four_o counsel_n for_o in_o case_n they_o have_v be_v so_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o it_o be_v sacrilege_n in_o they_o to_o separate_v themselves_o for_o their_o occasion_n from_o our_o communion_n not_o but_o that_o if_o this_o point_n be_v once_o clear_v it_o will_v be_v easy_a for_o we_o then_o his_o majesty_n conceive_v to_o prove_v that_o all_o thing_n that_o the_o modern_a catholic_a church_n hold_v as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n have_v be_v hold_v for_o such_o and_o in_o the_o same_o rank_n of_o necessity_n by_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o first_o four_o counsel_n but_o because_o the_o law_n of_o disputation_n do_v not_o permit_v we_o to_o engage_v ourselves_o to_o the_o trial_n of_o this_o point_n before_o the_o clear_n of_o the_o other_o for_o fear_v of_o go_v out_o of_o the_o list_n of_o the_o question_n and_o of_o confound_v the_o order_n 〈◊〉_d the_o conference_n for_o whereas_o his_o majesty_n add_v that_o they_o have_v be_v approve_v &_o ordain_v from_o the_o beginning_n it_o have_v be_v manifest_v in_o the_o three_o observation_n of_o our_o epistle_n that_o to_o convince_v that_o a_o thing_n have_v have_v place_n from_o first_o age_n it_o be_v sufficient_a because_o of_o the_o four_o write_n of_o of_o that_o date_n that_o persecution_n have_v suffer_v to_o come_v down_o to_o we_o to_o prove_v that_o it_o have_v be_v hold_v by_o the_o church_n of_o the_o first_o four_o counsel_n and_o that_o the_o father_n that_o then_o live_v testify_v to_o have_v receive_v it_o not_o as_o a_o thing_n of_o a_o new_a institution_n but_o as_o a_o thing_n derive_v to_o they_o by_o a_o uninterrupt_a succession_n from_o the_o age_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o church_n of_o their_o time_n and_o that_o none_o of_o the_o precede_a author_n say_v the_o contrary_a his_o majesty_n own_o self_n be_v agree_v with_o we_o in_o this_o as_o have_v often_o already_o be_v repeat_v that_o the_o only_a little_a book_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v very_o far_o from_o contain_v all_o the_o history_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n of_o the_o exception_n that_o the_o king_n produce_v to_o show_v that_o he_o have_v not_o separate_v himself_o from_o the_o church_n chap._n xxix_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n final_o the_o king_n add_v that_o it_o be_v a_o great_a crime_n to_o separate_v one_o self_n from_o the_o church_n but_o that_o he_o have_v any_o thing_n common_a with_o that_o crime_n either_o he_o or_o his_o churchh_n ee_fw-fr 〈◊〉_d denes_n for_o say_v his_o majesty_n we_o fly_v not_o but_o we_o be_v drive_v away_o the_o reply_n and_o why_o then_o do_v minister_n so_o earnest_o exhort_v their_o hearer_n rather_o to_o endure_v all_o kind_n of_o death_n then_o to_o communicate_v in_o our_o synax_n and_o why_o then_o when_o they_o will_v dehort_v those_o of_o their_o party_n from_o marry_v with_o catholic_n do_v they_o allege_v those_o word_n of_o saint_n paul_n what_o communion_n be_v there_o of_o the_o faithful_a with_o a_o infidel_n and_o join_v also_o in_o their_o prayer_n the_o turk_n papist_n 6._o and_o other_o infidel_n and_o why_o then_o do_v his_o majesty_n allege_v for_o a_o reason_n not_o to_o communicate_v with_o we_o these_o word_n of_o the_o revelation_n go_v forth_o of_o babylon_n my_o people_n for_o fear_n of_o communicate_v with_o her_o sin_n for_o to_o offer_v 18._o to_o communicate_v with_o we_o when_o we_o shall_v have_v correct_v those_o thing_n that_o our_o adversary_n pretend_v to_o have_v be_v deform_v in_o our_o church_n who_o see_v not_o that_o that_o be_v not_o to_o offer_v to_o return_v to_o we_o but_o to_o desire_v that_o we_o shall_v return_v to_o they_o and_o what_o sect_n have_v there_o be_v in_o the_o world_n that_o have_v not_o offer_v to_o communicate_v with_o the_o catholic_a church_n provide_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n will_v renounce_v those_o point_n for_o which_o they_o be_v at_o difference_n that_o be_v to_o say_v so_o she_o will_v loose_v the_o condition_n of_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n of_o the_o demand_n make_v for_o reformation_n since_o the_o five_o last_o age_n chapt._n xxx_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_v and_o your_o illustrious_a dignity_n know_v as_o he_o that_o be_v well_o inform_v thereof_o how_o many_o and_o how_o great_a personage_n in_o piety_n and_o doctrine_n have_v desire_v at_o least_o for_o this_o last_o five_o hundred_o year_n the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o head_n and_o in_o the_o member_n how_o many_o grevous_a complaint_n of_o good_a king_n and_o prince_n have_v there_o be_v hear_v deplore_a the_o estate_n of_o the_o church_n in_o their_o age_n but_o what_o have_v it_o avail_v for_o we_o see_v not_o that_o hitherto_o there_o have_v be_v any_o one_o of_o those_o thing_n correct_v which_o be_v esteem_v before_o all_o other_o to_o be_v fit_a for_o correction_n the_o reply_n those_o demand_n of_o reformation_n in_o the_o head_n and_o in_o the_o member_n propound_v before_o the_o last_o devision_n of_o the_o church_n have_v be_v demand_n of_o reformation_n not_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o of_o the_o sacrament_n or_o universal_a ceremony_n of_o the_o church_n but_o in_o manner_n and_o in_o the_o practice_n of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n which_o even_o these_o word_n of_o reformation_n both_o in_o the_o head_n and_o member_n principal_o use_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o constance_n and_o of_o basile_n testify_v now_o as_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n between_o complain_v of_o the_o personal_a practice_n of_o justice_n and_o of_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o officer_n of_o a_o kingdom_n and_o desire_v the_o reformation_n thereof_o and_o between_o complain_v of_o the_o law_n ordinance_n and_o constitution_n of_o the_o state_n so_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n between_o complain_v of_o the_o conversation_n and_o manner_n of_o ecclesiastical_a person_n &_o between_o complain_v of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o institution_n of_o the_o church_n for_o when_o the_o corruption_n to_o speak_v by_o hypothesis_n be_v in_o the_o doctrine_n or_o in_o the_o sacrament_n or_o universal_a ceremony_n of_o the_o church_n none_o can_v remain_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n without_o participate_v in_o that_o contagion_n but_o when_o it_o be_v in_o the_o manner_n and_o in_o the_o practice_n of_o discipline_n those_o only_a that_o commit_v the_o fault_n be_v culpable_a therein_o and_o not_o the_o rest_n who_o tolerate_v they_o as_o saint_n augustine_n say_v for_o the_o good_a of_o 162_o unity_n that_o which_o they_o detest_v for_o the_o good_a of_o equity_n and_o to_o who_o the_o more_o frequent_a and_o foul_a such_o scandal_n be_v by_o so_o much_o the_o more_o be_v the_o merit_n of_o their_o perseverance_n in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o martyrdom_n of_o their_o patience_n as_o saint_n augustine_n call_v it_o for_o this_o only_a sacrifice_n of_o choose_v rather_o to_o support_v the_o remain_v in_o communion_n with_o such_o person_n then_o to_o rend_v the_o coat_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o his_o church_n to_o avoid_v their_o society_n be_v the_o most_o please_a sacrifice_n that_o can_v be_v offer_v up_o to_o god_n now_o the_o church_n have_v always_o not_o only_o since_o the_o last_o age_n but_o from_o all_o antiquity_n be_v fill_v with_o such_o like_a complaint_n for_o while_o she_o shall_v remain_v in_o this_o world_n she_o shall_v always_o singe_v this_o verse_n of_o the_o canticle_n i_o be_o black_a but_o i_o be_o lovely_a that_o be_v to_o 1_o say_v black_a in_o manner_n 〈◊〉_d lovely_a in_o doctrine_n our_o lord_n have_v defer_v till_o his_o second_o come_v the_o make_v her_o glorious_a and_o without_o sport_n and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o every_o one_o in_o his_o time_n have_v always_o believe_v himself_o to_o be_v in_o the_o worst_a age_n of_o the_o church_n for_o manner_n and_o for_o the_o practice_n of_o discipline_n because_o they_o see_v the_o evil_n of_o their_o own_o time_n and_o do_v but_o hear_v the_o history_n of_o other_o time_n whereof_o the_o relation_n do_v not_o so_o lively_o touch_v the_o ear_n as_o the_o sight_n touch_v the_o eye_n but_o nevertheless_o neither_o the_o evil_n have_v always_o go_v on_o increase_v nor_o the_o good_a always_o diminish_v but_o according_a to_o the_o diversity_n of_o the_o age_n the_o church_n have_v be_v either_o more_o or_o less_o pure_a in_o manner_n for_o as_o for_o those_o that_o in_o the_o
draw_v from_o this_o example_n for_o the_o desertion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n god_n say_v saint_n augustine_n bid_v that_o these_o tribe_n shall_v be_v separate_v not_o to_o divide_v the_o religion_n but_o the_o kingdom_n and_o that_o 〈◊〉_d this_o mean_n vengeance_n may_v be_v take_v upon_o the_o kingdom_n of_o juda_n but_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o ordinary_a refuge_n of_o those_o that_o separate_v themselves_o from_o we_o be_v to_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o symptom_n of_o the_o jewish_a people_n and_o to_o infer_v from_o thence_o the_o same_o conclusion_n of_o possibility_n of_o error_n and_o licence_n of_o separation_n for_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o that_o to_o contradict_v this_o we_o have_v not_o only_o promise_v to_o show_v that_o there_o never_o happen_v any_o accident_n to_o the_o visible_a jewish_a church_n wherefore_o they_o either_o ought_v or_o can_v separate_v themselves_o from_o her_o communion_n but_o also_o that_o if_o any_o such_o thing_n have_v happen_v the_o consequence_n thereof_o can_v not_o be_v apply_v to_o the_o christian_a church_n which_o be_v ground_v upon_o other_o contract_n and_o upon_o other_o prerogative_n it_o be_v best_a for_o we_o here_o to_o quit_v we_o of_o our_o promise_n and_o to_o search_v the_o question_n to_o the_o bottom_n both_o concern_v the_o thesis_n and_o the_o hypothesis_n in_o regard_n then_o of_o the_o thesis_n the_o adversary_n 〈◊〉_d catholic_n religion_n set_v this_o foundation_n that_o the_o church_n in_o all_o time_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o same_o symptom_n and_o to_o the_o same_o accident_n &_o there_o upon_o argue_v thus_o the_o visible_a church_n have_v have_v three_o period_n the_o first_o under_o nature_n the_o second_o under_o the_o law_n and_o the_o three_o under_o grace_n now_o under_o the_o two_o first_o she_o have_v be_v corrupt_v and_o consequent_o under_o the_o three_o she_o may_v be_v so_o which_o be_v as_o if_o one_o shall_v say_v there_o be_v three_o period_n in_o the_o progress_n of_o the_o generation_n of_o man_n the_o first_o during_o the_o which_o man_n live_v only_o the_o life_n of_o plant_n and_o be_v yet_o touch_v with_o no_o other_o instinct_n then_o simple_a appetite_n which_o the_o philosopher_n call_v natural_a common_a to_o herb_n and_o tree_n which_o seem_v to_o correspond_v to_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o first_o period_n of_o the_o church_n wherein_o she_o have_v yet_o no_o law_n or_o rule_n but_o the_o simple_a law_n of_o nature_n the_o second_o during_o which_o he_o live_v a_o animate_v and_o sensitive_a life_n which_o be_v proportion_v to_o the_o state_n of_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n because_o as_o man_n in_o this_o second_o progress_n harh_n no_o other_o know_v faculty_n but_o that_o of_o the_o sense_n which_o be_v common_a to_o he_o with_o beast_n so_o all_o the_o object_n which_o be_v manifest_o propound_v to_o the_o jew_n and_o all_o the_o promise_n which_o be_v literal_o make_v to_o they_o be_v of_o sensible_a thing_n and_o the_o last_o wherein_o man_n take_v possession_n of_o the_o life_n true_o human_a and_o reasonable_a and_o be_v adorn_v and_o ennoble_v with_o intellectual_a knowledge_n which_o have_v analogy_n with_o the_o state_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n where_o the_o faithful_a be_v consecrate_v to_o god_n by_o a_o perfect_a &_o lawful_a form_n of_o religion_n and_o stick_v no_o long_o in_o terrestrial_a and_o material_a object_n but_o exalt_v their_o thought_n and_o their_o hope_n do_v nourish_v &_o entertain_v themselves_o with_o spiritual_a and_o incorruptible_a promise_n now_o under_o the_o first_o and_o second_o of_o those_o period_n the_o imperfect_a soul_n of_o man_n which_o we_o call_v a_o embricn_n be_v subject_a to_o perish_v corruptible_a and_o mortal_a the_o soul_n of_o man_n therefore_o under_o the_o three_o period_n be_v not_o incorruptible_a &_o immortal_a for_o to_o preduce_v for_o a_o reason_n of_o exception_n and_o dissimilitude_n that_o the_o form_n of_o a_o man_n during_o all_o the_o three_o period_n of_o this_o progress_n be_v not_o oneself_o same_o form_n the_o reason_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d be_v void_a for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o diversity_n of_o god_n promise_n where_o it_o so_o fall_v out_o have_v no_o less_o power_n to_o vary_v the_o symptom_n of_o the_o church_n during_o the_o three_o period_n of_o her_o be_v than_o the_o diversity_n of_o form_n to_o vary_v the_o condition_n which_o accompany_v the_o three_o period_n of_o the_o generation_n of_o man_n now_o that_o 4._o the_o promise_v make_v to_o the_o church_n under_o the_o last_o period_n which_o have_v be_v establish_v as_o s._n paul_n say_v upon_o better_a promise_n then_o the_o former_a be_v whole_o different_a both_o in_o eminency_n &_o perpetuity_n from_o those_o that_o have_v be_v make_v to_o she_o under_o the_o two_o first_o what_o christian_a can_v call_v it_o in_o question_n god_n first_o in_o regard_n of_o eminency_n and_o multitude_n do_v he_o not_o say_v to_o abraham_n in_o thy_o 22._o 3._o seed_n that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o s._n paul_n expound_v it_o in_o christ_n shall_v all_o generation_n 22._o be_v bless_v and_o again_o thy_o seed_n shall_v be_v as_o the_o star_n of_o heaven_n and_o as_o the_o sand_n of_o the_o sea_n and_o aggeus_n describe_v the_o future_a estate_n of_o the_o church_n under_o the_o enigma_n of_o the_o re-edification_n of_o the_o temple_n do_v he_o not_o say_v the_o glory_n of_o 2._o 8._o this_o last_o house_n shall_v be_v much_o great_a than_o that_o of_o the_o first_o and_o the_o spouse_n in_o the_o canticle_n speak_v of_o the_o jewish_a church_n do_v she_o not_o singe_v our_o sister_n be_v little_a and_o she_o have_v yet_o no_o breast_n that_o 〈◊〉_d to_o say_v be_v not_o yet_o in_o state_n to_o bring_v forth_o and_o nurse_v up_o child_n and_o do_v not_o 〈◊〉_d cry_v out_o rejoice_v thou_o barren_a 1._o woman_n that_o bear_v not_o child_n and_o thou_o that_o be_v no_o mother_n cast_v forth_o 2_o cry_v of_o joy_n for_o the_o child_n of_o the_o forsake_a shall_v be_v much_o more_o in_o number_n then_o she_o that_o have_v a_o husband_n and_o a_o while_n after_o lengthen_v the_o cord_n of_o thy_o pavilion_n and_o settle_v their_o post_n for_o thou_o shall_v penetrate_v on_o the_o right_a band_n and_o on_o the_o left_a and_o thy_o 18._o seed_n shall_v inheritt_v the_o nation_n and_o again_o cast_v thy_o eye_n about_o thou_o and_o behold_v all_o these_o be_v assemble_v for_o thou_o they_o be_v come_v for_o thou_o thy_o son_n shall_v come_v from_o far_o 48._o and_o thy_o daughter_n shall_v be_v bear_v upon_o shoulder_n and_o do_v not_o s._n augustine_n dispute_v against_o the_o donatist_n cry_v out_o fear_v you_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o jew_n shall_v ask_v you_o where_o be_v that_o accomplish_a that_o your_o paul_n have_v 〈◊〉_d of_o your_o church_n rejoice_v thou_o barren_a woman_n that_o thou_o bear_v not_o and_o cast_v out_o cry_v of_o joy_n that_o thou_o have_v no_o child_n for_o the_o child_n of_o the_o forsake_a be_v more_o in_o number_n than_o she_o that_o have_v a_o husband_n prefer_v the_o multitude_n of_o the_o christian_n before_o that_o of_o advers._n jew_n if_o your_o little_a number_n be_v the_o church_n of_o christ._n and_o s._n hierome_n against_o the_o luciferian_o where_o be_v these_o too_o religious_a or_o rather_o too_o profane_a person_n that_o luciferian_n affirm_v there_o be_v more_o synagogue_n than_o church_n and_o therefore_o do_v not_o the_o same_o s._n augustine_n elegant_o compare_v the_o history_n of_o the_o different_a time_n of_o the_o church_n to_o that_o of_o the_o birth_n of_o jacob_n for_o as_o much_o that_o as_o jacob_n in_o his_o birth_n thrust_v forth_o first_o one_o arm_n and_o then_o his_o head_n and_o then_o all_o his_o body_n so_o the_o church_n before_o she_o be_v bear_v first_o thrust_v forth_o one_o arm_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o little_a part_n of_o her_o society_n which_o be_v the_o synagogue_n and_o then_o her_o head_n which_o be_v christ_n and_o then_o all_o her_o body_n which_o be_v the_o christian_a church_n but_o against_o that_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o church_n allege_v that_o our_o lord_n call_v his_o church_n a_o little_a flock_n &_o command_v 14._o to_o enter_v into_o the_o straight_a gate_n it_o be_v true_a but_o it_o make_v nothing_o for_o they_o for_o that_o our_o lord_n call_v his_o church_n a_o little_a flock_n it_o be_v in_o regard_n of_o her_o birth_n at_o the_o time_n where_o of_o she_o be_v the_o least_o the_o base_a and_o most_o contemptible_a of_o all_o society_n and_o not_o in_o regard_n of_o her_o progress_n which_o himself_o compare_v to_o that_o of_o a_o grain_n of_o mustardseed_n which_o be_v at_o the_o beginning_n the_o least_o of_o all_o seed_n become_v in_o the_o increase_n the_o great_a of_o all_o plant_n we_o
to_o corruption_n and_o that_o what_o be_v incorruptible_a be_v also_o reciprocallie_o impassable_a and_o inalterable_a what_o wonder_n be_v it_o then_o that_o the_o wayfar_a preparation_n of_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o jew_n which_o be_v corruptible_a and_o subject_a to_o perish_v before_o it_o come_v to_o the_o term_n of_o corruption_n have_v try_v many_o passion_n many_o accident_n many_o change_n that_o before_o it_o perish_v it_o have_v undergo_v many_o weakness_n sincope_n and_o faint_n that_o this_o ancient_a &_o decrepit_a house_n which_o be_v one_o day_n to_o be_v ruin_v as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o old_a law_n teach_v we_o that_o that_o which_o wear_v and_o grow_v old_a approach_v to_o ruin_v have_v sum_n time_n be_v amaze_v and_o shake_v that_o this_o light_n that_o be_v final_o to_o be_v extinguish_v &_o bury_v under_o a_o profound_a night_n and_o in_o perpetual_a darkness_n have_v sometime_o be_v obscure_v and_o dim_v and_o have_v suffer_v defect_n and_o eclipse_n and_o contrariwise_o that_o the_o state_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n that_o the_o scripture_n declare_v and_o prophesy_v to_o be_v incorruptible_a and_o not_o subject_a to_o perish_v shall_v be_v free_v from_o all_o the_o passion_n preserve_v from_o all_o these_o accidens_fw-la and_o dispense_v withal_o and_o warrant_v from_o all_o these_o interruption_n but_o we_o have_v insist_v too_o long_o upon_o the_o thesis_fw-la let_v we_o now_o come_v to_o the_o hypothesis_n which_o be_v of_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o church_n under_o the_o two_o first_o period_n and_o principal_o under_o that_o of_o the_o jewish_a law_n for_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o defect_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n the_o adversary_n to_o christianity_n make_v nine_o notable_a objection_n which_o we_o will_v confute_v in_o order_n one_o after_o a_o other_o the_o first_o be_v take_v from_o the_o history_n of_o aaron_n aaron_n say_v they_o found_v the_o idol_n after_o which_o the_o people_n idolatrize_v it_o be_v true_a aaron_n not_o yet_o invest_v with_o the_o high_a priesthood_n found_v the_o golden_a calf_n after_o which_o the_o people_n that_o 〈◊〉_d to_o say_v by_o synecdoche_n a_o part_n of_o the_o people_n idolatrize_v for_o philo_n the_o jew_n do_v particular_o say_v that_o the_o malady_n have_v not_o seize_v they_o 32._o ibid._n all_o but_o neither_o moses_n who_o be_v the_o visible_a head_n of_o the_o israelite_n church_n and_o in_o who_o only_a person_n reside_v till_o then_o the_o high_a priesthood_n nor_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o leviticall_a tribe_n destine_v to_o the_o future_a guard_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o to_o the_o ordinary_a ministry_n of_o the_o law_n be_v touch_v with_o 32_o this_o crime_n for_o as_o soon_o as_o moses_n cry_v if_o any_o one_o belong_v to_o our_o lord_n let_v he_o join_v with_o i_o all_o the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n gather_v to_o he_o to_o root_v out_o the_o idolater_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o moses_n give_v these_o praise_n to_o levi_n 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v he_o that_o have_v say_v of_o his_o father_n and_o of_o his_o mother_n i_o have_v not_o see_v they_o and_o who_o have_v not_o acknowledge_v his_o brother_n and_o have_v no_o more_o know_v his_o child_n for_o they_o have_v keep_v thy_o word_n and_o that_o god_n himself_o say_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o malachy_n the_o law_n of_o truth_n have_v be_v in_o the_o mouth_n of_o levi_n and_o 2_o in_o his_o lip_n there_o be_v no_o forwardness_n he_o have_v walk_v with_o i_o in_o peace_n and_o equity_n and_o that_o philo_n the_o jew_n search_v wherefore_o the_o town_n of_o refuge_n have_v be_v take_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o the_o levite_n say_v that_o one_o reason_n be_v because_o the_o jud._n leviticall_a tribe_n destine_v to_o guard_v the_o temple_n have_v slay_v the_o worshipper_n of_o the_o profug_n golden_a calf_n and_o therefore_o saint_n paul_n cite_v the_o same_o history_n reduce_v it_o to_o the_o number_n of_o some_o to_o the_o end_n say_v he_o that_o you_o become_v not_o idolater_n 10._o as_o some_o among_o they_o be_v to_o show_v that_o this_o act_n be_v not_o universal_a for_o that_o the_o sin_n be_v impute_v in_o general_a to_o all_o the_o people_n it_o be_v not_o because_o they_o have_v all_o participate_v in_o it_o but_o because_o they_o have_v not_o endeavour_v to_o revenge_v and_o punish_v it_o in_o the_o act_n and_o yet_o this_o action_n be_v not_o a_o judiciary_n action_n of_o the_o church_n or_o a_o ritual_a custom_n of_o the_o synagogue_n but_o a_o tumultuary_a sedition_n of_o the_o people_n which_o be_v extinguish_v the_o same_o day_n &_o consequent_o can_v not_o be_v reckon_v for_o a_o interruption_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n for_o as_o 〈◊〉_d as_o the_o brute_n of_o the_o tumulte_n of_o the_o idolator_n be_v raise_v moses_n come_v down_o from_o the_o mountain_n to_o remedy_v it_o now_o what_o proportion_n be_v there_o between_o the_o tumulte_n of_o a_o day_n and_o such_o like_a cloud_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n who_o long_v last_v but_o the_o twenty_o part_n of_o a_o age_n &_o by_o consequence_n give_v no_o occasion_n to_o say_v of_o the_o jewish_a church_n that_o that_o cornelius_n tacitus_n say_v of_o the_o commonwealth_n of_o rome_n under_o tiberius_n who_o be_v he_o that_o have_v see_v the_o commonwealth_n &_o the_o pretend_a ieterruption_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o according_a to_o the_o computation_n of_o her_o adversary_n have_v be_v eclipse_v in_o faith_n &_o err_v in_o salvation_n above_o four_o hundred_o then_o year_n &_o as_o they_o say_v of_o epimenides_n that_o he_o fall_v into_o a_o sleep_n young_a &_o awake_v old_a so_o she_o fall_v a_o sleep_n young_a to_o wit_n immediate_o after_o the_o death_n of_o the_o apostl_n &_o awake_v old_a that_o be_v to_o say_v upon_o the_o end_n &_o in_o the_o last_o wave_n of_o the_o world_n the_o second_o objection_n be_v take_v from_o the_o history_n of_o the_o symptom_n which_o happen_v to_o the_o jewish_a church_n between_o the_o time_n of_o moses_n &_o that_o of_o david_n where_o it_o be_v say_v one_o while_o that_o micheas_n mâde_v a_o idol_n &_o that_o six_o hundred_o 27_o man_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o dan_n have_v take_v it_o place_v it_o in_o lais_n a_o city_n of_o the_o sydonian_o possess_v by_o they_o a_o other_o while_n that_o gedeon_n make_v a_o ephod_n in_o 11._o ephra_n and_o that_o all_o israel_n go_v a_o whore_v after_o it_o a_o other_o while_n that_o israel_n transgress_v and_o abandon_v the_o lord_n an_o other_o while_n that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o hely_n the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v precious_a that_o be_v to_o say_v rare_a a_o other_o while_n that_o in_o the_o 1._o time_n of_o saul_n the_o ark_n have_v not_o be_v require_v that_o be_v to_o say_v according_a to_o the_o innovator_n gloss_n god_n have_v not_o be_v consult_v in_o his_o word_n but_o for_o the_o 3._o history_n of_o micheas_n so_o far_o be_v it_o off_o that_o from_o the_o act_n of_o micheas_n which_o be_v but_o a_o particular_a act_n no_o more_o than_o that_o of_o the_o six_o hundred_o israelite_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o dan_n there_o can_v be_v any_o inference_n draw_v that_o the_o visible_a service_n of_o god_n be_v the_o extinguish_v in_o all_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n as_o luther_n affirm_v that_o this_o history_n fall_v out_o either_o at_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o josua_n or_o under_o the_o government_n of_o othoniel_n a_o excellent_a servant_n of_o god_n wherein_o none_o can_v pretend_v that_o the_o true_a service_n be_v extinguish_v in_o israel_n and_o the_o historian_n note_v that_o this_o idol_n remain_v in_o the_o city_n of_o lais_n as_o long_o as_o the_o house_n of_o our_o lord_n remain_v in_o silo_n testify_v that_o the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o true_a service_n of_o god_n be_v then_o in_o silo._n and_o whereas_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n take_v occasion_n to_o go_v a_o whore_v after_o the_o ephod_n of_o gedeon_n and_o that_o the_o history_n of_o judge_n say_v all_o israel_n go_v a_o whoriug_n after_o it_o it_o must_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o israelite_n of_o the_o city_n of_o ephra_n native_a place_n of_o gedeon_n and_o other_o near_o to_o it_o and_o that_o it_o be_v write_v in_o diverse_a place_n of_o the_o same_o history_n that_o israel_n prevaricate_v and_o serve_v false_a god_n it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v by_o synecdoche_n of_o a_o part_n for_o the_o whole_a follow_v this_o sentence_n of_o s._n augustine_n the_o scripture_n have_v this_o fashion_n of_o reproof_n that_o the_o 11_o word_n seem_v to_o be_v address_v to_o all_o yet_o concern_v but_o some_o of_o they_o and_o indeed_o in_o the_o history_n of_o josua_n not_o only_o the_o scripture_n say_v the_o child_n of_o israel_n violate_v the_o commandment_n and_o take_v
of_o the_o anathema_n but_o god_n himself_o pronounce_v ibidem_fw-la israel_n have_v sin_v and_o have_v transgress_v against_o my_o alliance_n they_o have_v take_v of_o the_o anathema_n and_o have_v steal_v it_o and_o have_v lie_v and_o have_v hide_v it_o among_o their_o stuff_n and_o israel_n can_v subsist_v before_o his_o enemy_n but_o shall_v fly_v before_o they_o for_o he_o be_v pollute_v with_o the_o anathema_n and_o notwithstanding_o there_o be_v but_o one_o only_a man_n in_o all_o israel_n and_o he_o yet_o unkowne_a that_o have_v commit_v this_o crime_n to_o wit_n acham_n and_o whereas_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o first_o of_o samuel_n that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o eli_n the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v precious_a that_o be_v to_o say_v rare_a the_o author_n speak_v not_o there_o in_o any_o sort_n of_o the_o law_n or_o of_o the_o write_a word_n but_o of_o the_o oracle_n and_o visible_a prediction_n that_o god_n have_v accustom_v to_o give_v by_o the_o prophet_n as_o by_o these_o word_n and_o there_o be_v no_o manifest_a vision_n may_v appear_v and_o whereas_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o chronicle_n that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o saul_n the_o ark_n be_v not_o require_v that_o be_v to_o say_v according_a to_o the_o innovator_n gloss_n that_o god_n be_v not_o consult_v with_o in_o this_o word_n this_o be_v a_o wrong_a interpretation_n of_o the_o word_n requisivimus_fw-la which_o intend_v not_o there_o inquire_v of_o but_o require_v and_o have_v not_o reference_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o to_o the_o ark_n and_o signify_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o saul_n they_o have_v not_o yet_o require_v the_o ark_n from_o the_o city_n of_o kiriath_n jearim_n the_o three_o objection_n be_v take_v from_o the_o complaint_n of_o elias_n elias_n say_v the_o adversary_n of_o the_o church_n complain_v to_o god_n that_o his_o altar_n be_v beat_v down_o and_o his_o prophett_n slay_v with_o the_o sword_n and_o that_o he_o be_v leave_v alone_o and_o they_o likewise_o seek_v he_o to_o put_v he_o to_o death_n and_o god_n answer_v he_o that_o he_o have_v reserve_v to_o 〈◊〉_d seven_o thousand_o whereof_o elias_n conceive_v he_o have_v know_v none_o and_o this_o when_o god_n can_v not_o be_v serve_v visible_a but_o in_o judea_n the_o church_n as_o they_o conclude_v be_v then_o invisible_a but_o how_o long_o will_v they_o stumble_v at_o one_o 〈◊〉_d stone_n and_o not_o learn_v to_o distinguish_v between_o the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n be_v be_v the_o seat_n of_o schism_n and_o heresy_n &_o the_o kingdom_n of_o juda_n where_o be_v the_o seat_n of_o the_o true_a church_n it_o be_v write_v that_o the_o herb_n call_v eringus_n have_v this_o hide_a property_n that_o if_o among_o a_o company_n of_o goat_n there_o be_v any_o one_o that_o take_v a_o leaf_n of_o it_o between_o his_o tooth_n that_o goat_n will_v immediate_o stop_n and_o with_o he_o all_o the_o flock_n so_o as_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a to_o make_v any_o one_o of_o they_o go_v forward_o till_o first_o the_o leaf_n be_v pluck_v out_o of_o his_o mouth_n so_o after_o one_o of_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o church_n have_v apprehend_v any_o falsehood_n or_o absurdity_n all_o the_o rest_n as_o by_o a_o certain_a charm_n do_v so_o stop_n and_o stumble_v at_o it_o as_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a to_o make_v they_o go_v forward_o unless_o you_o call_v back_o the_o first_o author_n yea_o out_o of_o his_o grave_n to_o contradict_v himself_o and_o to_o recant_v public_o melancton_n be_v inquire_v off_o 〈◊〉_d the_o church_n be_v twelve_o or_o thirteen_o hundred_o year_n ago_o since_o from_o that_o time_n by_o his_o account_n our_o communion_n be_v corrupt_v with_o idolatry_n and_o impiety_n have_v recourse_n to_o the_o history_n of_o elias_n to_o who_o say_v he_o for_o a_o while_n the_o true_a church_n be_v unknown_a and_o iwisible_a after_o this_o all_o those_o that_o have_v handle_v the_o same_o question_n without_o inquire_v whether_o this_o solution_n be_v true_a or_o false_a without_o take_v care_n to_o examine_v the_o place_n have_v so_o tie_v themselves_o to_o it_o as_o at_o this_o day_n it_o be_v their_o only_a and_o common_a refuge_n in_o this_o extremity_n it_o do_v not_o import_v we_o answer_v they_o to_o know_v where_o the_o residence_n of_o the_o church_n be_v in_o the_o age_n whereof_o you_o inquire_v elias_n who_o be_v a_o prophet_n be_v also_o ignorant_a for_o a_o time_n where_o she_o subsist_v we_o then_o may_v well_o be_v ignorant_a of_o it_o who_o be_v neither_o prophet_n nor_o the_o child_n of_o prophet_n for_o he_o complain_v that_o he_o be_v leave_v alone_o but_o of_o who_o do_v elias_n speak_v when_o he_o say_v they_o have_v 〈◊〉_d thy_o prophet_n with_o the_o sword_n be_v it_o not_o of_o achab_n and_o of_o 19_o jesabel_n and_o where_o be_v it_o that_o he_o say_v he_o be_v leave_v alone_o be_v it_o not_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n now_o if_o saint_n augustine_n speak_v of_o the_o christian_a church_n it_o self_n have_v have_v reason_n to_o say_v what_o a_o absurdity_n be_v it_o 52._o not_o to_o consider_v that_o the_o church_n increase_v and_o multiply_v over_o all_o the_o world_n may_v suffer_v persecution_n by_o the_o king_n of_o some_o nation_n when_o she_o do_v not_o suffer_v it_o by_o the_o rest_n wherefore_o may_v not_o we_o cry_v out_o what_o a_o absurdity_n be_v it_o to_o transferr_v what_o belong_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n where_o the_o true_a church_n be_v persecute_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o juda_n where_o she_o be_v visible_a flourish_a and_o eminent_a for_o so_o fart_n of_o be_v the_o church_n then_o from_o be_v tie_v and_o restrain_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n as_o contrariwise_o the_o true_a seat_n the_o only_a seat_n the_o sovereign_a seat_n of_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o visible_a exercise_n of_o religion_n wherein_o only_a sacrifice_n may_v be_v lawful_o celebrate_v the_o centre_n of_o union_n and_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n the_o heart_n if_o i_o may_v say_v so_o and_o root_n of_o the_o church_n be_v situate_a out_o of_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o israel_n nay_o more_o than_o so_o all_o the_o sacerdotal_a order_n all_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o levi_n all_o the_o high-priest_n priest_n and_o minister_n to_o who_o only_o belong_v the_o dispensation_n of_o the_o mystery_n and_o ceremony_n all_o the_o magistrate_n and_o officer_n of_o the_o church_n all_o the_o pastor_n and_o ordinary_a doctor_n without_o which_o she_o can_v not_o be_v visible_a nor_o retain_v her_o just_a mark_n and_o sacrament_n than_o make_v their_o residence_n out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n and_o to_o prove_v this_o threescore_o year_n and_o more_o before_o elias_n begin_v to_o prophesy_v the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n have_v be_v divide_v into_o two_o kingdom_n the_o one_o contain_v the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n which_o be_v without_o comparison_n the_o great_a and_o most_o principal_a &_o that_o of_o benjamin_n to_o which_o be_v also_o join_v the_o lineage_n of_o levi_n all_o entire_a with_o infinite_a particular_n of_o the_o other_o tribe_n who_o desire_v to_o serve_v god_n pure_o hold_v the_o title_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o juda_n under_o the_o dominion_n of_o roboam_n the_o true_a and_o natural_a heir_n the_o other_o comprehend_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o tribe_n possess_v by_o jeroboam_n a_o rebel_n &_o a_o usurper_n &_o possess_v under_o the_o restrain_a name_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n by_o mean_n whereof_o these_o two_o people_n have_v always_o have_v their_o estate_n and_o their_o king_n apart_o yea_o their_o religion_n also_o for_o the_o more_o part_n divide_v for_o to_o jeroboam_n succeed_v nadab_n to_o nadab_n baasa_n to_o baasa_n ela_n to_o ela_n zambri_n to_o zambri_n amri_n to_o amri_n achab_n all_o not_o only_a schismatickes_n but_o idolator_n and_o infidel_n elias_n then_o as_o subject_v to_o achab_n complain_v that_o these_o relic_n of_o the_o church_n which_o remain_v in_o israel_n these_o few_o of_o the_o faithful_a which_o be_v leave_v in_o the_o territory_n of_o achab_n and_o which_o be_v wont_n every_o year_n to_o go_v up_o to_o profess_v and_o to_o exercise_v their_o religion_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o juda_n where_o the_o temple_n and_o priesthood_n be_v have_v be_v root_v out_o by_o the_o tyranny_n of_o queen_n jesabel_n and_o from_o the_o depart_n from_o thence_o there_o be_v man_n which_o conclude_v without_o scruple_n of_o this_o fear_n there_o be_v they_o no_o visible_a church_n in_o the_o world_n but_o hear_v the_o history_n of_o the_o separation_n of_o these_o two_o kingdom_n he_o reign_v say_v the_o history_n of_o the_o chronicle_n speak_v 11._o of_o roboan_n over_o juda_n &_o over_o benjamin_n the_o priest_n also_o &_o the_o levite_n which_o
be_v under_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o israel_n come_v to_o he_o out_o of_o all_o the_o city_n which_o have_v be_v give_v to_o he_o for_o their_o habitation_n leave_v their_o possession_n and_o their_o inheritance_n and_o pass_v and_o inhabit_v in_o juda_n and_o in_o jerusalem_n because_o jeroboam_n have_v drive_v they_o out_o he_o &_o his_o successor_n lest_o they_o shall_v attend_v to_o the_o service_n of_o our_o lord_n have_v appoint_v priest_n of_o the_o high_a place_n to_o sacrifice_v to_o the_o devil_n and_o to_o the_o calf_n that_o he_o have_v cause_v to_o be_v set_v up_o fron_n other_o place_n also_o of_o all_o the_o tribe_n of_o israel_n those_o that_o set_v their_o heart_n to_o seek_v the_o god_n of_o israel_n go_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n to_o offer_v their_o sacrifice_n before_o the_o lord_n god_n of_o their_o father_n whereto_o josephus_n add_v these_o word_n as_o joseph_n pronounce_v by_o hieroboam_n in_o form_n of_o a_o oration_n to_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n antiquitat_fw-la 8._o i_o think_v say_v he_o none_o of_o you_o be_v ignorant_a that_o there_o be_v no_o place_n where_o god_n be_v not_o and_o that_o he_o reserve_v not_o to_o himself_o any_o appoint_a seat_n but_o that_o every_o where_o he_o hear_v those_o that_o pray_v to_o he_o and_o cast_v his_o eye_n upon_o all_o that_o serve_v he_o for_o this_o reason_n i_o have_v not_o think_v fit_a to_o suffer_v you_o to_o go_v so_o far_o to_o worship_n and_o with_o so_o much_o pain_n and_o also_o in_o a_o enemy_n city_n as_o jerusalem_n be_v the_o temple_n that_o be_v there_o be_v build_v by_o a_o mortal_a man_n neither_o more_o nor_o less_o than_o myself_o therefore_o i_o have_v consecrace_v for_o you_o two_o calf_n of_o gold_n the_o one_o in_o bethel_n and_o the_o other_o in_o dan_o that_o go_v thither_o according_a to_o the_o ease_n and_o opportunity_n of_o the_o neighbourhood_n you_o may_v there_o worship_n god_n more_o commodiouslie_o beside_o you_o shall_v want_v no_o priest_n and_o levite_n who_o i_o will_v establish_v from_o among_o you_o that_o you_o may_v have_v no_o more_o need_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n nor_o of_o the_o family_n of_o aaron_n behold_v then_o that_o the_o church_n be_v then_o so_o far_o from_o be_v confine_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n as_o the_o metropolitan_a seat_n of_o the_o religion_n &_o service_n of_o god_n which_o be_v jerusalem_n the_o place_n where_o sacrifice_n ought_v to_o be_v celebrate_v which_o be_v the_o temple_n the_o sovereign_a tribunal_n of_o the_o adoration_n which_o be_v the_o altar_n the_o succession_n of_o david_n from_o who_o the_o messiah_n be_v to_o come_v the_o high_a priest_n and_o all_o the_o sacerdotal_a and_o leviticall_a estate_n which_o administer_v and_o represent_v the_o universal_a body_n of_o the_o church_n do_v remain_v follow_v the_o election_n and_o institution_n of_o god_n in_o the_o part_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o juda_n and_o out_o of_o that_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v long_o before_o declare_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o psalmist_n in_o these_o term_v not_o only_o historical_a but_o also_o prophetical_a he_o 61._o have_v say_v he_o reject_v the_o tabernacle_n of_o joseph_n and_o have_v not_o choose_v the_o tribe_n of_o 31._o ephraim_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n which_o be_v call_v ephraim_n for_o as_o much_o as_o jeroboam_fw-la as_o say_v s._n hierome_n who_o first_o reign_v there_o be_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o ephraim_n but_o have_v choose_v the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n and_o the_o mountain_n of_o 27._o zion_n which_o he_o love_v and_o after_o by_o that_o of_o ezechiel_n in_o these_o sonn_n of_o man_n say_v the_o lord_n take_v a_o piece_n of_o wood_n and_o write_v upon_o it_o juda_n and_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n which_o be_v unite_v to_o he_o and_o of_o his_o fellowshipp_n and_o take_v a_o other_o and_o write_v upon_o it_o the_o word_n of_o joseph_n which_o be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o ephraim_n and_o all_o the_o family_n of_o israel_n and_o of_o all_o those_o which_o be_v unite_v to_o he_o and_o therefore_o the_o history_n of_o toby_n say_v that_o when_o all_o those_o of_o the_o tribe_n of_o nephthali_n go_v to_o the_o golden_a calf_n that_o jeroboam_fw-la king_n of_o israel_n have_v make_v toby_n only_o flee_v the_o company_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o go_v into_o jerusalem_n to_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o there_o worship_v the_o lord_n god_n of_o israel_n offer_v all_o his_o first_o fruit_n and_o his_o tithe_n and_o therefore_o our_o lord_n when_o the_o samaritan_n say_v to_o he_o our_o father_n worship_v in_o this_o mountain_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o the_o mountain_n of_o samaria_n and_o of_o gerassim_n and_o you_o affirm_v that_o in_o jerusalem_n be_v the_o place_n where_o we_o ought_v to_o worship_n answer_v that_o salvation_n be_v on_o the_o jew_n side_n and_o for_o this_o same_o cause_n s._n paul_n allege_v his_o extraction_n from_o abraham_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n note_v particular_o that_o he_o be_v issue_v from_o the_o family_n of_o benjamin_n as_o signifi_n that_o he_o be_v extract_v from_o the_o society_n of_o those_o in_o who_o communion_n reside_v the_o true_a body_n of_o the_o church_n the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n say_v s._n augustine_n and_o the_o line_n of_o benjamin_n have_v remain_v in_o the_o society_n of_o the_o temple_n the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n which_o 1._o 75._o be_v that_o of_o the_o priest_n the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n which_o be_v the_o royal_a line_n and_o the_o line_n of_o benjamin_n those_o only_o stay_v on_o hierusalems_n party_n and_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n when_o the_o separation_n have_v be_v make_v by_o the_o revolt_n of_o salomon_n servant_n do_v not_o then_o imagine_v that_o it_o be_v of_o little_a weight_n that_o the_o apostle_n add_v issue_v from_o the_o tribe_n of_o benjamin_n for_o it_o be_v as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v communicate_v with_o juda_n and_o not_o be_v deprive_v of_o and_o separate_v from_o the_o temple_n but_o behold_v yet_o more_o which_o be_v that_o the_o complaint_n of_o elias_n be_v so_o far_o from_o verify_v this_o pretend_a interruption_n and_o this_o general_a eclipse_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n as_o contrariwise_o it_o appear_v that_o at_o the_o same_o time_n at_o the_o same_o hour_n at_o the_o same_o moment_n that_o elias_n lament_v the_o persecution_n of_o achab_n the_o true_a religion_n flourish_v in_o judea_n with_o more_o glory_n purity_n and_o splendour_n than_o ever_o she_o have_v do_v since_o the_o first_o solomon_n which_o be_v the_o figure_n of_o her_o true_a spouse_n and_o the_o author_n of_o the_o material_a temple_n till_o the_o other_o that_o be_v declare_v to_o be_v great_a than_o solomon_n that_o be_v to_o say_v until_o our_o lord_n who_o build_v the_o spiritual_a temple_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n for_o in_o the_o same_o time_n that_o achab_n and_o jesabell_n persecute_v elias_n josaphat_n sonn_v and_o successor_n to_o asa_n reign_v in_o juda_n and_o to_o prove_v it_o so_o the_o history_n bear_v that_o josaphat_n come_v to_o the_o crown_n of_o juda_n the_o fowrth_a year_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o achab_n king_n of_o israel_n now_o thete_n be_v six_o year_n and_o more_o of_o achabs_n government_n expire_v when_o elias_n make_v his_o lamentation_n for_o the_o great_a drought_n whereof_o the_o hebrew_v assign_v the_o beginning_n to_o be_v in_o the_o three_o year_n of_o achab_n and_o which_o last_v three_o year_n and_o six_o month_n according_a to_o the_o report_n of_o s._n james_n be_v then_o precise_o finish_v so_o as_o the_o complaint_n of_o 5._o elias_n not_o only_o fall_v out_o in_o the_o time_n of_o josaphat_n but_o meet_v exact_o with_o the_o revolution_n of_o the_o three_o year_n of_o his_o empire_n which_o be_v just_a the_o same_o 〈◊〉_d wherein_o he_o celebrate_v that_o famous_a circuit_n and_o if_o i_o dare_v so_o style_v it_o that_o walk_a parliament_n and_o those_o great_a day_n of_o religion_n where_o the_o most_o notable_a prince_n of_o his_o estate_n and_o the_o principal_a priest_n and_o levite_n be_v appoint_v to_o travel_v through_o all_o the_o city_n of_o his_o kingdom_n behold_v the_o 〈◊〉_d wherein_o elias_n complaint_n happen_v now_o what_o josaphat_n be_v from_o the_o beginning_n to_o the_o end_n of_o his_o life_n how_o he_o walk_v entire_o in_o the_o way_n of_o asa_n his_o father_n without_o turn_v from_o it_o in_o any_o thing_n but_o do_v what_o be_v please_v to_o the_o lord_n how_o the_o service_n of_o god_n be_v holy_o celebrate_v and_o administer_v under_o his_o authority_n how_o the_o almighty_a be_v with_o he_o because_o he_o tread_v in_o the_o step_n of_o david_n his_o predecessor_n and_o trust_v not_o in_o
this_o cause_n so_o abhor_v achaz_n as_o be_v dead_a although_o his_o own_o sonn_n succeed_v he_o they_o do_v not_o 〈◊〉_d he_o in_o the_o sepulchre_n of_o his_o father_n the_o five_o objection_n be_v take_v from_o the_o four_o hundred_o prophett_n that_o achab_n cause_v to_o come_v and_o prophesy_v before_o josaphat_n who_o be_v all_o find_v false_a prophett_n and_o micheas_n alone_o a_o true_a prophet_n but_o neither_o do_v this_o 22._o fall_n out_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o juda_n where_o be_v the_o seat_n of_o the_o church_n but_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n neither_o be_v those_o prophet_n of_o the_o college_n of_o the_o prophett_n of_o baal_n and_o of_o the_o quality_n of_o those_o of_o who_o before_o elias_n have_v say_v take_v all_o the_o prophett_n of_o baal_n and_o let_v not_o one_o man_n escape_v and_o of_o who_o afterward_o elias_n say_v to_o joram_n sonn_v of_o the_o same_o achab_n what_o be_v there_o 22_o between_o i_o and_o thou_o go_v to_o the_o prophet_n of_o thy_o father_n and_o of_o thy_o mother_n and_o therefore_o when_o josaphat_n will_v cause_v micheas_n to_o come_v he_o ask_v he_o be_v there_o not_o here_o one_o prophet_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o distinguish_v he_o from_o the_o prophett_n of_o baal_n by_o this_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o be_v the_o same_o difference_n which_o jehu_n afterward_o use_v when_o be_v desirous_a to_o put_v baal_n priest_n to_o death_n he_o say_v take_v beede_n lest_o there_o be_v any_o of_o the_o servant_n of_o the_o lord_n among_o you_o but_o let_v the_o servant_n of_o baal_n be_v only_o here_o 10._o the_o six_o objection_n be_v take_v from_o the_o history_n of_o manasses_n a_o idolatrous_a prince_n and_o who_o cause_v all_o manner_n of_o abomination_n and_o false_a worship_n to_o be_v practise_v in_o jerusalem_n and_o juda_n but_o beside_o this_o that_o he_o come_v afterward_o to_o repentance_n and_o then_o drive_v away_o all_o the_o idol_n and_o all_o the_o false_a god_n from_o jerusalem_n and_o command_v the_o people_n of_o juda_n to_o serve_v god_n even_o then_o when_o he_o exercise_v his_o great_a impiety_n the_o church_n and_o the_o multitude_n of_o god_n true_a servant_n be_v not_o for_o all_o that_o invisible_a contrariwise_o the_o scripture_n say_v that_o he_o shed_v so_o much_o innocent_a blood_n as_o jerusalem_n 21._o be_v fill_v there_o with_o even_o up_o to_o the_o throat_n by_o mean_n whereof_o although_o there_o have_v then_o be_v no_o solemn_a assembly_n in_o the_o synagogue_n of_o juda_n and_o that_o all_o public_a exercise_n have_v be_v suspend_v there_o yet_o the_o slaughter_n of_o the_o faithful_a yet_o warm_a &_o still_o breathe_v and_o the_o voice_n of_o their_o blood_n which_o smoke_v and_o cry_v for_o vengeance_n as_o that_o of_o abel_n before_o heaven_n and_o earth_n permity_v not_o that_o the_o true_a religion_n shall_v be_v unknown_a and_o invisible_a there_o for_o as_o many_o execution_n and_o martirdome_n as_o there_o be_v so_o many_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n and_o sweet_a smell_n be_v they_o so_o many_o profession_n of_o faith_n so_o many_o sermon_n so_o many_o seal_n and_o sacrament_n of_o the_o true_a belief_n which_o refresh_v and_o confirm_v the_o memory_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n even_o in_o the_o spirit_n of_o those_o that_o persecute_v it_o for_o as_o much_o as_o all_o man_n know_v and_o themselves_o protest_v the_o cause_n wherefore_o they_o be_v banish_v pursue_v and_o martyr_v for_o the_o church_n be_v not_o only_o illustrate_v by_o her_o lily_n but_o also_o by_o her_o rose_n that_o be_v to_o say_v she_o be_v not_o only_o evident_a by_o her_o quiet_a and_o peaceable_a exercise_n which_o be_v the_o congregation_n to_o hear_v and_o adore_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o to_o communicate_v in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o also_o by_o her_o military_a exercise_n die_v in_o blood_n which_o be_v the_o martyrdom_n and_o the_o execution_n suffer_v for_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o faith_n which_o do_v often_o no_o less_o increase_v her_o fame_n and_o renown_n in_o the_o time_n wherein_o she_o be_v oppress_v then_o in_o the_o season_n wherein_o she_o enjoy_v more_o calm_a quiet_a and_o fulfil_v without_o hindrance_n her_o ordinary_a and_o accustom_a work_n so_o as_o s._n augustine_n say_v she_o be_v then_o eminent_a in_o she_o most_o steadfast_a 48_o champion_n the_o seven_o objection_n be_v take_v from_o the_o transmigration_n of_o babylon_n during_o with_o time_n they_o pretend_v that_o the_o visible_a communion_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n be_v interrupt_v but_o who_o know_v not_o that_o the_o jew_n during_o this_o exile_n have_v the_o true_a external_a exercise_n of_o their_o religion_n wherein_o they_o wrought_v their_o salvation_n &_o perform_v the_o visible_a observation_n of_o all_o their_o worship_n service_n and_o ceremony_n except_o of_o the_o sacrifice_n alone_o which_o can_v not_o be_v offer_v but_o in_o the_o temple_n and_o be_v evident_o distinguish_v from_o other_o nation_n witness_n these_o word_n of_o aman_n to_o assuerus_n there_o be_v a_o 3._o people_n 〈◊〉_d over_o all_o the_o province_n of_o thy_o kingdom_n and_o divide_v into_o many_o part_n that_o practice_n new_a law_n and_o ceremony_n and_o these_o of_o the_o historian_n many_o other_o nation_n and_o sect_n join_v themselves_o to_o their_o religion_n and_o to_o their_o ceremony_n for_o that_o this_o history_n fall_v out_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o transmigration_n it_o appear_v by_o this_o that_o it_o be_v say_v that_o mardocheus_n be_v one_o of_o those_o that_o have_v be_v transport_v from_o jerusalem_n in_o the_o time_n of_o nabuchodonosor_n and_o of_o jechonias_n and_o it_o be_v not_o contradictory_n to_o this_o that_o assuerus_n write_v that_o aman_n be_v a_o macedonian_a and_o will_v have_v betray_v the_o empire_n to_o the_o macedonian_n for_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o same_o epistle_n report_v by_o josephus_n sixteen_o hundred_o year_n 6._o a_o go_v have_v it_o allophilus_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o stranger_n and_o that_o the_o greek_a &_o latin_a edition_n say_v a_o macedonian_a it_o proceed_v from_o the_o syriac_a translation_n of_o the_o same_o epistle_n make_v after_o the_o death_n of_o alexander_n after_o which_o all_o stranger_n in_o asia_n be_v call_v macedonian_n as_o at_o this_o day_n all_o those_o of_o the_o west_n be_v call_v frankes_n there_o from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o syriac_a edition_n say_v that_o assicerus_fw-la be_v clothe_v in_o a_o macedonian_a habit_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o the_o habit_n of_o a_o stranger_n the_o eight_o objection_n be_v take_v from_o the_o write_n of_o the_o prophett_n who_o often_o deplore_v the_o desolation_n of_o the_o service_n of_o god_n in_o their_o people_n but_o either_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o portion_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n divide_v from_o that_o of_o juda_n and_o of_o the_o faction_n of_o the_o schismatical_a israelite_n who_o be_v no_o more_o the_o church_n and_o to_o who_o god_n protest_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o jeremie_n that_o he_o have_v give_v the_o libel_n of_o divorce_n or_o if_o they_o speak_v of_o that_o of_o the_o 8._o kingdom_n of_o juda_n s._n augustine_n teach_v we_o that_o they_o speak_v prophetical_o and_o by_o a_o analogy_n of_o time_n of_o the_o future_a estate_n of_o the_o jewish_a people_n such_o as_o they_o shall_v be_v after_o the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n or_o if_o they_o speak_v by_o synecdoche_n and_o according_a to_o the_o stile_n of_o preacher_n who_o censure_n the_o vice_n of_o particular_a person_n in_o general_a term_n to_o the_o end_n to_o reprove_v as_o s._n augustine_n say_v of_o s._n hilary_n the_o more_o severelie_o that_o which_o they_o reprove_v more_o universallie_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o they_o speak_v of_o certain_a particular_a person_n who_o either_o abandon_v the_o religion_n of_o their_o father_n some_o to_o follow_v that_o of_o the_o pagan_n that_o sacrifice_v to_o idol_n some_o to_o follow_v that_o of_o the_o schismatickes_n who_o sacrifice_v in_o the_o high_a place_n or_o if_o they_o remain_v in_o the_o true_a religion_n and_o communion_n live_v wicked_o there_o as_o concern_v manner_n they_o collect_v say_v s._n augustine_n speak_v of_o the_o donatist_n he_o may_v have_v add_v the_o caluinist_n to_o they_o either_o ignor_n antlie_o or_o fraudulent_o the_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o be_v speak_v either_o of_o the_o wicked_a which_o be_v nimgle_v with_o the_o good_a until_o the_o end_n or_o of_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o first_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o will_v wrest_v they_o against_o the_o church_n of_o god_n that_o she_o may_v seem_v to_o have_v fail_v and_o to_o be_v perish_v from_o the_o whole_a earth_n the_o nine_o and_o final_a objection_n be_v take_v from_o the_o comdemnation_n that_o the_o jewish_a church_n make_v of_o the_o saviour_n of_o
be_v for_o who_o innocence_n not_o with_o stand_v diverse_a write_v be_v always_o ground_v upon_o the_o fact_n and_o not_o upon_o the_o right_n that_o be_v to_o say_v pretend_v they_o be_v not_o complice_n nor_o consent_v thereto_o and_o not_o maintain_v the_o action_n to_o be_v other_o then_o damnable_a and_o detestable_a contrariwise_o that_o they_o be_v justify_v by_o this_o way_n be_v it_o true_a be_v it_o false_a for_o it_o be_v hard_o in_o such_o a_o case_n to_o impose_v a_o law_n upon_o the_o suspicion_n of_o absent_a person_n it_o be_v a_o manifest_a testimony_n that_o the_o action_n be_v abhor_v and_o condemn_v and_o when_o as_o his_o majesty_n add_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n enroll_v they_o in_o the_o catalogue_n of_o martyr_n if_o any_o pariicular_a man_n defend_v their_o suppose_a innocence_n hyperbolical_o it_o be_v always_o upon_o this_o supposition_n whether_o true_a or_o false_a that_o they_o be_v not_o complice_n in_o the_o fact_n but_o as_o for_o the_o roman_a church_n i_o never_o yet_o hear_v tell_v that_o she_o have_v canonize_v any_o martyr_n of_o the_o seaventeenth_o age_n of_o the_o write_n of_o the_o illustrious_a cardinal_n bellarmin_n chap._n thirty-nine_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n the_o cardinal_n bellarmine_n himself_o i_o will_v say_v it_o against_o my_o will_n but_o i_o say_v truth_n among_o the_o protector_n of_o the_o parricide_n hold_v the_o rank_n of_o the_o head_n of_o a_o faction_n who_o new_o again_o to_o the_o end_n to_o allure_v the_o excellent_a king_n have_v employ_v this_o argument_n of_o wondrous_a efficacy_n to_o persuade_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n belong_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o the_o king_n of_o england_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n even_o in_o temporal_a thing_n and_o in_o his_o feodary_n i_o omit_v the_o other_o complaint_n of_o the_o king_n and_o the_o english_a church_n as_o well_o old_a as_o new_a which_o now_o have_v no_o need_n of_o commemoration_n the_o reply_n the_o protestation_n that_o i_o have_v make_v none_o to_o handle_v any_o thing_n in_o this_o work_n but_o what_o be_v pure_o spiritual_a oblige_v i_o not_o to_o undertake_v the_o defence_n of_o the_o illustrious_a and_o most_o learned_a cardinal_n bellarmine_n but_o in_o case_n of_o this_o quality_n it_o suffice_v i_o for_o the_o rest_n to_o say_v that_o himself_o advertise_v the_o reader_n that_o what_o he_o propound_v os_fw-la the_o indirect_a authority_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o temporall_n he_o propound_v it_o not_o as_o a_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o whereof_o either_o side_n must_v be_v hold_v under_o the_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n or_o anathema_n by_o mean_n where_o of_o this_o question_n shall_v not_o hinder_v the_o reunion_n of_o those_o who_o desire_v to_o return_v to_o the_o church_n for_o as_o for_o the_o annual_a present_n that_o it_o be_v write_v england_n waswont_a to_o make_v to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a if_o his_o majesty_n predecessor_n will_v by_o any_o mark_n of_o public_a acknowledgement_n testify_v their_o particular_a devotion_n towards_o saint_n peter_n sea_n that_o can_v bring_v no_o more_o dimunition_n to_o their_o temporal_a glory_n than_o the_o submission_n of_o alexander_n the_o great_a bring_v to_o he_o when_o he_o prostrate_v himself_o before_o the_o high_a priest_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d law_n or_o that_o of_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n the_o second_o when_o he_o prostrate_v himself_o in_o asia_n before_o pope_n constantine_n make_v this_o acknowledgement_n not_o to_o man_n but_o to_o god_n who_o say_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o isaiah_n to_o his_o church_n whereof_o saint_n peter_n in_o his_o successor_n be_v the_o head_n and_o visible_a figure_n king_n shall_v worship_v thou_o with_o their_o face_n on_o the_o ground_n contrariwise_o it_o will_v be_v find_v that_o the_o king_n of_o england_n have_v be_v more_o esteem_v and_o fear_v since_o then_o then_o ever_o they_o be_v before_o joint_o that_o whensoever_o it_o shall_v please_v this_o great_a king_n to_o make_v so_o fair_a a_o present_a to_o the_o church_n as_o to_o give_v she_o his_o heart_n and_o person_n i_o assure_v myself_o the_o pope_n will_v show_v if_o these_o temporal_a acknowledgement_n be_v displease_v to_o his_o majesty_n that_o it_o be_v himself_o as_o s._n paul_n say_v that_o he_o desire_v and_o not_o the_o thing_n that_o belong_v to_o he_o the_o end_n of_o the_o first_o part._n contra_fw-la literas_fw-la petil_fw-la l_o 2._o c_o 95_o epist._n 1_o 52_o de_fw-fr side_n ad_fw-la petr._n c._n 39_o epist._n 48._o cap._n 29._o cap._n 33._o cap_n 4._o cap._n 23._o 23._o gen._n 12._o 26._o 26._o gal_n 3_o l_o sa_o 2._o 2._o matt_n 14._o de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccles._n ca._n 2._o &_o 3._o &_o alibi_fw-la isa._n 60._o 62._o 54._o 54._o matth._n 16._o 18._o 1._o 〈◊〉_d 3._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d c_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d de_fw-fr symb._n &_o catec_n l._n 1_o c._n 5._o contr._n jul._n l._n 5._o &_o 2._o vincent_n lirin_fw-mi c._n 42_o epist._n 118._o de_fw-fr bapt._n cont_n don._n l._n 4._o c._n 6._o 〈◊〉_d c._n 24._o in_o joan._n lib._n 11._o cap._n 27._o 27._o hier._n adu_fw-la luciser_n luciser_n ruffin_n in_o symbol_n symbol_n august_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la &_o symbol_n &_o de_fw-fr symb._n ad_fw-la catec_fw-la d_o demost_a demost_a arist._n polit_fw-la 2._o deuteron_fw-gr 23._o psal._n 25._o act._n 17._o hieron_n in_o esai_n c._n 62._o cyril_n ibid._n matth._n 18._o act._n 12._o 1._o cor._n 4_o 1._o cor._n 10._o jacob_n 5._o iren._n cont_n valen._n lib._n 4._o c._n 34._o euseb._n histor_n eod_a l._n 4._o cap._n 13._o 13._o tertull._n contra_fw-la martion_n lib._n 4._o c._n 4._o clem._n alex_n stron_n lib._n 27._o tertull._n cont_n marc._n lib._n 4._o cap._n 4._o 4._o epiph._n haer_fw-mi 65._o 65._o euseb._n de_fw-fr vita_fw-la constant_n l._n 3._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d sympr_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 1_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d cateche_n 15._o 〈◊〉_d aug._n the_o 〈◊〉_d &_o symb_n c._n 10._o de_fw-fr 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d symb_n c._n 10_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 4._o de_fw-fr 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 2._o c._n 〈◊〉_d vm._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 9_o prosp._n the_o 〈◊〉_d &_o 〈◊〉_d dei_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 4._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ang._n collatine_n carth._n l_o 3_o august_n ibid._n aug._n ib_fw-la id_fw-la id_fw-la aug._n epist_n 48._o g._n aug_n ibid._n ibid._n optat._n milevit_fw-la cont_n parm_n 〈◊〉_d 1._o b._n aug._n b_o revin_n col_fw-fr l._n 3._o c._n in_o joan._n ttact_n 6._o 6._o aug._n psal._n 57_o e._n aug._n the_o pastor_n c._n 13_o esai_n 2._o 〈◊〉_d 60._o 〈◊〉_d 61._o matth._n 5._o matth._n 18._o 〈◊〉_d de_fw-fr 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d chris_n in_o esai_n hom_n 4._o idem_fw-la in_o esai_n c._n 2._o aug._n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccles_n c._n 14._o aug._n cont_n parm._n l._n 2._o cap_n 3._o cont._n lit_fw-fr petil_a lib._n 1._o cap._n 104._o cypr._n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccles._n ibid._n ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la ibid._n &_o hier._n cont_n lucifèr_n hler._n cont_n lucif_n 1._o 〈◊〉_d carth._n 4._o c._n 1._o aug._n ep_n 152._o idem_fw-la ep_n 50_o ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la cant._n 4._o esai_n 1._o esai_n 52._o ose._n 2._o matth._n 16._o tim_n 3_o 2._o corinth_n 6._o 2._o joan._n hier._n cont_n lucifer_n 〈◊〉_d l._n 1._o idem_fw-la l._n 2._o de_fw-fr 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d c._n 7._o de_fw-fr vera_fw-la relig_n cap._n 6._o de_fw-fr side_n &_o symb_n c._n 10._o 10._o council_n carth_n 4._o 〈◊〉_d 1._o 1._o aug._n ep_n 15_o 2._o 2._o de_fw-fr 〈◊〉_d ad_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 4_o 4_o cyp_n de_fw-fr 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d aug_n de_fw-fr gest_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d prosp_n promis_fw-fr &_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d de_fw-fr 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d c._n 19_o 〈◊〉_d 4._o 〈◊〉_d 5_o 5_o 〈◊〉_d 54._o 54._o 〈◊〉_d 92_o 92_o 〈◊〉_d 37_o 37_o 〈◊〉_d 8._o 8._o 〈◊〉_d 16._o 16._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d alex._n ep_n ad_fw-la alex._n theodoret_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d e_o eulex_n eulex_n 1._o cap._n 4._o l._n athan._n orat_fw-la orat_fw-la theof_n ad_fw-la epiph_n apud_fw-la hierom._n ep._n 67._o ang._n psal._n 101._o ang._n the_o ago_o christ_n c._n 29._o 1._o de_fw-fr bap_n cont_n dol_n 3._o c._n 2._o cont._n parm._n l._n 3._o capt_n 3._o de_fw-fr symbol_n ad_fw-la catech_v l._n 〈◊〉_d c._n 5._o anguso_n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eul._n c._n 6._o aug._n the_o symb_n ad_fw-la cathech_n l._n 4._o c._n 10._o fulg._n the_o sid_n ad_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d c._n 39_o a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d aug_n 〈◊〉_d 50._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 4._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d psal._n 122._o 〈◊〉_d epist_n ad_fw-la pupp_n aug_n de_fw-fr 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d cap._n 4._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d p._n 3_o c._n 101._o de_fw-fr pastor_n c._n 13._o 13._o cont._n parm._n l._n 2_o cap_n 11_o 11_o cont._n parm._n l_o 3._o cap._n 4._o 4._o de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccl_n c._n 10_o c_o de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccl_n c._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ibid._n c_o 20_o 20_o
of_o the_o church_n his_o mother_n the_o curse_a and_o unclean_a bird_n shall_v peck_v it_o out_o of_o the_o exclusion_n of_o heretic_n from_o the_o body_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n chapt_n vii_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n the_o roman_a church_n then_o the_o greek_a the_o antiochian_a the_o egyptian_a the_o abyssine_n the_o musco_n vite_o and_o many_o other_o be_v member_n more_o excellent_a in_o truth_n in_o doctrine_n and_o sincerity_n of_o faith_n the_o one_o than_o the_o other_o but_o yet_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n whereof_o the_o masseand_a contexture_n as_o for_o external_a form_n be_v already_o long_o ago_o dissolve_v and_o disassemble_v the_o reply_n and_o what_o shall_v then_o become_v of_o that_o his_o majesty_n late_o say_v that_o the_o specifical_a form_n and_o essential_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n be_v truth_n of_o doctrine_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o communion_n between_o light_n and_o darkness_n and_o between_o christ_n and_o belial_n and_o that_o he_o that_o leave_v christ_n who_o be_v truth_n itself_o leave_v the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o truth_n if_o not_o only_o the_o greek_n antiochian_o and_o muscovite_n 3_o who_o be_v heretic_n in_o the_o point_n of_o the_o processio_fw-la of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o the_o most_o excellent_a king_n do_v with_o we_o hold_v for_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n &_o which_o in_o this_o quality_n be_v insert_v into_o athanasius_n his_o creed_n and_o into_o the_o creed_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n as_o it_o be_v read_v in_o the_o western_a church_n which_o his_o majesty_n profess_v to_o embrace_v but_o also_o the_o egyptian_n and_o ethiopian_n which_o follow_v the_o sect_n of_o eutyches_n anathematise_v and_o cast_v out_o leo._n of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n near_o twelve_o hundred_o year_n ag_v oeand_v 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o fundamental_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o whereof_o s._n paul_n say_v 3._o none_o can_v lay_v 〈◊〉_d other_o foundation_n beside_o christ_n be_v church_n and_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n a_o lacedaemonian_a answer_v a_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o isle_n of_o delphos_n who_o tell_v he_o that_o the_o woman_n be_v not_o deliver_v of_o child_n in_o their_o isle_n but_o travel_v out_o of_o it_o to_o be_v bring_v to_o bed_n and_o that_o their_o dead_a be_v not_o bury_v there_o but_o that_o they_o be_v carry_v forth_o of_o it_o to_o their_o sepulchre_n and_o how_o then_o be_v it_o your_o country_n say_v he_o if_o you_o be_v neither_o bear_v nor_o bury_v there_o so_o how_o be_v it_o that_o the_o sect_n of_o heretic_n and_o namely_o those_o of_o the_o egyptian_n and_o ethiopian_n with_o who_o the_o council_n 12_o of_o chalcedon_n forbid_v we_o to_o communicate_v upon_o pain_n of_o anathema_n and_o of_o who_o saint_n john_n himself_o tell_v we_o if_o any_o one_o confess_v not_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v come_v in_o the_o flesh_n he_o be_v a_o seducer_n and_o antichrist_n and_o again_o if_o any_o one_o bring_v not_o this_o doctrine_n receive_v he_o not_o into_o your_o house_n and_o say_v not_o to_o he_o well_o be_v it_o with_o thou_o for_o whosoever_o say_v unto_o he_o well_o be_v it_o with_o thou_o communicate_v in_o his_o wicked_a work_n shall_v obtain_v the_o be_v and_o title_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o faith_n of_o the_o spiritual_a country_n of_o the_o faithful_a if_o to_o be_v bear_v in_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o to_o breathe_v their_o first_o air_n of_o spiritual_a life_n we_o must_v first_o go_v forth_o of_o their_o society_n and_o if_o to_o obtain_v salvation_n and_o to_o rest_v in_o peace_n after_o death_n we_o must_v first_o renounce_v their_o communion_n god_n say_v to_o the_o church_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o solomon_n thou_o be_v whole_o fair_a and_o there_o be_v no_o spott_n in_o thou_o that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o for_o doctrine_n and_o condition_n of_o communion_n and_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o esaie_n none_o incircumcised_a or_o unclean_a shall_v any_o more_o pass_v through_o thou_o that_o be_v to_o say_v none_o that_o public_o profess_v a_o pollute_a or_o impure_a doctrine_n he_o say_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o ezechiell_n describinge_v the_o future_a state_n of_o the_o christian_n church_n i_o will_v establish_v a_o alliance_n of_o peace_n 〈◊〉_d with_o my_o sheep_n and_o will_v cause_v the_o evil_a beast_n of_o the_o earth_n to_o cease_v which_o the_o contr_n sibilla_n seem_v to_o have_v express_v in_o these_o word_n repeat_v by_o virgil_n and_o 1._o that_o saint_n augustine_n say_v may_v fit_o be_v apply_v to_o the_o church_n serpent_n shall_v cease_v swell_v up_o with_o th'impure_a blood_n of_o poisonous_a herb_n in_o their_o deceitful_a bud_n and_o how_o then_o shall_v the_o mock_v counsel_n of_o heretic_n which_o saint_n 7._o hierome_n call_v denens_fw-la of_o wilt_fw-ge beast_n &_o who_o doctrine_n he_o call_v the_o wine_n of_o 〈◊〉_d mingle_v witd_a the_o gall_n of_o asp_n be_v church_n &_o part_n of_o the_o church_n or_o how_o shall_v the_o church_n to_o who_o god_n have_v spiritual_o give_v the_o same_o prerogative_n thar_z the_o historian_n attribute_v corporal_o to_o the_o isle_n of_o crete_n to_o wit_n that_o it_o can_v suffer_v no_o venomous_a beast_n in_o it_o that_o be_v to_o say_v no_o 58._o dogmatize_v heretic_n communicate_v her_o name_n and_o society_n with_o the_o venomous_a sect_n of_o hetetick_n he_o say_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o osea_n i_o will_v espouse_v 〈◊〉_d in_o faith_n and_o by_o that_o of_o saint_n paul_n the_o edification_n of_o god_n be_v in_o faith_n and_o the_o most_o excellent_a king_n himself_o protest_v that_o the_o essential_a form_n of_o the_o church_n be_v faith_n and_o how_o then_o can_v the_o sect_n not_o only_o of_o the_o egyptian_n and_o ethiopian_n but_o of_o all_o the_o heretic_n which_o make_v as_o say_v s._n paul_n a_o shipwreck_n of_o faith_n be_v church_n and_o in_o the_o church_n he_o say_v by_o his_o own_o mouth_n the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o have_v victory_n over_o the_o church_n and_o s._n epiphanius_n and_o s._n hierome_n ibid._n anacor_fw-la interpret_v those_o gate_n of_o hell_n to_o be_v heresy_n and_o how_o then_o can_v it_o be_v that_o the_o heretical_a society_n into_o who_o communion_n we_o can_v enter_v without_o yield_v ourselves_o tributary_n to_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v 16._o be_v church_n and_o part_n of_o the_o church_n for_o though_o vice_n in_o manner_n belong_v also_o to_o the_o power_n of_o hell_n nevertheless_o because_o the_o vice_n be_v but_o in_o the_o person_n of_o those_o that_o commit_v they_o and_o not_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o church_n exact_v not_o from_o any_o of_o her_o member_n the_o condition_n of_o be_v vicious_a to_o receive_v they_o into_o her_o communion_n they_o shall_v but_o conquer_v those_o particular_a person_n that_o be_v spot_v therewith_o and_o not_o the_o church_n of_o the_o which_o god_n have_v say_v by_o the_o prophet_n jerusalem_n shall_v be_v call_v the_o city_n of_o truth_n and_o the_o mountain_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o sanctify_a hill_n and_o by_o a_o other_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n shall_v no_o more_o from_o 43._o 〈◊〉_d forward_o be_v foil_v whereas_o heresy_n infect_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o society_n where_o it_o remain_v none_o be_v to_o enter_v into_o any_o heretical_a society_n without_o oblige_v themselves_o to_o the_o doctrine_n where_o of_o she_o make_v profession_n and_o under_o who_o condition_n she_o receave_v man_n into_o her_o communion_n and_o by_o consequent_a make_v the_o gate_n of_o hell_n victorious_a over_o the_o congregation_n wherein_o she_o remain_v he_o command_v we_o to_o hold_v those_o that_o hear_v not_o the_o church_n for_o heathen_n and_o publican_n he_o forbid_v we_o then_o from_o account_v the_o society_n of_o heŕetick_n which_o hear_v not_o the_o catholic_a church_n for_o church_n and_o part_n of_o the_o church_n but_o for_o society_n of_o 〈◊〉_d and_o heathen_n he_o say_v to_o we_o that_o whosoever_o gather_v not_o with_o he_o scatters_z the_o heretic_n then_o that_o gather_v not_o with_o he_o gather_v not_o but_o scatteŕ_n and_o so_o their_o assembly_n be_v no_o more_o church_n but_o dispertion_n he_o cry_v out_o to_o we_o by_o the_o organ_n of_o saint_n paul_n that_o whosoever_o declare_v against_o what_o we_o have_v receive_v shall_v be_v a_o anathema_n he_o will_v then_o that_o heretic_n shall_v be_v hold_v by_o the_o church_n for_o anathema_n and_o consequent_o exclude_v from_o the_o communion_n both_o internal_a and_o external_a of_o the_o church_n he_o teach_v we_o by_o the_o same_o oracle_n that_o the_o church_n be_v our_o mother_n